Skip to main content

Full text of "Liturgies and other documents of the Ante-Nicene period"

See other formats


/^^/r 


NOTICE   TO   SUBSCRIBERS. 


MESSRS.  CLARK  have  now  the  very  great  pleasure  of  pub- 
lishing the  final  issue  of  the  Ante-Nicene  Series  : — 

The  Completion  of  Origen  against  Celsus;  and 
Early  Liturgies  ;  with  Fragments  not  hitherto  given. 

They  are  thankful  for  the  support  they  have  received  in  a  very 
arduous  undertaking  ;  and  they  take  this  opportunity  of  acknow- 
ledging the  great  services  of  the  Editors,  whose  learning  has 
recommended  the  Series  to  Scholars,  whilst  their  fairness  and 
impartiality  have  been  admitted  by  men  of  all  shades  of  opinion. 

An  Index  Volume  to  the  whole  Series  is  in  active  prepara- 
tion, and  will  be  a  most  useful  addition  to  its  value.  It  will  be 
published  at  a  very  moderate  price,  and  it  is  particularly  re- 
quested that  those  who  desire  it  will  send  their  names  as  soon 
as  possible  to  the  Publishers. 

Messrs.  Clark  regret  that  they  have  received  very  little 
encouragement  to  publish  the  Homilies  of  Origen  ;  but  they 
are  still  open  to  the  consideration  of  the  matter  if  sufficient  sup- 
port can  be  obtained. 

They  trust  that  the  Subscribers  to  the  Ante-Nicene  Series 
will  continue  their  subscription  to  the  Works  of  St.  Augustine, 
of  which  four  volumes  are  now  ready,  viz. : — 

The  City  of  God.     In  Two  Volumes. 

Writings  in  connection   with   the  Donatist  Contro- 
versy.    One  Volume. 

The  Anti-Pelagian  Writings  of  Augustine.    Vol.  I. 

They  are  glad  to  announce  as  in  contemplation  a  uniform  trans- 
lation of  the  Works  of  Chrysostom. 


ANTE-NICENE 


CHRISTIAN    LIBRAtRY: 


TRANSLATIONS  OF 
THE   WRITINGS  OF  THE  FATHERS 

DOWN  TO  A.D.  335. 


EDITED   BY  THE 

REV.  ALEXANDER   ROBERTS,  D.D., 
JAMES   DONALDSON.  LL.D. 


VOL.    XXIV. 

EAELY  LITUEGIES  AND  OTHER  DOCUMENTS. 


EDINBURGH: 
T.    k    T.    CLARK,    3  8,    GEORGE    STREET. 

MDCCCLXXIL 


PItlNTED   BY  MUr.RAY   AND   GIBB, 

FOR 

T.    &   T.    CLARK,    EDINBUEGH. 

LONDON,      ....      HAMILTON,  ADAMS,  AND  CO. 
DUBLIN,       ....      JOHN  ROBERTSON  AND  CO. 
NEW  YORK,      .      .      .      C.  SCRIBNER  AND  CO. 


LITUEGIES 


AND     OTHER     DOCUMENTS 


OF  THE 


ANTE-NICENE    PERIOD. 


EDINBUEGH: 
T.    &    T.    CLAEK,    38,    GEORGE    STEEET. 

MDCCCLXXII. 


f'^r\f\^-^  4    f  L^ 


The  Liturgy  of  St.  James  lias  beeu  translated  by  William  Macdonald, 
JI.A. ;  that  of  the  Evangelist  Mark  by  George  Ross  Merky,  B.A.  ; 
and  that  of  the  Holy  Apostles  by  Dr.  Donaldson. 


I     r?  -'  r  i 
L   /^    / 

Id  7^ 


CONTENTS. 


EARLY    LITURGIES. 

PACF. 

Introductory  Notice, 3 

I.  The  Divine  Liturgy  of  James, 11 

II.  The  Divine  Liturgy  of  the  Holy  Apostle  and  Evangelist 

Mark, 47 

III.  Liturgy  of  the  Holy  Apostles,  or  Order  of  the  Sacra- 
ments,     73 

The  Liturgy  of  the  Blessed  Apostles,  composed  by  St.  Adseus 
and  St.  Maris,  Teachers  of  the  Easterns,  .         >        .77 

SYRIAC  DOCUMENTS  OF  THE  ANTE-NICENE  PERIOD. 

Introductory  Notice, 9.5 

Ambrose, .        .        .97 

A  Letter  of  Mara,  Son  of  Serapion, 105 


SELECTIONS  FROM  THE  PROPHETIC  SCRIPTURES, 


117 


FRAGMENTS  OF  CLEMENS  ALEXANDRIXUS. 

I.  Fi;oM  THE  Latin  Translation  of  Cassiodorus,  . 

1.  Comments  on  the  First  Epistle  of  Peter, 

2.  Comments  on  the  Epistle  of  Jude, 

3.  Comments  on  the  First  Epistle  of  John,     . 

4.  Comments  on  the  Second  Epistle  of  John,  . 

II.  From  Nicetas  Bishop  of  Heraclea's  Catena,    . 
III.  From  the  Catena  on  Luke,  Edited  by  Corderius, 


139 
139 
143 

117 
153 

154 

157 


vm 


CONTENTS. 


PAGE 

IV.  From  the  Books  of  the  Hypotyposes,        ....  158 

Y.  FpvOm  the  Book  on  Providence, 162 

VI.  From  the  Book  "  Ox  the  Soul," 163 

VII.  From  the  Book  "  On  Slander," 164 

Till.  Other  Fragments  from  Antonius  Melissa,        .        .        .  164 

IX.  Fragment  of  the  Ti;eatise  on  Marriage,  ....  166 

X.  Fragments  of  other  Lost  Books, 166 

XI.  Fr.'vgments  found  in  Greek  onxt  in  the  Oxford  Edition,  167 
XII.  Fragments  not  given  in  the  Oxford  Edition.  .        .        .175 


EARLY   LITURGIES. 


.  «* 


INTRODUCTORY  NOTICE. 


HE  word  "  Liturgy"  has  a  special  meaning  as 
applied  to  the  following  documents.  It  denotes 
the  service  used  in  the  celebration  of  the  Eucha- 
rist. 

Various  liturgies  have  come  down  to  us  from  antiquity ; 
and  their  age,  authorship,  and  genuineness  have  been  matter 
of  keen  discussion.  In  our  own  country  two  writers  on  this 
subject  stand  specially  prominent:  the  Rev.  William  Palmer, 
M.A.,  who  in  his  Origines  Lilxirgicw  (Oxford,  1832)  gave  a 
dissertation  on  Primitive  Liturgies  ;  and  the  Rev.  J.  Mason 
Neale,  who  devoted  a  large  portion  of  his  life  to  liturgies, 
edited  four  of  them  in  his  Tetralogia  Liturgica  (London, 
1849),  five  of  them  in  his  Liturgies  of  St.  Mark,  St.  James, 
St.  Clement,  St.  Chrysostom,  and  St.  Basil  (sec.  ed.  London, 
18G8),  and  discussed  them  in  a  masterly  manner  in  several 
works,  but  especially  in  his  General  Introduction  to  a  History 
of  the  Holy  Eastern  CJinrch  (London,  1850). 

Ancient  liturgies  are  generally  divided  into  four  families, 
— the  Liturgy  of  the  Jerusalem  Church,  adopted  throughout 
the  East ;  the  Alexandrian,  used  in  Egypt  and  the  neigh- 
bouring countries;  and  the  Roman  and  Gallican  Liturgies. 
To  these  Neale  has  added  a  fifth,  the  Liturgy  of  Persia  or 
Edessa. 

There  is  also  a  liturgy  not  included  in  any  of  these  fami- 
lies— the  Clementine.  It  seems  never  to  have  been  used  in 
any  public  service.  It  forms  part  of  the  eighth  book  of  the 
Apostolical  Constitutions  (Ante-Nicene  Christian  Library,  vol. 
xvii.). 

The  age  ascribed  to  these  documents  depends  very  much 

8 


4  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

on  the  temperament  and  inclination  of  the  inquirer.  Those 
\\\\o  have  great  reverence  for  them  think  that  they  must 
have  had  an  apostolic  origin,  that  they  contain  the  apostolic 
form,  first  handed  down  by  tradition,  and  then  committed  to 
writing,  but  they  allow  that  there  is  a  certain  amount  of 
interpolation  and  addition  of  a  date  later  than  the  Nicene 
Council.  Such  words  as  "  consubstantial "  and  "  mother  of 
God  "  bear  indisputable  witness  to  this.  Others  think  that 
there  is  no  real  historical  proof  of  their  early  existence  at  all, 
— that  they  all  belong  to  a  late  date,  and  bear  evident  marks 
of  having  been  written  long  after  the  age  of  the  apostles. 

There  can  scarcely  be  a  doubt  that  they  were  not  com- 
mitted to  writing  till  a  comparatively  late  day.  Those  who 
think  that  their  origin  was  apostolic  allow  this.  "  The 
period,"  says  Palmer,^  "  when  liturgies  were  first  committed 
to  writing  is  uncertain,  and  has  been  the  subject  of  some 
controversy.  Le  Brun  contends  that  no  liturgy  was  written 
till  the  fifth  century ;  but  his  arguments  seem  quite  insuflS- 
cient  to  prove  this,  and  he  is  accordingly  opposed  by  Murar 
tori  and  other  eminent  ritualists.  It  seems  certain,  on  the 
other  hand,  that  the  liturgy  of  the  Apostolical  Constitutions 
was  written  at  the  end  of  the  third  or  beginning  of  the 
fourth  century ;  and  there  is  no  reason  to  deny  that  others 
may  have  been  written  about  the  same  time,  or  not  long 
after." 

Neale  ^  suras  up  the  results  of  his  study  in  the  following 
words  :  "  I  shall  content  myself  therefore  with  assuming, 
(1)  that  these  liturgies,  though  not  composed  by  the  Apostles 
whose  names  they  bear,  were  the  legitimate  developement  of 
their  unwritten  tradition  respecting  the  Christian  Sacrifice  ; 
the  words,  probably,  in  the  most  important  parts,  the  general 
tenor  in  all  portions,  descending  unchanged  from  the  apos- 
tolic authors.  (2)  That  the  Liturgy  of  S.  James  is  of  earlier 
date,  as  to  its  main  fabric,  than  a.d.  200  i  that  the  Clementine 
Office  is  at  least  not  later  than  260;  that  the  Liturgy  of  S. 

^  Origines  Liturgicse,  p.  11. 

2  General  Introduction  to  the  History  of  the  Holy  Eastern  Church, 
p.  319. 


INTRODUCTORY  NOTICE.  5 

Mark  is  nearly  coeval  with  that  of  S.  James ;  while  those  of 
S.  Basil  and  S.  Chrysostom  are  to  be  referred  respectively 
to  the  Saints  by  whom  they  purport  to  be  composed.  In 
all  these  cases,  several  manifest  insertions  and  additions  do 
not  alter  the  truth  of  the  ceneral  statement," 

1.  Tlie  Koman  Liturgy.  The  first  writer  who  is  supposed 
to  allude  to  a  Roman  Liturgy  is  Innocentius,  in  the  begin- 
ning of  the  fifth  century ;  but  it  may  well  be  doubted  whether 
Ills  words  refer  to  any  liturgy  now  extant.  Some  have  at- 
tributed the  authorship  of  the  Koman  Liturgy  to  Leo  the 
Great,  who  was  made  bishop  of  Rome  in  a.d.  451 ;  some  to 
Gelasius,  who  was  made  bishop  of  Rome  in  a.d.  492 ;  and 
some  to  Gregory  the  First,  who  was  made  bishop  of  Rome 
in  A.D.  590.  Such  being  the  opinions  of  those  who  have 
given  most  study  to  the  subject,  we  have  not  deemed  it 
necessary  to  translate  it,  though  Probst,  in  his  Liturgie  der 
drei  ersten  christlichen  Jahrhunderte  (Tubingen,  1870),  pro- 
bably out  of  affection  for  his  own  Church,  has  given  it  a 
place  beside  the  Clementine  and  those  of  St.  James  and  St. 
Mark. 

2.  The  Gallican  has  still  less  claim  to  antiquity.  In  fact, 
Daniel  marks  it  among  the  spurious  {yodoi)}  Mabillon  tries 
to  prove  that  three  ecclesiastics  had  a  share  in  the  author- 
ship of  this  liturgy :  Museeus,  presbyter  of  ISIarseilles,  who 
died  after  the  middle  of  the  fifth  century ;  Sidonius,  bishop 
of  Auvergne,  who  died  a.d.  494 ;  and  Hilary,  bishop  of 
Poictiers,  who  died  A.D.  366.^  Palmer  strives  to  show  with 
great  ingenuity  that  it  is  not  improbable  that  the  Gallican 
Liturgy  may  have  been  originally  derived  from  St.  John ; 
but  his  arguments  are  merely  conjectures. 

3.  The  Liturgy  of  St.  James,  the  Liturgy  of  the  Church 
of  Jerusalem.  Asseman,  Zaccaria,  Dr.  Brett,  Palmer,  Trol- 
lope,  and  Neale,  think  that  the  main  structure  of  this  liturgy 
is  the  work  of  St.  James,  while  they  admit  that  it  contains 
some  evident  interpolations.  Leo  Allatius,  Bona,  Bellar- 
mine,  Baronius,  and  some  others,  think  that  the  whole  is 

^  Codex  Liturgiciis,  vol.  iv.  p.  35,  note. 
'  Palmer,  voL  i.  p.  144;. 


6  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

the  genuine  production  of  the  apostle.  Cave,  Fabrlclus, 
Dupin,  Le  Nourry,  Basnage,  Tillemont,  and  many  others, 
think  that  it  is  entirely  destitute  of  any  claim  to  an  apostolic 
origin,  and  that  it  belongs  to  a  much  later  age. 

"  From  the  Liturgy  of  S.  James,"  says  Neale,  "  are  de- 
rived, on  the  one  hand,  the  forty  Syro-Jacobite  offices  :  on 
the  other,  the  Cesarean  office,  or  Liturgy  of  S.  Basil,  with 
its  offshoots;  that  of  S.  Chrysostom,  and  the  Armeno- 
Grefijorian."  ^ 

There  are  only  two  manuscripts  of  the  Greek  Liturgy  of 
/-  St.  James, — one  of  the  tenth,  the  other  of  the  twelfth  century, 
— with  fragments  of  a  third.  The  first  edition  appeared  at 
Rome  in  1526.  In  more  recent  times  it  has  been  edited 
by  Rev.  W.  Trollope,  M.A.  (Edinburgh,  T.  &  T.  Clark, 
1848),  Neale  in  the  two  works  mentioned  above,  and  Daniel 
in  his  Codex  Liturgicus.  Bishop  Rattray  edited  the  Ana- 
phora (London,  1744),  and  attempted  to  separate  the  ori- 
ginal from  the  interpolations,  "  though,"  says  Neale,  "  the 
supposed  restoration  is  unsatisfactory  enough."  Bunsen,  in 
his  Analecta  Ante-Nicccna,  vol.  iii.,  has  tried  to  restore  the 
Anaphora  to  the  state  in  which  it  may  have  been  in  the  fourth 
century,  "  as  far  as  was  possible — quantum  fieri  potuUy 

4.  The  Liturgy  of  St.  Mark,  the  liturgy  of  the  church 
of  Alexandria.  The  same  difference  of  opinion  exists  in 
regard  to  the  age  and  genuineness  of  this  liturgy  as  we 
found  existing  in  regard  to  that  of  St.  James,  and  the  same 
scholars  occupy  the  same  relative  position. 

The  offshoots  from  St.  Mark's  Liturgy  are  St.  Basil,  St. 
Cyril,  and  St.  Gregory,  and  the  Ethiopic  Canon  or  Liturgy 
of  All  Apostles.  In  regard  to  the  Liturgy  of  St.  Cyril, 
Neale  says  that  it  is  "  to  all  intents  and  purposes  the  same 
as  that  of  S.  Mark  ;  and  it  seems  highly  probable  that  the 
Liturgy  of  S.  Mark  came,  as  we  have  it  now,  from  the 
hands  of  S.  Cyril,  or,  to  use  the  expression  of  Abu'lberkat, 
that  Cyril 'perfected 'it." 2 

There  is  only  one  manuscript  of  the  Liturgy  of  St.  Mark, 
probably  belonging  to  the  twelfth  century.  The  first  edition 
1  General  Introd.  p.  317.  ^  jn^^  p,  324. 


INTROB  UCTOn  Y  NOTICE.  7 

appeared  at  Paris  in  1583.  Tiie  liturgy  is  given  in  Renau- 
dot's  Liturgianim  Orientalinm  Collection  torn.  i.  pp.  120-148 
(editio  secunda  correctior.  Francofurti  ad  Moenum,  1847),  in 
Neale's  two  works,  and  in  Daniel's  Codex  Litiirgicns. 

5.  The  Liturgy  of  the  Apostles  Adaeus  and  Maris.  This 
liturgy  has  been  brought  prominently  forward  by  Neale, 
who  says :  "  It  is  generally  passed  over  as  of  very  inferior 
importance,  and  Renaudot  alone  seems  to  have  been  pre- 
pared to  acknowledge  in  some  degree  its  great  antiquity."  ^ 
He  thinks  that  it  is  "  one  of  the  earliest,  and  perhaps  the 
very  earliest,  of  the  many  formularies  of  the  Christian 
Sacrifice."  "^  It  is  one  of  the  three  Nestorian  liturgies,  the 
other  two  being  that  of  Nestorius  and  that  of  Theodore  the 
interpreter. 

A  Latin  translation  of  it  is  given  in  Renaudot's  Collectio 
(torn.  ii.  pp.  578-592,  ed.  sec),  which  is  reprinted  in  Daniel's 
Codex  Liturgicus.  It  is  from  this  version  that  our  translation 
is  made.  Several  prayers  and  hymns  are  indicated  only  by 
the  initial  words,  and  the  rubrical  directions  are  probably  of 
a  much  later  date  than  the  text. 

The  Liturgies  are  divided  into  two  parts, — the  part  before 
"  Lift  we  up  our  hearts,"  and  the  part  after  this.  The  first 
is  termed  the  Proanaphoral  Part,  the  second  the  Anaphora. 

Trollope  describes  what  he  conceives  to  be  the  form  of 
worship  in  the  early  Church,  thus :  ^  "  The  service  of  this 
day  divided  itself  into  two  parts ;  at  the  latter  of  which, 
called  in  the  Eastern  Churches  Liturgia  mystica^  and  in  the  i 
Western  Missa  fidelium^  none  but  perfect  and  approved  " 
Christians  were  allowed  to  be  present.  To  the  Missa 
Catechumenorum,  or  that  part  of  the  service  which  preceded 
the  prayers  peculiar  to  communicants  only,  not  only  be- 
lievers, but  Gentiles,  were  admitted,  in  the  hope  that  some 
might  possibly  become  converts  to  the  faith.  After  the  ^^ 
Psalms  and  Lessons  with  which  the  service  commenced,  as  on 
ordinary  occasions,  a  section  from  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles 
or  the  Epistles  was  read ;  after  which  the  deacon  or  pres- 
byter read  the  Gospel.  Then  followed  an  exhortation  from 
1  General  Introd.  p.  319.         ^  m^i  p_  393.  3  Introduction,  p.  11. 


8  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

one  or  more  of  the  presbyters  ;  and  the  bishop  or  president 
delivered  a  Homily  or  Sermon,  explanatory,  it  should  seem, 
of  the  Scripture  which  had  been  read,  and  exciting  the  people 
to  an  imitation  of  the  virtues  therein  exemplified.  When 
the  preacher  had  concluded  his  discourse  with  a  doxology 
in  praise  of  the  Holy  Trinity,  a  deacon  made  proclamation 
for  all  infidels  and  non-communicants  to  withdraw ;  then 
came  the  dismissal  of  the  several  classes  of  catechumens, 
energumens,  competents,  and  penitents,  after  the  prayers  for 
each  respectively,  as  on  ordinary  days  ;  and  the  Missafidelium 
commenced.  This  office  consisted  of  two  parts,  essentially 
distinct :  viz.,  of  prayers  for  the  faithful,  and  for  mankind 
in  general,  introductory  to  the  Oblation  ;  and  the  Anaphora 
or  Oblation  itself.  The  introductory  part  varied  considerably 
^n  the  formularies  of  different  churches ;  but  in  the  Anaphora 
all  the  existing  liturgies  so  closely  agree,  in  substance  at 
least,  if  not  in  words,  that  they  can  only  be  reasonably  referred 
to  the  same  common  origin.  Their  arrangement,  indeed,  is 
not  always  the  same ;  but  the  following  essential  points  belong, 
without  exception,  to  them  all : — 1.  The  Kiss  of  Peace ;  2. 
The  form  beginning,  Lift  up  your  hearts ;  3.  The  Hymn, 
Therefore  with  angels,  etc. ;  4.  Commemoration  of  the  words 
of  Institution ;  5.  The  Oblation ;  6.  Prayer  of  Consecra- 
tion ;  7.  Prayers  for  the  Church  on  Earth ;  8.  Prayers  for 
the  Dead ;  9.  The  Lord's  Prayer ;  10.  Breaking  of  the 
Bread;  11.  Communion." 

Neale  gives  a  more  minute  account  of  the  different  parts 
of  the  service.  He  divides  the  proanaphoral  portion  into 
parts  in  the  following  manner  :  ^ 

I.  The  Preparatory  Prayers. 
11.  The  Initial  Hymn  or  Introit. 
"1.  The  Mass        I  HI.  The  Little  Entrance. 

of  the  \  IV.  The  Trisagion. 

Catechumens.        1    V.  The  Lections. 

VI.  The  Prayers  after  the  Gospel,  and  expulsion 
of  the  Catechumens, 

^  General  Introduction^  p.  359. 


INTRODUCTORY  NOTICE. 


"  2.  The  Mass 

of  the 

Faithful. 


I.  The  Prayers  for  the  Faithful. 
II.  The  Great  Entrance. 

III.  The  Offertory. 

IV.  The  Kiss  of  Peace. 
V.  The  Creed. 


The  anaphora  lie  divides  into  four  parts  in  the  following 
.1 


manner 


"The  great 
Eucharistic  Prayer. 


"  The 
Consecration. 


"  The  great 

Intercessory 

Prayer. 


I.  The  Preface. 
II.  The  Prayer  of  the  Triumphal  Hymn. 

III.  The  Triumphal  Hymn. 

IV.  Commemoration  of  our  Lord's  Life. 
V.  Commemoration  of  Institution. 

VI.  Words  of  Institution  of  the  Bread. 
VII.  Words  of  Institution  of  the  Wine. 
VIII.  Oblation  of  the  Body  and  Blood. 
IX.  Introductory  Prayer  for  the  Descent  of 

the  Holy  Ghost. 
X.  Prayer  for  the  Change  of  Elements. 

XI.  General  Intercession  for  Quick  and  Dead. 
XII.  Prayer  before  the  Lord's  Prayer. 

XIII.  The  Lord's  Prayer. 

XIV.  The  Embolismus. 

XV.  The  Prayer  of  Inclination. 
XVI.  The  '  Holy  Things  for  Holy  Persons,'  and 

Elevation  of  the  Host. 
XVII.  The  Fraction. 
XVIII.  The  Confession. 
XIX.  The  Communion. 

XX.  The  Antidoron  :  and  Prayers  of  Thanks- 
giving." 

The  whole  subject  is  discussed  by  Mr.  Neale  with  extra- 
ordinary minuteness,  fulness  of  detail,  and  perfect  mastery 
of  his  subject ;  and  to  his  work  we  refer  those  who  wish  to 
prosecute  the  study  of  the  subject. 

^  General  Introduction^  p.  463. 


"The 
Communion. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES, 

THE  HOLY  APOSTLE  AND  BROTHER  OF  THE  LORD. 


The  Priest. 

SOVEREIGN  Lord  our  God,  contemn  me  not, 
defiled  with  a  multitude  of  sins :  for,  behold,  I 
have  come  to  this  Thy  divine  and  heavenly 
mystery,  not  as  being  worthy ;  but  looking  only 
to  Thy  goodness,  1  direct  my  voice  to  Thee:  God  be  merciful 
to  me,  a  sinner;  I  have  sinned  against  Heaven,  and  before 
Thee,  and  am  unworthy  to  come  into  the  presence  of  this 
Thy  holy  and  spiritual  table,  upon  which  Thy  only-begotten 
Son,  and  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  is  mystically  set  forth  as 
a  sacrifice  for  me,  a  sinner,  and  stained  with  every  spot. 
Wherefore  I  present  to  Thee  this  supplication  and  thanks- 
giving, that  Thy  Spirit  the  Comforter  may  be  sent  down 
upon  me,  strengthening  and  fitting  me  for  this  service  ;  and 
count  me  worthy  to  make  known  without  condemnation  the 
word,  delivered  from  Thee  by  me  to  the  people,  in  Christ 
Jesus  our  Lord,  with  whom  Thou  art  blessed,  together  with 
Thy  all-holy,  and  good,  and  quickening,  and  consubstantial 
Spirit,  now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternity.     Amen. 

Praya"  of  the  standing  beside  the  altar. 

11.  Glory  to  the  Father,  and  to  the  Son,  and  to  the 
Holy  Spirit,  the  triune  light  of  the  Godhead,  which  is 
unity  subsisting  in  trinity,  divided,  yet  indivisible :  for  the 
Trinity  is  the  one  God  Almighty,  whose  glory  the  heavens 
declare,  and  the  earth  His  dominion,  and  the  sea  His  might, 

11 


12  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

and  every  sentient  and  intellectual  creature  at  all  times  pro- 
claims His  majesty :  for  all  glory  becomes  Him,  and  honour 
and  might,  greatness  and  magnificence,  now  and  ever,  and  to 
all  eternity.     Amen. 

Prayer  of  the  incense  at  the  beginning. 

III.  Sovereign  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  O  Word  of  God,  who 
^        didst  freely  offer  Thyself  a  blameless  sacrifice  upon  the  cross 

to  God  even  the  Father,  the  coal  of  double  nature,  that  didst 
touch  the  lips  of  the  prophet  with  the  tongs,  and  didst  take 
away  his  sins,  touch  also  the  hearts  of  us  sinners,  and  purify 
-7^  us  from  every  stain,  and  present  us  holy  beside  Thy  holy 
altar,  that  we  may  offer  Thee  a  sacrifice  of  praise  ;  and 
accept  from  us.  Thy  unprofitable  servants,  tlus^incense  as  an 
odour  of  a  sweet  smell,  and  make  fragrant  the  evil  odour  of 
our  soul  and  body,  and  purify  us  with  the  sanctifying  power 
of  Thy  all-holy  Spirit :  for  Thou  alone  art  holy,  who  sanc- 
tifiest,  and  art  communicated  to  the  faithful ;  and  glory 
becomes  Thee,  with  Thy  eternal  Father,  and  Thy  all-holy, 
and  good,  and  quickening  Spirit,  now  and  ever,  and  to  all 
eternity.     Amen. 

Prayer  of  the  commencement. 

IV.  O  beneficent  King  eternal,  and  Creator  of  the  universe, 
receive  Thy  church,  coming  unto  Thee  through  Thy  Christ : 
fulfil  to  each  what  is  profitable ;  lead  all  to  perfection,  and 
make  us  perfectly  worthy  of  the  grace  of  Thy  sanctification, 
gathering  us  together  within  Thy  holy  church,  which  Thou 
hast  purchased  by  the  precious  blood  of  Thy  only-begotten 
Son,  and  our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  with  whom 
Thou  art  blessed  and  glorified,  together  with  Thy  all-holy, 
and  good,  and  quickening  Spirit,  now  and  ever,  and  to  all 
eternity.     Amen. 

TJie  Deacon. 

V.  Let  us  again  pray  to  the  Lord. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  13 

Tlie  Priest^  prayer  of  the  incense  at  the  entrance  of  the 

congregation. 

God,  who  didst  accept  the  gifts  of  Abel,  the  sacrifice  of 
Noah  and  of  Abram,  tlie  incense  of  Aaron  and  of  Zacharias, 
acgept  also  from  the  hangLof  us  sinners  this  incense  for  an 
odour  of  a  sweet  smell,  aod  for  remission  of  our  sins,  and 
those  of  all  Thy  people ;  for  blessed  art  Thou,  and  glory 
becomes  Thee,  the  Father,  and  the  Son,  and  the  Holy  Spirit, 
now  and  ever. 

The  Deacon. 
Sir,  pronounce  the  blessing.^ 

The  Priest  iways. 

Our  Lord  and  God,  Jesus  Christ,  who  through  exceeding 
goodness  and  love  not  to  be  restrained  wast  crucified,  and 
didst  not  refuse  to  be  pierced  by  the  spear  and  nails ;  who 
didst  provide  this  mysterious  and  awful  service  as  an  everlast- 
ing memorial  for  us  perpetually :  bless  Thy  ministry  in  Christ 
the  God,  and  bless  our  entrance,  and  fully  complete  the  pre- 
sentation of  this  our  service  by  Thy  unutterable  compassion, 
now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternity.     Amen. 

T}ie  responsive  p>rayer  from  the  Deacon. 

VI.  The  Lord  bless  us,  and  make  us  worthy  seraphically 
to  offer  gifts,  and  to  sing  the  oft-sung  hymn  of  the  divine 
Trisagion,  by  the  fulness  and  exceeding  abundance  of  all  the 
perfection  of  holiness,  now  and  ever. 

TJien  the  Deacon  begins  to  sing  in  the  entrance. 

Thou  who  art  the  only-begotten  Son  and  Word  of  God, 
immortal ;  who  didst  submit  for  our  salvation  to  become 
flesh  of  the  holy  God-mother,  and  ever-virgin  Mary;  who 
didst  immutably  become  man  and  wast  crucified,  O  Christ 
our  God,  and  didst  by  Thy  death  tread  death  under  foot ; 
who  art  one  of  the  Holy  Trinity,  glorified  together  with  the 
Father  and  the  Holy  Spirit,  save  us. 
^  This  is  addressed  to  the  priest.    Some  translate,  "  0  Lord,  bless  us.'' 


14  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

The  Priest  says  this  prayer  from  the  gates  to  the  altar. 

>^  VII.  God  Almighty,  Lord  great  in  glory,  who  hast  given 
to  us  an  entrance  into  the  Holy  of  Holies,  through  the  sojourn- 
ing among  men  of  Thy  only-begotten  Son,  our  Lord,  and 
God,  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  we  supplicate  and  invoke  Thy 
'.  goodness,  since  we  are  fearful  and  trembling  when  about  to 
stand  at  Thy  holy  altar ;  send  forth  upon  us,  O  God,  Thy 
good  grace,  and  sanctify  our  souls,  and  bodies,  and  spirits, 
and  turn  our  thoughts  to  piety,  in  order  that  with  a  pu^ 
conscience  we  may  bring  unto  Thee  gifts,  offerings,  and  fruits 
for  the  remission  of  our  transgressions,  and  for  the  propitia- 
tion of  all  Thy  people,  by  the  grace  and  mercies  and  loving- 
kindness  of  Thy  only-begotten  Son,  with  whom  Thou  art 
blessed  to  all  eternity.     Amen. 

After  the  approach  to  the  altar,  the  Priest  says : 

VIII.  Peace  be  to  all. 

Tlie  People. 
And  to  thy  spirit. 

Tlie  Priest. 

The  Lord  bless  us  all,  and  sanctify  us  for  the  entrance 
and  celebration  of  the  divine  and  pure  mysteries,  giving  rest 
to  the  blessed  souls  among  the  good  and  just,  by  His  grace 
and  loving-kindness,  now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternity. 
Amen. 

Then  the  Deacon  says  the  lidding  prayer. 

IX.  In  peace  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  the  peace  that  is  from  above,  and  for  God's  love  to 
man,  and  for  the  salvation  of  our  souls,  let  us  beseech  the 
Lord. 

For  the  peace  of  the  whole  world,  for  the  unity  of  all  the 
/holy  churches  of  God,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  the  remission  of  our  sins,  and  forgiveness  of  our 
transgressions,  and  for  our  deliverance  from  all  tribulation, 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  15 

wratli,  danger,  and  distress,  and  from  the  uprising  of  our 
enemies,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

Then  the  Singers  sing  the  Trisagion  Hymn. 

Holy  God,  holy  mighty,  holy  immortal,  have  mercy  upon 
us. 

Tlien  the  Priest  prays ^  lowing. 

X.  O  compassionate  and  merciful,  long-suffering,  and  very 
gracious  and  true  God,  look  from  Thy  prepared  dwelling- 
place,  and  hear  us  Thy  suppliants,  and  deliver  us  from  every 
temptation  of  the  devil  and  of  man ;  withhold  not  Thy  aid 
from  us,  nor  bring  on  us  chastisements  too  heavy  for  our 
strength :  for  we  are  unable  to  overcome  what  is  opposed  to 
us;  but  Thou  art  able,  Lord,  to  save  us  from  everything 
that  is  against  us.  Save  us,  O  God,  from  the  difficulties  of 
this  world,  according  to  Thy  goodness,  in  order  that,  having 
drawn  nigh  with  a  pure  conscience  to  Thy  holy  altar,  we 
may  send  u£  to  Thee  without  condemnation  the  blessed 
hymn  Trisagion,  together  with  the  heavenly  powers,  and 
that,  having  performed  the  service,  well  pleasing  to  Thee 
and  divine,  we  may  be  counted  worthy  of  eternal  life. 

A  loud. 

Because  Thou  art  holy.  Lord  our  God,  and  dwellest  and 
abidest  in  holy  places,  we  send  up  the  praise  and  the  hymn 
Trisagion  to  Thee,  the  Father,  and  the  Son,  and  the  Holy 
Spirit,  now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternity. 


Amen. 

XI.  Peace  be  to  all. 

And  to  thy  spirit. 

Alleluia. 


The  People. 

The  Priest. 

TJie  People. 

The  Singers. 


^ 


16  EAIILY  LITURGIES. 

Tlien  there  are  read  in  order  the  holy  oracles  of  the  Old  Tes- 
tament, and  of  the  prophets ;  and,  the  incarnation  of  the  Son  of 
God  is  set  forth,  and  His  sufferings  and  resxirrection  from  the 
dead,  His  ascension  into  heaven,  and  His  second  appearing  loith 
glory ;  and  this  takes  place  daily  in  the  holy  and  divine  service. 

After  the  reading  and  instruction  the  Deacon  says  : 

XII.  Let  us  all  say.  Lord,  be  merciful. 

Lord  Almighty,  the  God  of  our  fathers,  we  beseech  Thee, 
hear  us. 

For  the  peace  which  is  from  above,  and  for  the  salvation 
of  our  souls,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  the  peace  of  the  whole  world,  and  the  unity  of  all  the 
holy  churches  of  God,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  the  salvation  and  help  of  all  the  Christ-loving  people, 
we  beseech  Thee,  hear  us. 

For  our  deliverance  from  all  tribulation,  wrath,  dano-er, 
distress,  from  captivity,  bitter  death,  and  from  our  iniquities, 
we  beseech  Thee,  hear  us. 

For  the  people  standing  round,  and  waiting  for  the  rich 
and  plenteous  mercy  that  is  from  Thee,  we  beseech  Thee,  be 
merciful  and  gracious. 

Save  Thy  people,  O  Lord,  and  bless  Thine  inheritance. 

Visit  Thy  world  in  mercy  and  compassion. 

Exalt  the  horn  of  Christians  by  the  power  of  the  precious 
and  quickening  cross. 

We  beseech  Thee,  most  merciful  Lord,  hear  us  praying  to 
Thee,  and  have  mercy  upon  us. 

The  People  thrice. 
Lord,  have  mercy  upon  us. 

The  Deacon. 

XIII.  For  the  remission  of  our  sins,  and  forgiveness  of 
our  transgressions,  and  for  our  deliverance  from  all  tribula- 
tion, wrath,  danger,  and  distress,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

Let  us  all  entreat  from  the  Lord,  that  we  may  pass  the 
whole  day,  perfect,  holy,  peaceful,  and  without  sin. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  17 

Let  us  entreat  from  tlie  Lord  a  messenger  of  peace,  a 
faithful  guide,  a  guardian  of  our  souls  and  bodies. 

Let  us  entreat  from  the  Lord  forgiveness  and  remission  of 
our  sins  and  transgressions. 

Let  us  entreat  from  the  Lord  the  things  which  are  good 
and  proper  for  our  souls,  and  peace  for  the  world. 

Let  us  entreat  from  the  Lord,  that  we  may  spend  the 
remaining  period  of  our  life  in  peace  and  health. 

Let  us  entreat  that  the  close  of  our  lives  may  be  Christian, 
without  pain  and  without  shame,  and  a  good  plea  at  the 
dread  and  awful  judgment-seat  of  Christ. 

Tlie  Priest. 

XIV.  For  Thou  art  the  gospel  and  the  light,  Saviour  and 
keeper  of  our  souls  and  bodies,  God,  and  Thy  only-begotten 
Son,  and  Thy  all-holy  Spirit,  now  and  ever. 

TJie  People. 
Amen. 

Tlie  Priest. 

[Commemorating  with  all  the  holy  and  just,  our  all-holy, 
pure,  most  glorious  Lady,  the  God-mother,  and  ever-virgin 
Mary,  let  us  devote  ourselves,  and  one  another,  and  our 
whole  life,  to  Christ  our  God.] 

Tlie  People. 
To  Thee,  Lord. 

The  Priest. 

God,  who  hast  taught  us  Thy  divdne  and  saving  oracles, 
enlighten  the  souls  of  us  sinners  for  the  comprehension  of 
the  things  which  have  been  before  spoken,  so  that  we  may 
not  only  be  seen  to  be  hearers  of  spiritual  things,  but  also 
doers  of  good  deeds,  striving  after  guileless  faith,  blameless 
life,  and  pure  conversation. 

Aloud. 
In  Christ  Jesus  our  Lord,  with  whom  Thou  art  blessed, 

B 


18  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

together  with  Thy  all-holy,  good,  and  quickening  Spirit,  now 
and  always,  and  for  ever. 


Amen. 

XV.  Peace  be  to  all. 

And  to  thy  spirit. 


The  People. 
Tlie  Priest. 
The  People. 


The  Deacon. 
Let  us  bow  our  heads  to  the  Lord 

The  People. 
To  Thee,  Lord. 

The  Priest  prays,  saying : 

O  Sovereign  giver  of  life,  and  provider  of  good  things,  who 
didst  give  to  mankind  the  blessed  hope  of  eternal  life,  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ,  count  us  worthy  in  holiness,  and  perfect 
this  Thy  divine  service  to  the  enjoyment  of  future  blessed- 
ness. 

A  loud. 

So  that,  guarded  by  Thy  power  at  all  times,  and  led  into 
the  light  of  truth,  we  may  send  up  the  praise  and  the  thanks- 
giving to  Thee,  the  Father,  the  Son,  and  the  Holy  Spirit, 
now  and  ever. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

The  Deacon. 

XVI.  Let  none  of  the  catechumens,  none  of  the  unbaptized, 
none  of  those  who  are  unable  to  join  with  us  in  prayer; 
look  at  one  another:  the  door:  all  erect  :^  let  us  again  pray 
to  the  Lord. 

^  These  clauses  are  elliptical.  After  "prayer"  supply  "remain;" 
the  door  is  for  "  shut  the  door ; "  and  "  all  erect,"  for  "  stand  all  erect." 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  19 

The  Priest  says  the  prayer  of  incense. 

Sovereign  Almighty,  King  of  Glory,  who  knowest  all 
things  before  their  creation,  manifest  Thyself  to  us  calling 
upon  Thee  at  this  holy  hour,  and  redeem  us  from  the  shame 
of  our  transgressions ;  cleanse  our  mind  and  our  thoughts 
from  impure  desires,  from  worldly  deceit,  from  all  influence 
of  the  devil ;  and  accept  from  the  hands  of  us  sinners  this 
incense,  as  Thou  didst  accept  the  offering  of  Abel,  and  Noah, 
and  Aaron,  and  Samuel,  and  of  all  Thy  saints,  guarding  us 
from  everything  evil,  and  preserving  us  for  continually  pleas- 
ing, and  worshipping,  and  glorifying  Thee,  the  Father,  and 
Thy  only-begotten  Son,  and  Thy  all-holy  Spirit,  now  and 
always,  and  for  ever. 

And  the  Readers  begin  the  Cherubic  Hymn. 

Let  all  mortal  flesh  be  silent,  and  stand  with  fear  and 
trembling,  and  meditate  nothing  earthly  within  itself:  for 
the  King  of  kings  and  Lord  of  lords,  Christ  our  God,  comes 
forward  to  be  sacrificed,  and  to  be  given  for  food  to  the 
faithful ;  and  the  bands  of  angels  go  before  Him  with  every 
power  and  dominion,  the  many-eyed  cherubim,  and  the  six- 
winged  seraphim,  covering  their  faces,  and  crying  aloud  the 
hymn.  Alleluia,  Alleluia,  Alleluia. 

The  Priest,  bringing  in  the  holy  gifts,  says  this  prayer : 

XVII.  O  God,  our  God,  who  didst  send  forth  the  heavenly 
bread,  the  food  of  the  whole  world,  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
to  be  a  Saviour,  and  Redeemer,  and  Benefactor,  blessino-  and 
sanctifying  us,  do  Thou  Thyself  bless  this  offering,  and  gra- 
ciously receive  it  to  Thy  altar  above  the  skies ;  remember  in 
Thy  goodness  and  love  those  who  have  brought  it,  and  those 
for  whom  they  have  brought  it,  and  preserve  us  without 
condemnation  in  the  service  of  Thy  divine  mysteries :  for 
hallowed  and  glorified  is  Thy  all-honoured  and  great  name, 
Father,  and  Son,  and  Holy  Spirit,  now  and  ever,  and  to  all 
eternity. 


J 


J 


20  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

TJie  Priest. 
Peace  be  to  all. 

The  Deacon. 

Sir,  pronounce  the  blessing. 

The  Priest. 

Blessed  be  God,  who  blesseth  and  sanctifieth  us  all  at  the 
presentation  of  the  divine  and  pure  mysteries,  and  giveth 
rest  to  the  blessed  souls  among  the  holy  and  just,  now  and 
always,  and  to  all  eternity. 

The  Deacon. 

XVIII.  Let  us  attend  in  wisdom. 

The  Priest  begins. 

I  believe  in  one  God,  Father  Almighty,  Maker  of  heaven 
and  earth,  and  in  one  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  the  Son  of  God. 
And  the  rest  of  the  creed. 

Then  he  prays,  bowing  his  neck. 

XIX.  God  and  Sovereign  of  all,  make  us,  who  are  un- 
worthy, worthy  of  this  hour,  lover  of  mankind;  that  being 
pure  from  all  deceit  and  all  hypocrisy,  we  may  be  united  with 
one  another  by  the  bond  of  peace  and  love,  being  confirmed 
by  the  sanctification  of  Thy  divine  knowledge  through  Thine 
only-begotten  Son,  our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  with 
whom  Thou  art  blessed,  together  with  Thy  all-holy,  and  good, 
and  quickening  Spirit,  now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternity. 
Amen. 

The  Deacon. 

XX.  Let  us  stand  well,  let  us  stand  reverently,  let  us 
stand  in  the  fear  of  God,  and  with  compunction  of  heart. 
In  peace  let  us  pray  to  the  Lord. 

The  Priest. 

For  God  of  peace,  mercy,  love,  compassion,  and  loving- 
kindness  art  Thou,  and  Thine  only-begotten  Son,  and  Thine 
all-holy  Spirit,  now  and  ever. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  21 

The  People. 
The  Priest. 
Tlie  People. 


Amen. 

Peace  be  to  all. 

And  to  thy  spirit. 


The  Deacon. 


Let  us  salute  one  another  with  an  holy  kiss.  Let  us  bow 
our  heads  to  the  Lord. 

The  Priest  hows,  saying  this  prayer : 

XXI.  Only  Lord  and  merciful  God,  on  those  who  are 
bowing  their  necks  before  Thy  holy  altar,  and  seeking  the 
spiritual  gifts  that  come  from  Thee,  send  forth  Thy  good 
grace ;  and  bless  us  all  with  every  spiritual  blessing,  that  can- 
not be  taken  from  us,  Thou,  who  dwellest  on  high,  and  hast 
regard  unto  things  that  are  lowly. 

Aloud. 

For  worthy  of  praise  and  worship  and  most  glorious  is  Thy 
all-holy  name.  Father  and  Son  and  Holy  Spirit,  now  and 
always,  and  to  all  eternity. 

The  Deacon. 
Sir,  pronounce  the  blessing. 

The  Priest. 

The  Lord  will  bless  us,  and  minister  with  us  all  by  His 
grace  and  loving-kindness. 

Aiid  again. 

The  Lord  will  bless  us,  and  make  us  worthy  to  stand  at 
His  holy  altar,  at  all  times,  now  and  always,  and  for  ever. 

A  nd  again. 
Blessed  be  God,  who  blesseth  and  sanctifieth  us  all  in  our 


J 


22  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

attendance  upon,  and  service  of,  His  pure  mysteries,  now  and 
always,  and  for  ever. 

The  Deacon  makes  the  Universal  Collect, 
XXII.  In  peace  let  us  pray  to  the  Lord. 

The  People. 
O  Lord,  have  mercy. 

The  Deacon. 

Save  us,  have  mercy  upon  us,  pity  and  keep  us,  O  God, 
by  Thy  grace. 

For  the  peace  that  is  from  above,  and  the  loving-kindness 
of  God,  and  the  salvation  of  our  souls,  let  us  beseech  the 
Lord. 

For  the  peace  of  the  whole  world,  and  the  unity  of  all  the 
holy  churches  of  God,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  those  who  bear  fruit,  and  labour  honourably  in  the 
holy  churches  of  God;  for  those  who  remember  the  poor, 
the  widows  and  the  orphans,  the  strangers  and  needy  ones ; 
and  for  those  who  have  requested  us  to  mention  them  in  our 
prayers,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  those  who  are  in  old  age  and  infirmity,  for  the  sick 
and  suffering,  and  those  who  are  troubled  by  unclean  spirits, 
for  their  speedy  cure  from  God  and  their  salvation,  let  us 
beseech  the  Lord. 

For  those  who  are  passing  their  days  in  virginity,  and 
celibacy,  and  discipline,  and  for  those  in  holy  matrimony;  and 
for  the  holy  fathers  and  brethren  agonizing  in  mountains, 
and  dens,  and  caves  of  the  earth,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  Christians  sailing,  travelling,  living  among  strangers, 
and  for  our  brethren  in  captivity,  in  exile,  in  prison,  and  in 
bitter  slavery,  their  peaceful  return,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  the  remission  of  our  sins,  and  forgiveness  of  our  trans- 
gressions, and  for  our  deliverance  from  all  tribulation,  wrath, 
danger,  and  constraint,  and  uprising  against  us  of  enemies,  let 
us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  favourable  weather,  peaceful  showers,  beneficent  dews. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  23 

abundance  of  fruits,  the  perfect  close  of  a  good  season,  and 
for  the  crown  of  the  year,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  our  fathers  and  brethren  present,  and  praying  with  us 
in  this  holy  hour,  and  at  every  season,  their  zeal,  labour,  and 
earnestness,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  every  Christian  soul  in  tribulation  and  distress,  and 
needing  the  mercy  and  succour  of  God ;  for  the  return  of  the 
erring,  the  health  of  the  sick,  the  deliverance  of  the  captives, 
the  rest  of  the  fathers  and  brethren  that  have  fallen  asleep 
aforetime,  let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

For  the  hearing  and  acceptance  of  our  prayer  before  God, 
and  the  sending  down  on  us  His  rich  mercies  and  compassion, 
let  us  beseech  the  Lord. 

Let  us  commemorate  our  all-holy,  pure,  most  glorious, 
blessed  lady,  God-mother,  and  ever  virgin  ^lary,  and  all  the 
holy  and  just,  that  we  may  all  find  mercy  through  their 
prayers  and  intercessions. 

And  for  the  offered,  precious,  heavenly,  unutterable,  pure, 
glorious,  dread,  awful,  divine  gifts,  and  the  salvation  of  the 
priest  who  stands  by  and  offers  them,  let  us  offer  supplica- 
tion to  God  the  Lord. 

The  People. 
O  Lord,  have  mercy. 

Tlirice. 

Then  the  Priest  makes  the  sign  of  the  cross  on  the  gifts, 
and  standing,  speaks  separately  thus  : 

XXIII.  Glory  to  God  in  the  highest,  and  on  earth  peace, 
goodwill  among  men. 

TJii'ice. 

Lord,  Thou  wilt  open  my  lips,  and  my  mouth  shall  show 
forth  Thy  praise. 

TJirice. 

Let  my  mouth  be  filled  with  Thy  praise,  O  Lord,  that  I 
may  tell  of  Thy  glory,  of  Thy  majesty,  all  the  day. 


V' 


24  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

Thrice. 

Of  the  Father.  Amen.  And  of  the  Son.  Amen.  And 
of  the  Holy  Spirit.  Amen.  Now  and  always,  and  to  all 
eternity.     Amen. 

And  bowing  to  this  side  and  to  that,  he  says : 

XXIV.  Magnify  the  Lord  with  me,  and  let  us  exalt  His 
name  together. 

And  they  answer ^  bowing : 

The  Holy  Ghost  shall  come  upon  thee,  and  the  power  of 
the  Highest  shall  overshadow  thee. 

T7ien  the  Priest,  at  great  length : 

/  O  Sovereign  Lord,  who  hast  visited  us  in  compassion  and 

^  mercies,  and  hast  freely  given  to  us,  Thy  humble  and  sinful 
and  unworthy  servants,  boldness  to  stand  at  Thy  holy  altar, 
and  to  offer  to  Thee  this  dread  and  bloodless  sacrifice  for  our 
^ins,  and  for  the  errors  of  the  people,  look  upon  me  Thy  un- 
profitable servant,  and  blot  out  my  transgressions  for  Thy 
compassion's  sake;  and  gurify  my  lips  and  heart  from  all 
pollution  of  flesh  and  spirit ;  and  remove  from  me  every 
shameful  and  foolish  thought,  and  fit  me  by  the  power  of 
Thy  all -holy  Spirit  for  this  service;  and  receive  me  gra- 
ciously by  Thy  goodness  as  I  draw  nigh  to  Thy  altar;  and  be 
pleased,  O  Lord,  that  these  gifts  brought  by  our  hands  may 
be  acceptable,  stooping  to  my  weakness;  and  cast  me  not 
away  from  Thy  presence,  and  abhor  not  my  unworthiness ; 
but  pity  me  according  to  Thy  great  mercy,  and  according  to 
the  multitude  of  Thy  mercies  pasj  by  my  transgressions,  that, 
having  come  before  Thy  glory  without  condemnation,  I  may 
be  counted  worthy  of  the  protection  of  Thy  only-begotten 
Son,  and  of  the  illumination  of  Thy  all-holy  Spirit,  that  I 
may  not  be  as  a  slave  of  sin  cast  out,  but  as  Thy  servant 
may  find  grace  and  mercy  and  forgiveness  of  sins  before 
Thee,  both  in  the  world  that  now  is  and  in  that  which  is  to 
come.     I  beseech  Thee,  Almighty  Sovereign,  all-powerful 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  25 

Lord,  hear  my  prayer ;  for  Thou  art  He  who  workest  all  in 
all,  and  we  all  seek  in  all  things  the  help  and  succour  that 
come  from  Thee  and  Thy  only-begotten  Son,  and  the  good 
and  quickening  and  consubstantial  Spirit,  now  and  ever. 

XXV.  O  God,  who  through  Thy  great  and  unspeakable 
love  didst  send  forth  Thy  only-begotten  Son  into  tlie  world, 
in  order  that  He  might  turn  back  the  lost  sheep,  turn_nfit      /■  j 
away  us  siniififferlaYi»e4tt>M-^Thee  by  this  dread  and  blood- 
logsjacnfice ;  for  we  trust  not  in  our  own  righteousness,  but 
in  Thy  good  mercy,  by  which  Thou  purchasest  our  race. 
We  entreat  and  beseech  Thy  goodness  that  it  may  not  be  for 
condemnation  to  Thy  people  that  this  mystery  for  salvation 
has  been  administered  by  us,  but  for  remission  of  sins,  for 
renewal  of  souls  and  bodies,  for  the  well-pleasing  of  Thee,  God 
and  Father,  in  the  mercy  and  love  of  Thy  only-begotten  Son, 
with  whom  Thou  art  blessed,  together  with  Thy  all-holy  and 
good  and  quickening  Spirit,  now  and  always,  and  for  ever. 

XXVI.  O  Lord  God,  who  didst  create  us,  and  bring  us  into 
life,  who  hast  shown  to  us  ways  to  salvation,  who  hast  granted 
to  us  a  revelation  of  heavenly  mysteries,  and  hast  appointed 
us  to  this  ministry  in  the  power  of  Thy  all-holy  Spirit,  grant,     . 
Yjb  Sovereign,  that  we  may  become  servants  of  Thy  new  testa-  -^ 
ment,  ministers  of  Thy  pure  mysteries,  and  receive  us  as  we 
draw  near  to  Thy  holy  altar,  according  to  the  greatness  of 
Thy  mercy,  that  we  may  become  worthy  of  offering  to  Thee 
gifts  and  sacrifices  for  our  transgressions  and  for  those  of  the 
people ;  and  grant  to  us,  O  Lord,  with  all  fear  and  a  pure  con- 
science to  offer  to  Thee  this  spiritual  and  bloodless  sacrifice, 
and  graciously  receiving  it  unto  Thy  holy  and  spiritual  altar 
^boye^the  skies  for  an  odour  of  a  sweet  spiritual  smell,  send 
d^pwn  in  answer  on  us  the  grace  of  Thy  all-holy  Spirit.    And, 
O  God,  look  upon  us,  and  have  regard  to  this  our  reasonable 
service,  and  accept  it,  a^s  Thou  didst  accept  the  gifts  of  Abel, 
the   sacrifices  of  Noah,  the  priestly  offices  of  Moses  and 
Aaron,  the  peace  -  offerings  of  Samuel,  the  repentance  of 
David,  the  incense  of  Zacharias.    As  Thou  didst  accept  from 
the  hand  of  Thy  apostles  this  true  service,  so  accept  also  in 
Thy  goodness  from  the  hands  of  us  sinners  these  offered  gifts; 


26  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

and  grant  that  our  offering  may  be  acceptable,  sanctified  by 
the  Holy  Spirit,  as  a  propitiation  for  our  transgressions  and 
the  errors  of  the  people,  and  for  the  rest  of  the  souls  that 
have  fallen  asleep  aforetime ;  that  we  also,  Thy  humble, 
sinful,  and  unworthy  servants,  being  counted  worthy  with- 
out guile  to  serve  Thy  holy  altar,  may  receive  the  reward  of 
faithful  and  wise  stewards,  and  may  find  grace  and  mercy  in 
the  terrible  day  of  Thy  just  and  good  retribution.  ^ 

Prayer  of  the  veil. 

XXVII.  We  thank  Thee,  O  Lord  our  God,  that  Thou  hast 
given  us  boldness  for  the  entrance  of  Thy  holy  places,  which 
Thou  hast  renewed  to  us  as  a  new  and  living  way  through 
the  veil  of  the  flesh  of  Thy  Christ.  We  therefore,  being 
counted  worthy  to  enter  into  the  place  of  the  tabernacle  of 
Thy  glory,  and  to  be  within  the  veil,  and  to  behold  the  Holy 
of  Holies,  cast  ourselves  down  before  Thy  goodness :  Lord, 
have  mercy  on  us :  since  we  are  full  of  fear  and  trembling, 
when  about  to  stand  at  Thy  holy  altar,  and  to  offer  this  dread 
and  bloodless  sacrifice  for  our  own  sins  and  for  the  errors  of 
the  people  :  send  forth,  O  God,  Thy  good  grace,  and  sanctify 
our  souls,  and  bodies,  and  spirits ;  and  turn  our  thoughts  to 
holiness,  that  with  a  pure  conscience  we  may  bring  to  Thee  an 
offering  of  peace,  a  sacrifice  of  praise. 

Aloud. 

By  the  mercy  and  loving-kindness  of  Thy  only-begotten 
Son,  with  whom  Thou  art  blessed,  together  with  Thy  all- 
holy,  and  good,  and  quickening  Spirit,  now  and  always. 


Amen. 

Peace  be  to  all. 


The  People. 
The  Priest. 


The  Deacon. 

Let  us  stand  reverently,  let  us  stand  in  the  fear  of  God, 
and  with  contrition  :  let  us  attend  to  the  holy  communion  ser- 
vice, to  offer  peace  to  God. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  27 

The  People. 
An  offering  of  peace,  a  sacrifice  of  praise. 

Tlie  Priest. 

And,  uncovering  the  robes  that  darkly  invest  in  symbol 
this  sacred  ceremonial,  do  Thou  reveal  it  clearly  to  us :  fill 
our  intellectual  vision  with  absolute  light,  and  having  purified 
our  poverty  from  every  pollution  of  flesh  and  spmt,  make  it 
worthy  of  this  dread  and  awful  a^jproach :  for  Thou  art  an_ 
all-merciful  and  graaous  God,  and  we  send  up  the  praise 
and  the  thanksgiving  to  Thee,  Father,  Son,  and  Holy  Spirit, 
now,  and  always,  and  for  ever. 

Then  he  says  aloud : 

XXVIII.  The  love  of  the  Lord  and  Father,  the  grace 
of  the  Lord  and  Son,  and  the  fellowship  and  the  gift  of  the 
Holy  Spirit,  be  with  us  all. 

The  People. 
And  with  thy  spirit. 

T/ie  Priest. 
Let  us  lift  up  our  minds  and  our  hearts. 

The  Peojyle. 
It  is  becoming  and  right. 


o 


Then  the  Priest  prays. 

Verily  it  is  becoming  and  right,  proper  and  due  to  praise 
Thee,  to  sing  of  Thee,  to  bless  Thee,  to  worship  Thee,  to 
glorify  Thee,  to  give  Thee  thanks,  ^laker  of  every  creature 
visible  and  invisible,  the  treasure  of  eternal  good  things,  the 
fountain  of  life  and  immortality,  God  and  Lord  of  all,  whom 
the  heavens  of  heavens  praise,  and  all  the  host  of  them ;  the 
sun,  and  the  moon,  and  all  the  choir  of  the  stars ;  earth,  sea, 
and  all  that  is  in  them  ;  Jerusalem,  the  heavenly  assembly, 
and  church  of  the  first-born  that  are  written  in  heaven;  spirits 
of  just  men  and  of  prophets;  souls  of  martyrs  and  of  apostles; 


/ 


sy 


28  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

angels,  archangels,  thrones,  dominions,  principalities,  and 
authorities,  and  dread  powers ;  and  the  many-eyed  cherubim, 
and  the  six-winged  seraphim,  which  cover  their  faces  with 
two  wings,  their  feet  with  two,  and  with  two  they  fly,  crying 
one  to  another  with  unresting  lips,  with  unceasing  praises. 

Aloud. 

With  loud  voice  singing  the  victorious  hymn  of  Thy 
majestic  glory,  crying  aloud,  praising,  shouting,  and  saying ; 

The  People. 

Holy,  holy,  holy,  O  Lord  of  Sabaoth,  the  heaven  and  the 
earth  are  full  of  Thy  glory.  Hosanna  in  the  highest ;  blessed 
is  He  that  cometh  in  the  name  of  the  Lord.  Hosanna  in 
the  highest. 

The  Priest,  mahing  the  sign  of  the  cross  on  the  gifts^  says : 

XXIX.  Holy  art  Thou,  King  of  eternity,  and  Lord  and 
giver  of  all  holiness  ;  holy  also  Thy  only-begotten  Son,  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ,  by  whom  Thou  hast  made  all  things ;  holy 
also  Thy  Holy  Spirit,  which  searches  all  things,  even  Thy  deep 
things,  O  God :  holy  art  Thou,  almighty,  all-powerful,  good, 
dread,  merciful,  most  compassionate  to  Thy  creatures ;  who 
didst  make  man  from  earth  after  Thine  own  imaee  and  like- 
ness ;  who  didst  give  him  the  joy  of  paradise ;  and  when  he 
transgressed  Thy  commandment,  and  fell  away,  didst  not 
disregard  nor  desert  him,  O  Good  One,  but  didst  chasten 
him  as  a  merciful  father,  call  him  by  the  law,  instruct  him 
by  the  prophets;  and  afterwards  didst  send  forth  Thine 
only-begotten  Sou  Himself,  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  into  the 
world,  that  He  by  His  coming  might  renew  and  restore  Thy 
image ;  who,  having  descended  from  heaven,  and  become 
flesh  of  the  Holy  Spirit  and  Virgin  God-mother  Mary,  and 
having  sojourned  among  men,  fulfilled  the  dispensation  for  the 
salvation  of  our  race ;  and  being  about  to  endure  His  volun- 
tary and  life-giving  death  by  the  cross.  He  the  sinless  for  us 
the  sinners,  in  the  night  in  which  He  was  betrayed,  nay,  rather 
delivered  Himself  up  for  the  life  and  salvation  of  the  world, 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  29 

Then  the  Priest  holds  the  bread  in  his  hand,  and  says : 

XXX.  Having  taken  the  bread  in  His  holy  and  pure  and 
blameless  and  immortal  hands,  lifting  up  His  eyes  to  heaven, 
and  showing  it  to  Thee,  His  God  and  Father,  He  gave 
thanks,  and  hallowed,  and  broke,  and  gave  it  to  us,  His  dis- 
ciples and  apostles,  saying : 

The  Deacons  say: 
For  the  remission  of  sins  and  life  everlasting. 

Then  he  says  alotid: 
Take,  eat :  this  is  my  body,  broken  for  you,  and  given  for 
remission  of  sins. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

TJien  he  takes  the  ciipj  and  says : 

In  like  manner,  after  supper,  He  took  the  cup,  and  having 
mixed  wine  and  water,  lifting  up  His  eyes  to  heaven,  and 
presenting  it  to  Thee,  His  God  and  Father,  He  gave  thanks, 
and  hallowed  and  blessed  it,  and  filled  it  with  the  Holy  Spirit, 
and  gave  it  to  us  His  disciples,  saying,  Di'ink  ye  all  of  it ; 
this  is  my  blood  of  the  new  testament  shed  for  you  and 
many,  and  distributed  for  the  remission, of  sins. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

The  Priest. 

This  do  in  remembrance  of  me ;  for  as  often  as  ye  eat  this 
bread,  and  drink  this  cup,  ye  do  show  forth  the  Lord's  death, 
and  confess  His  resurrection,  till  He  come. 

The  Deacons  say: 
"We  believe  and  confess. 

The  People. 

We  show  forth  Thy  death,  O  Lord,  and  confess  Thy  re- 
surrection. 


^^ 


30  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

The  Priest. 

XXXI.  Remembering,  therefore,  His  life-giving  suffer- 
ings. His  savinir  cross,  His  death  and  His  burial,  and  resurrec- 
tion  from  the  dead  on  the  third  day,  and  His  ascension  into 
heaven,  and  sitting  at  the  right  hand  of  Thee,  our  God  and 
Father,  and  His  second  glorious  and  awful  appearing,  when 
He  shall  come  with  glory  to  judge  the  quick  and  the  dead, 
and  render  to  every  one  according  to  His  works ;  even  we, 
sinful  men,  offer  unto  Thee,  O  Lord,  this  dread  and  blood- 
less sacrifice,  praying  that  Thou  wilt  not  deal  with  us  after 
our  sins,  nor  reward  us  according  to  our  iniquities ;  but  that 
Thou,  according  to  Thy  mercy  and  Thy  unspeakable  loving- 
kindness,  passing  by  and  blotting  out  the  handwriting  against 
us  Thy  suppliants,  wilt  grant  to  us  Thy  heavenly  and  eternal 
gifigj  which  eye  hath  not  seen,  and  ear  hath  not  heard,  and 
which  have  not  entered  into  the  heart  of  man  (to  conceive) 
that  Thou  hast  prepared,  O  God,  for  those  who  love  Thee ; 
and  reject  not,  O  loving  Lord,  the  people  for  my  sake,-Qr 
for  my  sin's  sake. 

Then  he  says^  thrice : 
For  Thy  people  and  Thy  church  supplicate  Thee. 

The  People. 
Have  mercy  on  us,  O  Lord  our  God,  Father  Almighty. 

Again  the  Priest  says  : 

XXXII.  Have  mercy  upon  us,  O  God  Almighty. 
Have  mercy  upon  us,  O  God  our  Saviour. 

Have  mercy  upon  us,  O  God,  according  to  Thy  great 
mercy,  and  send  forth  on  us,  and  on  these  offered  gifts,  Thy 
all-holy  Spirit. 

Then,  bowing  his  neck,  he  says : 

The  sovereign  and  quickening  Spirit,  that  sits  upon  the 
throne  with  Thee,  our  God  and  Father,  and  with  Thy  only- 
begotten  Son,  reigning  with  Thee;  the  consubstantial  and 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  31 

co-eternal ;  that  spoke  in  the  law  and  in  the  prophets,  and 
in  Thy  New  Testament;  that  descended  in  the  form  of  a  dove 
on  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  at  the  river  Jordan,  and  abode  on 
Him  ;  that  descended  on  Thy  apostles  in  the  form  of  tongues 
of  fire  in  the  upper  room  of  the  holy  and  glorious  Zion  on 
the  day  of  Pentecost :  this  Thine  all-holy  Spirit,  send  down, 
O  Lord,  upon  us,  and  upon  these  offered  holy  gifts ; 

And  rising  up,  he  says  aloud: 

That  coming,  by  His  holy  and  good  and  glorious  appear- 
ing, He  may  sanctify  this  bread,  and  make  it  the  holy  body 
of  Thy  Christ. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

The  Priest. 
And  this  cup  the  precious  blood  of  Thy  Christ. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

The  Priest  by  himself  standing. 

XXXIII.  That  they  may  be  to  all  that  partake  of  them       V^ 
for  remission  of  sins,  and  for  life  everlasting,  for  the  sancti- 
fication  of  souls  and  of  bodies,  for  bearing  the  fruit  of  good 
works,  for  the  stablishing  of  Thy  holy  catholic  church,  which 
Thou  hast  founded  on  the  rock  of  faith,  that  the  gates  of 

hell  may  not  prevail  against  it ;  delivering  it  from  all  heresy 
and  scandals,  and  from  those  who  work  iniquity,  keeping  it 
till  the  fulness  of  the  time. 

And  having  bowed,  he  says: 

XXXIV.  We  present  them  to  Thee  also,  O  Lord,  for  the 
holy  places,  which  Thou  hast  glorified  by  the  divine  appear- 
ing of  Thy  Christ,  and  by  the  visitation  of  Thy  all-holy 
Spirit;  especially  for  the  glorious  Zion,  the  mother  of  all 
the  churches;    and  for  Thy  holy,  catholic,  and    apostolic 


32  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

church  throughout  the  world  :  even  now,  0  Lord,  bestow 
upon  her  the  rich  gifts  of  Thy  all-holy  Spirit. 

Remember  also,  O  Lord,  our  holy  fathers  and  brethren  in 
it,  and  the  bishops  in  all  the  world,  who  rightly  divide  the 
word  of  Thy  truth. 

Remember  also,  O  Lord,  every  city  and  country,  and 
those  of  the  true  faith  dwelling  in  them,  their  peace  and 
security. 

Remember,  O  Lord,  Christians  sailing,  travelling,  sojourn- 
ing in  strange  lands;  our  fathers  and  brethren,  who  are  in 
bonds,  prison,  captivity,  and  exile;  who  are  in  mines,  and 
under  torture,  and  in  bitter  slavery. 

Remember,  O  Lord,  the  sick  and  afflicted,  and  those 
troubled  by  unclean  spirits,  their  speedy  healing  from  Thee, 
O  God,  and  their  salvation. 

Remember,  O  Lord,  every  Christian  soul  in  affliction  and 
distress,  needing  Thy  mercy  and  succour,  O  God;  and  the 
return  of  the  erring. 

Remember,  O  Lord,  our  fathers  and  brethren,  tolling  hard, 
and  ministering  unto  us,  for  Thy  holy  name's  sake. 

Remember  all,  O  Lord,  for  good :  have  mercy  on  all,  O 
Lord,  be  reconciled  to  us  all :  give  peace  to  the  multitudes 
of  Thy  people :  put  away  scandals :  bring  wars  to  an  end : 
make  the  uprising  of  heresies  to  cease :  grant  Thy  peace  and 
Thy  love  to  us,  O  God  our  Saviour,  the  hope  of  all  the 
ends  of  the  earth. 

Remember,  O  Lord,  favourable  weather,  peaceful  showers, 
beneficent  dews,  abundance  of  fruits,  and  to  crown  the  year 
with  Thy  goodness ;  for  the  eyes  of  all  wait  on  Thee,  and 
Thou  givest  their  food  in  due  season  :  thou  openest  Thy  hand, 
and  fillest  every  living  thing  with  gladness. 

Remember,  O  Lord,  those  who  bear  fruit,  and  labour 
honourably  in  the  holy  (services)  of  Thy  church ;  and  those 
who  forget  not  the  poor,  the  widows,  the  orphans,  the 
strangers,  and  the  needy ;  and  all  who  have  desired  us  to 
remember  them  in  our  prayers.  Moreover,  O  Lord,  be 
pleased  to  remember  those  who  have  brought  these  offerings 
this    day  to  Thy  holy  altar,  and  for  what  each  one  has 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  33 

brought  them  or  with  what  mind,  and  those  persons  who 
have  just  now  been  mentioned  to  Thee. 

Remember,  O  Lord,  according  to  the  multitude  of  Thy 
mercy  and  compassion,  me  also.  Thy  humble  and  unprofitable 
servant ;  and  the  deacons  who  surround  Thy  holy  altar,  and 
graciously  give  them  a  blameless  life,  keep  thi^ir  ministry 
undefiled,  and  purchase  for  them  a  good  degree,  that  we  may 
fnid  mercy  and  grace,  with  all  the  saints  that  have  been  well 
pleasing  to  Thee  since  the  world  began,  to  generation  and 
generation — grandsires,  sires,  patriarchs,  prophets,  apostles, 
martyrs,  confessors,  teachers,  saints,  and  every  just  spirit 
made  perfect  in  the  faith  of  Thy  Christ. 

XXXV.  Hail,  Mary,  highly  favoured :  the  Lord  is  with 
Thee ;  blessed  art  thou  among  women,  and  blessed  the  fruit 
of  thy  womb,  for  thou  didst  bear  the  Saviour  of  our  souls. 

Then  the  Priest  says  aloud : 

Hail  in  the  highest,  our  all-holy,  pure,  most  blessed,  glorious 
Liftdy,  the  God-mother  and  ever-yh*gij^  Mary. 

The  Singers. 

Verily  it  is  becoming  to  bless  Thee,  the  God-bearing,  the 
ever-blessed,  and  all-blameless,  and  mother  of  our  God,  more 
honourable  than  the  cherubim,  and  incomparably  more 
glorious  than  the  seraphim  :  thee,  wdio  didst  bear  with  purity 
God  the  Word,  thee  the  true  God-mother,  we  magnify. 

And  again  they  sing: 

In  thee,  highly  favoured,  all  creation  rejoices,  the  host  of 
angels,  and  the  race  of  men;  hallowed  temple,  and  spiritual 
paradise,  pride  of  virgins,  of  whom  God  was  made  flesh  and 
our  God,  who  was  before  eternity,  became  a  little  child  :  for 
He  made  Thy  womb  His  throne,  and  Thy  belly  broader  than 
the  heavens.  In  thee,  O  highly  favoured  one,  all  creation 
rejoices  :  glory  unto  thee. 

The  Deacons. 
XXXVI.  Eemember  us,  O  Lord  God. 


L 


34  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

Tlie  Priest,  boiving,  says  : 

Remember,  O  Lord  God,  the  spirits  and  all  flesh,  of  whom 
we  have  made  mention,  and  of  whom  we  have  not  made 
mention,  who  are  of  the  true  faith,  from  righteous  Abel 
unto  this  day :  unto  them  do  Thou  give  rest  there  in  the 
land  of  the  living,  in  Thy  kingdom,  in  the  joy  of  paradise, 
in  the  bosom  of  Abraham,  and  of  Isaac,  and  of  Jacob,  our 
holy  fathers ;  whence  pain,  and  grief,  and  lamentation  have 
fled :  there  the  light  of  Thy  countenance  looks  upon  them, 
and  enlishtens  them  for  ever.  Make  the  end  of  our  lives 
Christian,  acceptable,  blameless,  and  peaceful,  O  Lord,  O 
Lord,  gathering  us  together  under  the  feet  of  Thine  elect, 
when  Thou  wilt,  and  as  Thou  wilt ;  only  without  shame  and 
transgressions,  through  Thy  only-begotten  Son,  our  Lord  and 
God  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ :  for  He  is  the  only  sinless 
one  who  hath  appeared  on  the  earth. 

The  Deacon. 

And  for  the  peace  and  stablishing  of  the  whole  world,  and 
of  the  holy  churches  of  God,  and  for  the  purposes  for  which 
each  one  made  his  offering,  or  according  to  the  desire  he  has : 
and  for  the  people  standing  round,  and  for  all  men,  and  all 
women. 

The  People. 
And  for  all  men  and  all  women. 

The  Priest  says  aloud  : 

Wherefore,  both  to  them  and  to  us,  do  Thou  in  Thy  good- 
ness and  love, 

The  People. 

Forgive,  remit,  pardon,  O  God,  our  transgressions,  volun- 
tary and  involuntary :  in  deed  and  in  word :  in  knowledge 
and  in  ignorance:  by  night  and  by  day:  in  thought  and 
intent :  in  Thy  goodness  and  love,  forgive  us  them  all. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  35 


The  Priest. 

Through  the  grace  and  compassion  and  love  of  Thy  only- 
begotten  Son,  with  wliom  Thou  art  blessed  and  glorified, 
together  with  the  all-holy,  and  good,  and  quickening  Spirit, 
now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternity. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

The  Priest. 
XXXVII.  Peace  be  to  all. 

The  People. 
And  to  thy  spirit. 

The  Deacon. 

Again,  and  continually,  in  peace  let  us  pray  to  the  Lord. 
For  the  gifts  to  the  Lord  God  presented  and  sanctified, 
precious,  heavenly,  unspeakable,  pure,  glorious,  dread,  awful, 
divine,  let  us  pray. 

That  the  Lord  our  God,  having  graciously  received  them 
to  His  altar  that  is  holy  and  above  the  heavens,  rational  and 
spiritual,  for  the  odour  of  a  sweet  spiritual  savour,  may  send 
down  in  answer  upon  us  the  divine  grace  and  the  gift  of  the 
all-holy  Spirit,  let  us  pray. 

Having  prayed  for  the  unity  of  the  faith,  and  the  commu- 
nion of  His  all-holy  and  adorable  Spirit,  let  us  commend  our- 
selves and  one  another,  and  our  whole  life,  to  Christ  our  God. 


The  People. 


Lmen. 


The  Priest  prays. 

XXXVIII.  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord  and  God  and 
Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  the  glorious  Lord,  the  blessed  essence, 
the  bounteous  goodness,  the  God  and  Sovereign  of  all,  who 
art  blessed  to  all  eternity,  who  sittest  upon  the  cherubim,  and 
art  glorified  by  the  seraphim,  before  whom  stand  tliousand 
thousands   and  ten  thousand  times  ten  thousand  hosts  of 


36  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

angels  and  archangels:  Thou  hast  accepted  the  gifts,  offerings, 

and  fruits  brought  unto  Thee  as  an  odour  of  a  sweet  spiritual 

smell,  and  hast  been  pleased  to  sanctify  them,  and  make  them 

perfect,  O  good  One,  by  the  grace  of  Thy  Christ,  and  by  the 

presence  of  Thy  all-holy  Spirit.     Sa,nctify  also,  O  Lord,  our 

souls,  and  bodies,  and  spirits,  and  touch  our  understandings, 

and  search  our  consciences,  and  cast  out  from  us  every  evil 

imagination,  every  impure  feeling,  every  base  desire,  every 

t  unbecoming  thought,  all  envy,   and  vanity,  and  hypocrisy, 

all  lying,  all  deceit,  every  worldly  affection,  all  covetousness, 

(all  vainglory,  all  indifference,  all  vice,  all  passion,  all  anger, 

\^\  malice,  all  blasphemy,  every  motion   of  the  flesh  and 

.spirit  that  is  not  in  accordance  with  Thy  holy  will. 

A  loud. 

And  count  us  worthy,  O  loving  Lord,  with  boldness, 
without  condemnation,  in  a  pure  heart,  with  a  contrite  spirit, 
with  unshamed  face,  with  sanctified  lips,  to  dare  to  call  upon 
Thee,  the  holy  God,  Father  in  heaven,  and  to  say, 

The  People. 

Our  Father,  which  art  in  heaven :  hallowed  be  Thy 
name  ;  and  so  on. 

\ 
^  The  Priest,  bowing,  says : 

And  lead  us  not  into  temptation.  Lord,  Lord  of  Hosts,  who 
knowest  our  frailty,  but  deliver  us  from  the  evil  one  and  his 
works,  and  from  all  his  malice  and  craftiness,  for  the  sake 
of  Thy  holy  name,  which  has  been  placed  upon  our  humility. 

Aloud. 

For  Thine  is  the  kingdom,  the  power,  and  the  glory, 
Father,  Son,  and  Holy  Spirit,  now  and  for  ever. 

TTie  People. 
Amen. 

The  Priest. 
XXXIX.  Peace  be  to  all. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  37 

The  People. 
And  to  thy  spirit. 

The  Deacon. 
Let  us  bow  our  heads  to  the  Lord. 

The  People. 
To  Thee,  O  Lord. 

The  Priest  prays,  speaking  thus : 

To  Thee,  O  Lord,  we  Thy  servants  have  bowed  our  heads 
before  Thy  holy  altar,  waiting  for  the  rich  mercies  that  are 
from  Thee,  Send  forth  upon  us,  O  Lord,  Thy  plenteous 
grace  and  Thy  blessing;  and  sanctify  our  souls,  bodies,  and 
spirits,  that  we  may  become  worthy  communicants  and  par- 
takers of  Thy  holy  mysteries,  to  the  forgiveness  of  sins  and 
life_everlasting. 

Aloud. 

For  adorable  and  glorified  art  Thou,  our  God,  and  Thy 
only-begotten  Son,  and  Thy  all-holy  Spirit,  now  and  ever. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

The  Priest  says  aloud : 

And  the  grace  and  the  mercies  of  the  holy  and  consub- 
stantial,  and  uncreated,  and  adorable  Trinity,  shall  be  with 
us  all. 

The  People. 
And  with  thy  spirit. 

The  Deacon. 
In  the  fear  of  God,  let  us  attend. 

The  Priest,  elevating  the  gifts,  says  secretly  : 

O  holy  Lord,  that  abidest  in  holy  places,  sanctify  us  by 
the  word  of  Thy  grace,  and  by  the  visitation  of  Thy  all-holy 


38  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

Spirit :  for  Thou,  O  Lord,  hast  said,  Ye  will  be  holy,  for  I 
am  holy.  O  Lord  our  God,  incomprehensible  Word  of  God, 
one  in  substance  with  the  Father  and  the  Holy  Spirit,  co- 
eternal  and  indivisible,  accept  the  pure  hymn,  in  Thy  holy 
and  bloodless  sacrifices ;  with  the  cherubim,  and  seraphim, 
and  from  me,  a  sinful  man,  crying  and  saying. 

Aloud. 
XL.  The  holy  things  unto  the  holy. 

The  People. 

One  holy,  one  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  to  the  glory  of  God  the 
Father,  to  whom  be  glory  to  all  eternity. 

The  Deacon. 

XLI.  For  the  remission  of  our  sins,  and  the  propitiation 
of  our  souls,  and  for  every  soul  in  tribulation  and  distress, 
needing  the  mercy  and  succour  of  God,  and  for  the  return  of 
the  erring,  the  healing  of  the  sick,  the  deliverance  of  the  cap- 
tives, the  rest  of  our  fathers  and  brethren,  who  have  fallen 
asleep  aforetime,  let  us  all  say  fervently,  Lord,  have  mercy. 

The  People. 
Lord,  have  mercy.     Twelve  times. 

Then  the  Priest  breaks  the  bread,  and  holds  the  half  in  his 
right  hand,  and  the  half  in  his  left,  and  dips  that  in  his 
right  hand  in  the  chalice,  saying : 

The  union  of  the  all-holy  body  and  precious  blood  of  our 
^    Lord  and  God  and  Saviour,  Jesus  Christ. 

Then  he  makes  the  sign  of  the  cross  on  that  in  his  left  hand: 
then  with  that  which  has  been  signed  the  other  half:  then 
forthwith  he  begins  to  divide,  and  before  all  to  give  to 
each  chalice  a  single  piece,  saying : 

It  has  been  made  one,  and  sanctified,  and  perfected,  in  the 
name  of  the  Father,  and  of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Spirit, 
now  and  ever. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  39 

And  tohen  he  makes  the  sign  of  the  cross  on  the  bread,  he 

says : 

Behold  the  Lamb  of  God,  the  Son  of  the  Father,  that 
taketh  away  the  sin  of  the  world,  sacrificed  for  the  life  and 
salvation  of  the  world. 

And  when  he  gives  a  single  piece  to  each  chalice,  he  says  : 

A  holy  portion  of  Christ,  full  of  grace  and  truth,  of  the 
Father,  and  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  to  whom  be  the  glory  and  the 
power  to  all  eternity. 

Then  he  begins  to  divide,  and  to  say : 

XLII.  The  Lord  is  my  Shepherd,  I  shall  not  want.  In 
green  pastures,  and  so  on  (Ps.  xxiii.). 

Then, 
I  will  bless  the  Lord  at  all  times,  and  so  on  (Ps.  xxxiv.). 

Then, 
I  will  extol  Thee,  my  God,  O  King,  and  so  on  (Ps.  cxlv.). 

Then, 
O  praise  the  Lord,  all  ye  nations,  and  so  on  (Ps.  cxvii.). 

The  Deacon. 
Sir,  pronounce  the  blessing. 

The  Priest. 

The  Lord  will  bless  us,  and  keep  us  without  condemnation 
for  the  participation  of  His  pure  gifts,  now  and  always,  and 
for  ever. 

And  when  they  have  filled,  the  Deacon  says: 
Sir,  pronounce  the  blessing. 

The  Priest  says : 

The  Lord  will  bless  us,  and  make  us  worthy  wj^tli  the,  pure       "^^ 
touchings  of  our  fingers  to  take  the  live  coal,  and  place  it 


40  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

upon  the  mouths  of  the  faithful  for  the  purification  and  re- 
newal of  their  souls  and  bodies,  now  and  always. 

Then, 

O  taste  and  see  that  the  Lord  is  good,  who  is  parted  and 
not  divided,  distributed  to  the  faithful  and  not  expended,  for 
the  remission  of  sins,  and  the  life  everlasting,  now  and  always, 
and  for  ever. 

The  Deacon. 
In  the  peace  of  Christ,  let  us  sing. 

The  Singers. 
O  taste  and  see  that  the  Lord  is  good. 

Tlie  Priest  says  the  prayer  before  the  communion. 
\y^  O  Lord  our  God,  the  heavenly  breadj  the  life  of  the 
universe,  I  have  sinned  against  Heaven,  and  before  Thee, 
and  am  not  worthy  to  partake  of  Thy  pure  mysteries ;  but 
as  a  merciful  God,  make  me  worthy  by  Thy  grace,  without 
condemnation  to  partake  of  Thy  holy  body  and  precious 
blood,  for  the  remission  of  sins,  and  life  everlasting. 

XLIII.  Then  he  distributes  to  the  clergy;  and  ichen  the 
deacons  take  the  disks  ^  and  the  chalices  for  distribution  to 
the  people,  the  Deacon,  who  takes  the  first  disk,  says. 

Sir,  pronounce  the  blessing. 

The  Priest  replies : 
Glory  to  God  who  has  sanctified  and  is  sanctifying  us  all. 

The  Deacon  says : 

Be  Thou  exalted,  O  God,  over  the  heavens,  and  Thy 
glory  over  all  the  earth,  and  Thy  kingdom  endureth  to  all 
eternity. 

And  when  the  Deacon  is  about  to  put  it  on  the  side-table,  the 

Priest  says : 

Blessed  be  the  name  of  the  Lord  our  God  for  ever. 

^  Or  patens. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  41 

The  Deacon. 
In  the  fear  of  God,  and  in  faith  and  love,  draw  nigh. 

The  People. 
Blessed  is  He  that  cometh  in  the  name  of  the  Lord.  ^' 

And  again,  xvhen  he  lifts  the  disk  from  the  side-table.,  he  says: 
Sir,  pronounce  the  blessing. 

The  Priest. 
Save  Thy  people,  O  God,  and  bless  Thine  inheritance. 

The  Priest  again. 
Glory  to  our  God,  who  has  sanctified  us  all.  u-- 

And  when  he  has  put  the  chalice  back  on  the  holy  table,  the 

Priest  says: 

Blessed  be  the  name  of  the  Lord  to  all  eternity. 

TJie  Deacons  and  the  People  say : 

Fill  our  mouths  with  Thy  praise,  O  Lord,  and  fill  our 
lips  with  joy,  that  we  may  sing  of  Thy  glory,  of  Thy  great- 
ness all  the  day. 

Ajid  again : 

We  render  thanks  to  Thee,  Christ  our  God,  that  Thou 

hast  made  us  worthy  to  partake  of  Thy  body  and  blood,  for  K 

the  remission  of  sins,  and  for  life  everlasting.     Do  Thou,  in  >^"'*''  ^ 

Thy  goodness  and  love,  keep  us,  we  pray  Thee,  without  con-  kv^«M"  ' 

demnation.  v* 

The  prayer  of  incense  at  the  last  entrance. 

XLIV.  We  render  thanks  to  Thee,  the  Saviour  and  God 
of  all,  for  all  the  good  things  Thou  hast  given  us,  and  for  the 
participation  of  Thy  holy  and  pure  mysteries,  and  we  offer 
to  Thee  this  incense,  praying:  Keep  us  under  the  shadow  of 
Thy  wings,  and  count  us  worthy  till  our  last  breath  to  par- 


42  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

take  of  Thy  holy  rites  for  the  sanctiflcation  of  our  souls  and 
bodies,  for  the  inheritance  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven:  for 
Thou,  O  God,  art  our  sanctifi cation,  and  we  send  up  praise 
and  thanksgiving  to  Thee,  Father,  Son,  and  Holy  Spirit. 

The  Deacon  begins  in  the  entrance. 

Glory  to  Thee,  glory  to  Thee,  glory  to  Thee,  O  Christ 
the  King,  only-begotten  Word  of  the  Father,  that  Thou 
hast  counted  us,  Thy  sinful  and  unworthy  servants,  worthy 
to  enjoy  thy  pure  mysteries  for  the  remission  of  sins,  and 
for  life  everlasting :  glory  to  Thee. 

And  when  he  has  made  the  entrance,  the  Deacon  begins  to 

speak  thus : 

XLV.  Again  and  again,  and  at  all  times,  in  peace,  let  us 
beseech  the  Lord. 

That  the  participation  of  His  holy  rites  may  be  to  us  for 
the  turning  away  from  every  wicked  thing,  for  our  support 
on  the  journey  to  life  everlasting,  for  the  communion  and 
gift  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  let  us  pray. 

The  Priest  prays. 

Commemorating  our  all-holy,  pure,  most  glorious,  blessed 
Lady,  the  God-Mother  and  Ever- Virgin  Mary,  and  all  the 
saints  that  have  been  well-pleasing  to  Thee  since  the  world 
began,  let  us  devote  ourselves,  and  one  another,  and  our 
whole  life,  to  Christ  our  God. 


') 


The  People. 
To  Thee,  O  Lord. 

The  Priest. 

XL VI.  O  God,  who  through  Thy  great  and  unspeakable 
love  didst  condescend  to  the  weakness  of  Thy  servants,  and 
hast  jcpuiit^d_us  worthy  to  partake  of  this  heavenly  table, 
condemn  not  us  sinners  for  the  participation  of  Thy  pure 
mysteries ;  but  keep  us,  O  good  One,  in  the  sanctification  of 
Thy  Holy  Spirit,  that  being  made  holy,  we  may  find  part 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  43 

and  inheritance  with  all  Thy  saints  that  have  been  well- 
pleasing  to  Thee  since  the  world  began,  in  the  light  of  Thy 
countenance,  through  the  mercy  of  Thy  only-begotten  Son, 
our  Lord  and  God  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  with  whom 
Thou  art  blessed,  together  with  Thy  all-holy,  and  good,  and 
quickening  Spirit :  for  blessed  and  glorified  is  Thy  all- 
precious  and  glorious  name,  Father,  Son,  and  Holy  Spirit, 
now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternity. 


Amen. 

Peace  be  to  all. 

And  to  thy  spirit. 


The  People. 
The  Priest. 
The  People. 


The  Deacon. 
XL VII.  Let  us  bow  our  heads  to  the  Lord. 

The  Priest. 

O  God,  great  and  marvellous,  look  upon  Thy  servants,  for 
w^  have  bowed  our  heads  to  Thee.  Stretch  forth  Thy  hand, 
strong  and  full  of  blessings,  and  bless  Thy  people.  Keep 
Thine  inheritance,  that  always  and  at  all  times  we  may 
glorify  Thee,  our  only  living  and  true  God,  the  holy  and  con- 
substantial  Trinity,  Father,  Son,  and  Holy  Ghost,  now  and 
ever,  and  to  all  eternitv. 

Aloud. 

For  unto  Thee  is  becoming  and  is  due  praise  from  us  all, 
and  honour,  and  adoration,  and  thanksgiving,  Father,  Son, 
and  Holy  Spirit,  now  and  ever. 

The  Deacon. 
XL VIII.  In  the  peace  of  Christ  let  us  sing. 

And  again  he  says  : 
In  the  peace  of  Christ  let  us  go  on. 


44  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

The  People. 
In  the  name  of  the  Lord.     Sir,  pronounce  the  blessing. 

Dismission  prayer,  spoken  by  the  Deacon. 

Going  on  from  glory  to  glory,  we  praise  Thee,  the  Saviour 
of  our  souls.  Glory  to  Father,  and  Son,  and  Holy  Spirit 
now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternity.  We  praise  Thee,  the 
Saviour  of  our  souls. 

The  Priest  says  a  prayer  from  the  altar  to  the  sacristy. 

XLIX.  Going  on  from  strength  to  strength,  and  having 
fulfilled  all  the  divine  service  in  Thy  temple,  even  now  we 
beseech  Thee,  O  Lord  our  God,  make  us  worthy  of  perfect 
loving-kindness  ;  make  straight  our  path  :  root  us  in  Thy 
fear,  and  make  us  worthy  of  the  heavenly  kingdom,  in  Christ 
Jesus  our  Lord,  with  whom  Thou  art  blessed,  together  with 
Thy  all-holy,  and  good,  and  quickening  Spirit,  now  and 
always,  and  for  ever. 

The  Deacon. 
L.  Again  and  again,  and  at  all  times,  in  peace  let  us 
beseech  the  Lord. 

Prayer  said  in  the  sacristy  after  the  dismissal. 
Thou  hast  given  unto  us,  O  Lord,  sanctification  in  the 
communion  of  the  all-holy  body  and  precious  blood  of  Thy 
only-begotten  Son,  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  give  unto  us  also 
the  grace  of  Thy  good  Spirit,  and  keep  us  blameless  in  the 
faith,  lead  us  unto  perfect  adoption  and  redemption,  and  to 
the  coming  joys  of  eternity ;  for  Thou  art  our  sanctification 
and  light,  O  God,  and  Thy  only-begotten  Son,  and  Thy  all- 
holy  Spirit,  now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternity.     Amen. 

The  Deacon. 
In  the  peace  of  Christ  let  us  keep  watch. 

The  Priest. 
Blessed  is  God,  who  blesseth  and  sanctifieth  through  the 
communion  of  the  holy,  and  quickening,  and  pure  mysteries, 
now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternitv.     Amen. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  JAMES.  45 

Tlien  the  prayer  of  propitiation. 

O  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  Son  of  the  living  God,  Lamb  and 
Shepherd,  who  takest  away  the  sin  of  the  world,  who  didst 
freely  forgive  their  debt  to  the  two  debtors,  and  gavest  re- 
mission of  her  sins  to  the  woman  that  was  a  sinner,  who 
gavest  healing  to  the  paralytic,  with  the  remission  of  his  sins  ; 
forgive,  remit,  pardon,  O  God,  our  offences,  voluntary  and  / 
involuntary,  in  knowledge  and  in  ignorance,  by  transgres- 
sion and  by  disobedience,  which  Thy  all-holy  Spirit  knows 
better  than  Thy  servants  do :  and  if  men,  carnal  and  dwell- 
ing in  this  world,  have  in  aught  erred  from  Thy  command- 
ments, either  moved  by  the  devil,  whether  in  word  or  in  deed, 
or  if  they  have  come  under  a  curse,  or  by  reason  of  some 
special  vow,  1  entreat  and  beseech  Thy  unspeakable  loving- 
kindness,  that  they  may  be  set  free  from  their  word,  and 
released  from  the  oath  and  the  special  vow,  according  to  Thy 
goodness.  Verily,  O  Sovei'eign  Lord,  hear  my  supplication 
on  behalf  of  Thy  servants,  and  do  Thou  pass  by  all  their 
errors,  remembering  them  no  more ;  forgive  them  every  ^^ 
transgression,  voluntary  and  involuntary  ;  deliver  them  from 
everlasting  punishment :  for  Thou  art  He  that  hast  com- 
manded us,  saying,  Whatsoever  things  ye  bind  upon  earth, 
shall  be  bound  in  heaven ;  and  whatsoever  things  ye  loose 
upon  earth,  shall  be  loosed  in  heaven :  for  thou  art  our  God, 
a  God  able  to  pity,  and  to  save  and  to  forgive  sins ;  and  glory 
is  due  unto  Thee,  with  the  eternal  Father,  and  the  quicken- 
ing Spirit,  now  and  ever,  and  to  all  eternity.     Amen. 


II. 

THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  THE  HOLY  APOSTLE 
AND  EVANGELIST  MAEK, 

THE   DISCIPLE    OF   THE   HOLY   PETER. 


The  Priest. 


The  People. 


Tlie  Deacon. 


I.  Peace  be  to  all. 

And  to  thy  spirit. 

Pray. 

The  People. 
Lord,  have  mercy ;  Lord,  have  mercy ;  Lord,  have  mercy. 

The  Priest  prays. 

We  give  Thee  thanks,  yea,  more  than  thanks,  O  Lord  our 
God,  the  Father  of  our  Lord  and  God  and  Saviour  Jesus 
Christ,  for  all  Thy  goodness  at  all  times  and  in  all  places, 
because  Thou  hast  shielded,  rescued,  helped,  and  guided  us 
all  the  days  of  our  lives,  and  brought  us  unto  this  hour, 
permitting  us  again  to  stand  before  Thee  in  Thy  holy  place, 
that  we  may  implore  forgiveness  of  our  sins  and  propitiation 
to  all  Thy  people.  We  pray  and  beseech  Thee,  merciful 
God,  to  grant  in  Thy  goodness  that  we  may  spend  this  holy 
day  and  all  the  time  of  our  lives  without  sin,  in  fulness  of 
joy,  health,  safety,  holiness,  and  reverence  of  Thee.  But 
all  envy,  all  fear,  all  temptation,  all  the  influence  of  Satan, 

47 


48  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

all  the  snares  of  wicked  men,  do  Thou,  O  Lord,  drive  away 
from  us,  and  from  Thy  holy  catholic  and  apostolic  church. 
Bestow  upon  us,  O  Lord,  what  is  good  and  meet.  What- 
ever sin  we  commit  in  thought,  word,  or  deed,  do  Thou 
in  Thy  goodness  and  mercy  be  pleased  to  pardon.  Leave 
us  not,  O  Lord,  while  we  hope  in  Thee ;  nor  lead  us  into 
temptation,  but  deliver  us  from  the  evil  one  and  from  his 
works,  through  the  grace,  mercy,  and  love  of  Thine  only- 
begotten  Son. 

In  a  loud  voice. 

Through  whom  and  with  whom  be  glory  and  power  to 
Thee,  in  Thy  most  holy,  good,  and  life-giving  Spirit,  now, 
henceforth,  and  for  evermore. 


Amen. 

II.  Peace  be  to  all. 

And  to  thy  spirit. 
Pray  for  the  king.^ 


The  People. 
The  Priest. 
The  Peo'ple. 

Tlie  Deacon. 


The  People. 
Lord,  have  mercy ;  Lord,  have  mercy ;  Lord,  have  mercy. 

The  Priest  prays. 

O  God,  Sovereign  Lord,  the  Father  of  our  Lord  and  God 
and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  we  pray  and  beseech  Thee  to 
grant  that  our  king  may  enjoy  peace,  and  be  just  and  brave. 
Subdue  under  him,  O  God,  all  his  adversaries  and  enemies. 
Gird  on  Thy  shield  and  armour,  and  rise  to  his  aid.  Give 
him  the  victory,  O  God,  that  his  heart  may  be  set  on  peace 

^  Rather  "  for  the  emperor,"  says  Renaudot ;  and  the  word  jietutMiig 
will  stand  this  meaning. 


THE  DIVINE  LITUllGY  OF  MARK.  49 

and  the  praise  of  Thy  holy  name,  that  we  too  in  his  peace- 
ful reign  may  spend  a  calm  and  tranquil  life  in  all  rever- 
ence and  godly  fear,  through  the  grace,  mercy,  and  love  of 
Thine  only-begotten  Son. 

In  a  loud  voice. 

Through  whom  and  with  whom  be  glory  and  power  to 
Thee,  with  Thy  most  holy,  good,  and  life-giving  Spirit,  now, 
henceforth,  and  for  evermore. 


Lmen. 


III.  Peace  be  to  all. 
And  to  thy  spirit. 


The  People. 
The  Priest. 
Tlie  People. 


The  Deacon. 
Pray  for  the  pope  and  the  bishop. 

The  People. 
Lord,  have  mercy ;  Lord,  have  mercy ;  Lord,  have  mercy. 

The  Priest. 

O  Sovereign  and  Almighty  God,  the  Father  of  our  Lord, 
God,  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  we  pray  and  beseech  Thee  to 
defend  in  Thy  good  mercy  our  most  holy  and  blessed  high 
priest  Pope  A^  and  our  most  reverend  Bishop  A.  Preserve 
them  for  us  through  many  years  in  peace,  while  they  accord- 
ing to  Thy  holy  and  blessed  will  fulfil  the  sacred  priesthood 
committed  to  their  care,  and  dispense  aright  the  word  of  truth; 
with  all  the  orthodox  bishops,  elders,  deacons,  sub-deacons, 
readers,  singers,  and  laity,  with  the  entire  body  of  the  holy 

^  The  Patriarch  of  Alexandria  is  meant.  The  word  tutx;  was  used 
at  first  to  designate  all  bishops ;  but  its  application  gradually  became 
more  restricted,  and  so  here  the  Patriarch  of  Alexandria  is  called  cracraj, 
as  being  superior  to  the  bishops  of  his  patriarchate. 

D 


50  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

and  only  catholic  church.  Graciously  bestow  upon  them 
peace,  health,  and  salvation.  The  prayers  they  offer  up 
for  us,  and  we  for  them,  do  Thou,  O  Lord,  receive  at  Thy 
holy,  heavenly,  and  reasonable  altar.  But  all  the  enemies 
of  Thy  holy  church  put  Thou  speedily  under  their  feet, 
through  the  grace,  mercy,  and  love  of  Thine  only-begotten 
Son. 

Aloud. 

Through  whom  and  with  whom  be  glory  and  power  to 
Thee,  with  Thy  all-holy,  good,  and  life-giving  Spirit,  now, 
henceforth,  and  for  evermore. 


Amen. 

IV.  Peace  be  to  all. 
And  to  thy  spirit. 
Stand  and  pray. 


The  People. 
The  Priest. 

The  People. 
The  Deacon. 


The  People. 
Lord  have  mercy  (thrice). 

The  Priest  ojfers  up  the  prayer  of  entrance^  and  for  incense. 

The  Priest. 

O  Sovereign  Lord  our  God,  who  hast  chosen  the  lamp  of 
the  twelve  apostles  with  its  twelve  lights,  and  hast  sent  them 
forth  to  proclaim  throughout  the  whole  world  and  teach  the 
gospel  of  Thy  kingdom,  and  to  heal  sickness  and  every  weak- 
ness among  the  people,  and  hast  breathed  upon  their  faces 
and  said  unto  them,  "  Receive  the  Holy  Spirit  the  Comforter  : 
whosesoever  sins  ye  remit,  they  are  remitted  unto  them  ;  and 
whosesoever  sins  ye  retain,  they  are  retained :"  Breathe  also 
^  This  is  the  "  little  entrance." 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  MARK.  ol 

Thy  Holy  Spirit  upon  us  Thy  servants,  wlio,  standing 
around,  are  about  to  enter  on  Thy  lioly  service,  [bestow- 
ing what  is  meet]  ^  upon  tlie  bishops,  ciders,  deacons, 
readers,  singers,  and  laity,  with  the  entire  body  of  the  holy 
catholic  and  apostolic  church.  From  the  curse  and  execra- 
tion, from  condemnation,  imprisonment,  and  banishment, 
and  from  the  portion  of  the  adversary,  O  Lord,  deliver  us. 
Purify  our  lives  and  cleanse  our  hearts  from  all  pollution 
and  from  all  wickedness,  that  with  pure  heart  and  conscience 
we  may  offer  to  Thee  this  incense  for  a  sweet-smelling  savour, 
and  for  the  remission  of  our  sins  and  the  sins  of  all  Thy 
people,  through  the  grace,  mercy,  and  love  of  Thine  only- 
begotten  Son. 

A  loud. 

Through  whom  and  with  whom  be  the  glory  and  the 
power  to  Thee,  with  Thy  all-holy,  good,  and  life-giving 
Spirit,  now,  henceforth,  and  for  evermore. 

The  People^ 
Amen. 

Tlie  Deacon. 
V.  Stand. 

They  sing  the  "  Onli/-hegotten  Son  and  Word.^^ " 

The  Gospel  is  carried  in,  and  the  Deacon  says : 
Let  us  pray. 

The  Priest. 


Peace  be  to  all. 
And  to  thy  spirit. 
Let  us  pray. 


The  People. 
The  Deacon. 


^  The  text  here  is  defective.    Some  suppose  that  a  sentence  has  been 
lost. 

2  Given  in  full  in  c.  W.  of  the  Liturgy  of  James. 


52  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

The  People. 
Lord,  have  mercy. 

The  Priest  says  the  prayer  of  the  Trisagion. 

O  Sovereign  Lord  Christ  Jesus,  the  co-eternal  Word  of  the 
eternal  Father,  who  wast  made  in  all  things  like  as  we  are, 
but  without  sin,  for  the  salvation  of  our  race  ;  who  hast  sent 
forth  Thy  holy  disciples  and  apostles  to  proclaim  and  teach 
the  gospel  of  Thy  kingdom,  and  to  heal  all  disease,  all  sick- 
ness among  Thy  people,  be  pleased  now,  O  Lord,  to  send 
forth  Thy  light  and  Thy  truth.  Enlighten  the  eyes  of  our 
minds,  that  we  may  understand  Thy  divine  oracles.  Fit  us 
to  become  hearers,  and  not  only  hearers,  but  doers  of  Thy 
word,  that  we,  becoming  fruitful,  and  yielding  good  fruit 
from  thirty  to  an  hundred  fold,  may  be  deemed  worthy  of 
the  kino;dom  of  heaven. 

Aloud. 

Let  Thy  mercy  speedily  overtake  us,  O  Lord.  For  Thou 
art  the  bringer  of  good  tidings,  the  Saviour  and  Guardian 
of  our  souls  and  bodies ;  and  we  offer  glory,  thanks,  and  the 
Trisagion  to  Thee,  the  Father,  Son,  and  Holy  Ghost,  now, 
henceforth,  and  for  evermore. 

The  People. 
Amen. 
Holy  God,  holy  mighty,  holy  immortal. 

VI.  After  the  Trisagion  the  Priest  makes  the  sign  of  the  cross 
upon  the  j^eople,  and  says  : 
Peace  be  to  all. 

The  People. 
And  to  thy  spirit. 

Then  follow  the  Trpoa-^di/jiev  (let  us  attend) ;   The  Apostle  and 
Prologue  of  the  Hallelujah.     The  Deacons,  after  a  pre- 
scribed form,  say  : 
Lord,  bless  us.^ 

^  See  note  on  p.  13. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  MARK.  53 

The  Priest  saijs  : 

May  the  Lord  in  His  mercy  bless  and  help  us,  now, 
henceforth,  and  for  evermore. 

The  Priest,  before  the  Gospel  is  read,  ojjers  incense,  and  says  : 

Accept  at  Thy  holy,  heavenly,  and  reasonable  altar,  O 
Lord,  the  incense  we  offer  in  presence  of  Thy  sacred  glory. 
Send  down  upon  us  in  return  the  grace  of  Thy  Holy  Spirit, 
for  Thou  art  blessed,  and  let  Thy  glory  encircle  us. 

VH.   The  Deacon,  ivhen  he  is  about  to  read  the  Gospel,  says  : 
Lord,  bless  us. 

The  Priest. 

May  the  Lord,  who  is  the  blessed  God,  bless  and  strengthen 
us,  and  make  us  hearers  of  His  holy  Gospel,  now,  hence- 
forth, and  for  evermore.     Amen. 

The  Deacon. 
Stand  and  let  us  hear  the  holy  Gospel. 

The  Priest. 


Peace  be  to  all. 


And  to  thy  spirit. 


The  People. 


Vni.   The  Deacon  reads  the  Gospel,  and  the  Priest  says  the 
prayer  of  the  Collect  (jyjv  avvdinr^v). 

Look  down  in  mercy  and  compassion,  O  Lord,  and  heal 
the  sick  among  Thy  people.  May  all  our  brethren  who 
have  gone  or  who  are  about  to  go  abroad,  safely  reach  their 
destination  in  due  season.  Send  down  the  gracious  rain 
upon  the  thirsty  lands,  and  make  the  rivers  flow  in  full 
stream,  according  to  Thy  grace.  The  fruits  of  the  land  do 
Thou,  O  Lord,  fill  with  seed  and  make  ripe  for  the  harvest. 
In  peace,   courage,  justice,   and    tranquillity   preserve   the 


5i  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

kingdom  of  Thy  servant,  whom  Thou  hast  deemed  worthy 
to  reign  over  this  land.  From  evil  days,  from  famine  and 
pestilence,  from  the  assault  of  barbarians,  defend,  O  Lord, 
this  Christ-loving  city,  lowly  and  worthy  of  Thy  compassion, 
as  Thou  didst  spare  Nineveh  of  old ;  for  Thou  art  full  of 
mercy  and  compassion,  and  rememberest  not  the  iniquities 
of  men  against  them.  Thou  hast  said  through  Thy  prophet 
Isaiah,  "  I  will  defend  this  city,  to  save  it  for  mine  own 
sake,  and  for  my  servant  David's  sake."  Wherefore  we  pray 
and  beseech  Thee  to  defend  in  Thy  good  mercy  this  city,  for 
the  sake  of  the  martyr  and  evangelist  Mark,  who  has  shown 
us  the  way  of  salvation  through  the  grace,  mercy,  and  love 
of  Thine  only-begotten  Son. 

Aloud. 

Through  whom  and  with  whom  be  glory  and  power  to 
Thee,  with  Thy  all-holy,  good,  and  life-giving  Spirit. 

The  Deacon. 
IX.  Beo;in. 

Then  they  say  the  verse.     The  Deacon  says  the  three.^ 

The  Priest. 

O  Sovereign  and  Almighty  God,  the  Father  of  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ,  we  pray  and  beseech  Thee  to  fill  our  hearts 
with  the  peace  of  heaven,  and  to  bestow  moreover  the  peace 
of  this  life.  Preserve  for  us  through  many  years  our  most 
holy  and  blessed  Pope  A  [Patriarch],  and  our  most  pious 
Bishop  J,  while  they,  according  to  Thy  holy  and  blessed 
will,  peacefully  fulfil  the  holy  priesthood  committed  to  their 
care,  and  dispense  aright  the  word  of  truth,  with  all  the 
orthodox  bishops,  ciders,  deacons,  sub-deacons,  readers, 
singers,  with  the  entire  body  of  the  holy  catholic  and  apos- 
tolic church.  Bless  our  meetings,  O  Lord.  Grant  that  we 
may  hold  them  without  let  or  hindrance,  according  to  Thy 
holy  will.  Be  pleased  to  give  to  us,  and  Thy  servants  after 
us  for  ever,  houses  of  praise  and  prayer.  Rise,  O  Lord,  and 
^  Probably  by  the  three  are  meant  three  prayers. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  MARK.  55 

let  Thine  enemies  be  scattered.  Let  all  who  hate  Thy  holy 
name  be  put  to  flif^ht.  Bless  Thy  faithful  and  orthodox 
people.  Multiply  them  by  thousands  and  tens  of  thousands. 
Let  no  deadly  sin  prevail  against  them,  or  against  Thy 
lioly  people,  through  the  grace,  mercy,  and  love  of  Thine 
only-begotten  Son. 

A  loud. 

Through  whom  and  with  whom  be  glory  and  power  to 
Thee,  with  Thy  all-holy,  good,  and  life-giving  Spirit. 


Amen. 

Peace  be  to  all. 

And  to  thy  spirit. 


TJie  People. 
The  Priest. 
The  People. 


The  Deacon. 
Talre  care  that  none  of  the  catechumens — ^ 
Then  iliey  sing  "  The  Cherubim''  mystically. 

X.  The  Priest  offers  incense  at  the  entrance^  and  prays  : 

O  Lord  our  God,  who  lackest  nothing,  accept  this  incense 
offered  by  -an  unworthy  hand,  and  deem  us  all  worthy  of 
Thy  blessing,  for  Thou  art  our  sanctlfication,  and  we  ascribe 
glory  to  Thee. 

The  holy  things  are  carried  to  the  altar,  and  the  Priest  prays 

thus : 

O  holy,  highest,  awe-inspiring  God,  who  dwellest  among 
the  saints,  sanctify  us,  and  deem  us  worthy  of  Thy  reverend 
priesthood.  Bring  us  to  Thy  precious  altar  with  a  good 
conscience,  and  cleanse  our  hearts  from  all  pollution.  Drive 
away  from  us  all  unholy  thoughts,  and  sanctify  our  souls 
and  minds.  Grant  that,  with  reverence  of  Thee,  we  may 
perform  the  service  of  our  holy  fathers,  and  propitiate  Thy 
^  Some  such  word  as  "  remain  "  is  intentionally  omitted. 


56  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

presence  through  all  time;  for  Thou  art  He  who  blesseth 
and  sanctifieth  all  things,  and  to  Thee  we  ascribe  glory  and 
thanks. 

The  Deacon. 

XI.  Salute  one  another. 

The  Priest  says  the  prayer  of  salutation. 

0  Sovereign  and  Almighty  Lord,  look  down  from  heaven 
on  Thy  church,  on  all  Thy  people,  and  on  all  Thy  flock. 
Save  us  all,  Thy  unworthy  servants,  the  sheep  of  Thy  fold. 
Give  us  Thy  peace,  Thy  help,  and  Thy  love,  and  send  to 
us  the  gift  of  Thy  Holy  Spirit,  that  with  a  pure  heart  and 
a  good  conscience  w^e  may  salute  one  another  with  an  holy 
kiss,  without  hypocrisy,  and  with  no  hostile  purpose,  but 
guileless  and  pure  in  one  spirit,  in  the  bond  of  peace  and 
love,  one  body  and  one  spirit,  in  one  faith,  even  as  we  have 
been  called  in  one  hope  of  our  calling,  that  we  may  all  meet 
in  the  divine  and  boundless  love,  in  Christ  Jesus  our  Lord, 
with  whom  Thou  art  blessed. 

Then  the  Priest  offers  the  incense,  and  says : 

The  incense  is  offered  to  Thy  name.  Let  it  ascend,  we 
implore  Thee,  from  the  hands  of  Thy  poor  and  sinful  ser- 
vants to  Thy  heavenly  altar  for  a  sweet-smelling  savour,  and 
the  propitiation  of  all  Thy  people.  For  all  glory,  honour, 
adoration,  and  thanks  are  due  unto  Thee,  the  Father,  Son, 
and  Holy  Ghost,  now,  henceforth,  and  for  evermore.    Amen. 

After  the  " salutation^^  the  Deacon  in  a  loud  voice  says : 

XII.  Stand  and  make  the  offering  duly. 

The  Priest,  maJcing  the  sign  of  the  cross  over  the  disks  and 
chalices,  says  in  a  loud  voice : 

1  believe  in  one  God,  etc. 

The  Deacon. 
Stand  for  prayer. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  MA  UK.  57 

The  Priest. 
Peace  be  to  all. 

The  Deacon. 
Pray  for  those  who  present  the  offering. 

The  Priest  says  the  prayer  of  oblation  (tt)?  irpoOea-cwi). 

O  Sovereign  Lord,  Christ  Jesus  the  Word,  who  art  equal 
in  power  with  the  Father  and  the  Holy  Spirit,  the  great  high 
priest ;  the  bread  that  came  down  from  heaven,  and  saved 
our  souls  from  ruin  ;  who  gavest  Thyself,  a  spotless  Lamb, 
for  the  life  of  the  world :  we  pray  and  beseech  Thee,  O  Lord, 
in  Thy  mercy,  to  let  Thy  presence  rest  upon  this  bread  and 
these  chalices  on  the  all-holy  table,  while  angels,  archangels, 
and  Thy  holy  priests  stand  round  and  minister  for  Thy  glory 
and  the  renewing  of  our  souls,  through  the  grace,  mercy, 
and  love  of  Thine  only-begotten  Son,  through  whom  and  with 
whom  be  glory  and  power  to  Thee. 

And  lohen  the  People  say, 
And  from  the  Holy  Spirit  was  He  made  flesh ; 

The  Priest  makes  the  sign  of  the  cross,  and  says  : 
And  was  crucified  for  us. 

The  Priest  makes  the  sign  of  the  cross  again,  and  says : 
And  to  the  Holy  Spirit. 

XIH.  In  like  manner  also,  after  the  Creed,  he  makes  the  sign 
of  the  cross  upon  the  people,  and  says  aloud  : 

The  Lord  be  with  all. 

The  People. 
And  with  thy  spirit. 

T7te  Priest. 
Let  us  lift  up  our  hearts. 


58  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

The  People, 
We  lift  them  up  to  the  Lord. 


Let  us  give  thanks  to  the  Lord. 


The  Priest. 
;he  Lord. 

The  People. 


It  is  meet  and  right. 

The  Deacon. 
•  •  •  •  • 

The  Priest  begins  the  Anaphora. 

O  Lord  God,  Sovereign  and  Almighty  Father,  truly  it 
is  meet  and  right,  holy  and  becoming,  and  good  for  our  souls, 
to  praise,  bless,  and  thank  Thee;  to  make  open  confession 
to  Thee  by  day  and  night  with  voice,  lips,  and  heart  without 
ceasing ;  to  Thee  who  hast  made  the  heaven,  and  all  that  is 
therein  ;  the  earth,  and  all  that  is  therein  ;  the  sea,  fountains, 
rivers,  lakes,  and  all  that  is  therein  ;  to  Thee  who,  after 
Thine  own  image  and  likeness,  hast  made  man,  upon  whom 
Thou  didst  also  bestow  the  joys  of  Paradise ;  and  when  he 
trespassed  against  Thee,  Thou  didst  neither  neglect  nor  for- 
sake him,  good  Lord,  but  didst  recall  him  by  Thy  law, 
instruct  him  by  Thy  prophets,  restore  and  renew  him  by 
this  awful,  life-giving,  and  heavenly  mystery.  And  all  this 
Thou  hast  done  by  Thy  wisdom  and  the  light  of  truth.  Thine 
only-begotten  Son,  our  Lord,  God,  and  Saviour  Jesus 
Christ,  through  whom,  thanking  Thee  with  Him  and  the 
Holy  Spirit,  we  offer  this  reasonable  and  bloodless  sacrifice, 
which  all  nations,  from  the  rising  to  the  setting  of  the  sun, 
from  the  north  and  the  south,  present  to  Thee,  O  Lord ;  for 
great  is  Thy  name  among  all  peoples,  and  in  all  places  are 
incense,  sacrifice,  and  oblation  offered  to  Thy  holy  name. 

XIV.  We  pray  and  beseech  Thee,  O  Lord,  to  remember 
in  Thy  good  mercy  the  holy  and  only  catholic  and  apostolic 
church  throughout  the  whole  world,  and  all  Thy  people,  and 
all  the  sheep  of  this  fold.  Vouchsafe  to  the  hearts  of  all  of 
us  the  peace  of  heaven,  but  grant  us  also  the  peace  of  this  life. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  MARK.  59 

Guide  and  direct  in  all  peace  the  king  [or  emperor],  army, 
magistrates,  councils,^  peoples,  and  neighbourhoods,  and  all 
our  outfToings  and  inconiinn-s. 

O  King  of  Peace,  grant  us  Thy  peace  in  unity  and  love. 
May  we  be  Thine,  O  Lord ;  for  we  know  no  other  God  but 
Thee,  and  name  no  other  name  but  Thine.  Give  life  unto 
the  souls  of  all  of  us,  and  let  no  deadly  sin  prevail  against 
us,  or  against  all  Thy  people. 

Look  down  in  mercy  and  compassion,  O  Lord,  and  heal 
the  sick  among  Thy  people.  Deliver  them  and  us,  O  Lord, 
from  sickness  and  disease,  and  drive  away  the  spirit  of  weak- 
ness. Raise  up  those  who  have  been  long  afflicted,  and  heal 
those  who  are  vexed  with  unclean  spirits.  Have  mercy  on 
all  who  are  in  prison,  or  in  mines,  or  on  trial,  or  condemned, 
or  in  exile,  or  crushed  by  cruel  bondage  or  tribute.  Deliver 
them,  O  Lord,  for  Thou  art  our  God,  who  settest  the  captives 
free  ;  who  raisest  up  the  down-trodden  ;  who  givest  hope  to 
the  hopeless,  and  help  to  the  helpless ;  who  liftest  up  the 
fallen ;  who  givest  refuge  to  the  shipwrecked,  and  vengeance 
to  the  oppressed.  Pity,  relieve,  and  restore  every  Chris- 
tian soul  that  is  afflicted  or  wandering.  But  do  Thou,  O 
Lord,  the  physician  of  our  souls  and  bodies,  the  guardian 
of  all  flesh,  look  down,  and  by  Thy  saving  power  heal  all  the 
diseases  of  soul  and  body.  Guide  and  prosper  our  brethren 
who  have  gone  or  who  are  about  to  go  abroad.  Whether 
they  travel  by  land,  or  river,  or  lake,  by  public  road,  or  in 
whatever  way  journeying,  bring  them  everywhere  to  a  safe 
and  tranquil  haven.  Be  pleased  to  be  with  them  by  land 
and  sea,  and  restore  them  in  health  and  joy  to  joyful  and 
healthful  homes.  Ever  defend,  O  Lord,  our  journey  through 
this  life  from  trouble  and  storm.  Send  down  rich  and 
copious  showers  on  the  dry  and  thirsty  lands.  Gladden  and 
revive  the  face  of  the  earth,  that  it  may  spring  forth  and  re- 
joice in  the  raindrops.     Make  the  rivers  flow  in  full  stream. 

Gladden  and  revive  the  face  of  the  earth  with  the  swellinor 
waters.  Fill  all  the  channels  of  the  streams,  and  multiply 
the  fruits  of  the  earth.     Bless,  O  Lord,  the  fruits  of  the 

^  /3ot/Xaj,  senates. 


60  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

earth,  and  keep  them  safe  and  unharmed.  Fill  them  with 
seed,  and  make  them  ripe  for  the  harvest.  Bless  even  now, 
O  Lord,  Thy  yearly  crown  of  blessing  for  the  sake  of  the 
poor  of  Thy  people,  the  widow,  the  orphan,  and  the  stranger, 
and  for  the  sake  of  all  of  us  who  have  our  hope  in  Thee 
and  call  upon  Thy  holy  name  ;  for  the  eyes  of  all  are  upon 
Thee,  and  Thou  givest  them  bread  in  due  season.  O  Thou 
who  givest  food  to  all  flesh,  fill  our  hearts  with  joy  and  glad- 
ness, that  at  all  times,  having  all  sufficiency,  we  may  abound 
to  every  good  work  in  Christ  Jesus  our  Lord.  O  King  of 
kings  and  Lord  of  lords,  defend  the  kingdom  of  Thy  ser- 
vant, our  orthodox  and  Christ-loving  sovereign,  whom  Thou 
hast  deemed  worthy  to  reign  over  this  land  in  peace,  courage, 
and  justice.  Subdue  under  him,  O  Lord,  every  enemy  and 
adversary,  whether  at  home  or  abroad.  Gird  on  Thy  shield 
and  armour,  and  rise  to  his  aid.  Draw  Thy  sword,  and  help 
him  to  fight  against  them  that  persecute  him.  Shield  him 
in  the  day  of  battle,  and  grant  that  the  fruit  of  his  loins  may 
sit  upon  his  throne.  Be  kind  to  him,  O  Lord,  for  the  sake 
of  Thy  holy  and  apostolic  church,  and  all  Thy  Christ-loving 
people,  that  we  too  in  his  peaceful  reign  may  live  a  calm  and 
tranquil  life,  in  all  reverence  and  godliness.  O  Lord  our 
God,  give  peace  to  the  souls  of  our  fathers  and  brethren  who 
have  fallen  asleep  in  Jesus,  remembering  our  forefathers  of 
old,  our  fathers,  patriarchs,  prophets,  apostles,  martyrs,  con- 
fessors, bishops,  and  the  souls  of  all  the  holy  and  just  men 
who  have  died  in  the  Lord.  Especially  remember  those 
whose  memory  we  this  day  celebrate,  and  our  holy  father 
^lark,  the  apostle  and  evangelist,  who  has  shown  us  the  way 
of  salvation. 

Hail !  thou  art  highly  favoured  ;  the  Lord  is  with  thee  ; 
blessed  art  thou  among  women,  and  blessed  is  the  fruit  of 
thy  womb,  because  thou  hast  brought  forth  the  Saviour  of 
our  souls. 

A  loud. 

Especially  (remember)  our  all-holy,  pure,  and  blessed 
Lady,  Mary  the  Virgin  Llother  of  God. 


THE  DIVINE  LITUltGY  OF  MARK.  61 

The  Deacon. 
Lord,  bless  us. 

Tlie  Priest. 

The  Lord  will  bless  thee  in  His  grace,  now,  henceforth, 
and  for  evermore. 

The  Deacon  reads  the  record  of  the  dead  (ja  hi'mv')(a). 

The  Priest  boios  and  prays. 

XV.  Give  peace,  O  Sovereign  Lord  our  God,  to  the  souls 
of  all  who  dwell  in  the  tabernacles  of  Thy  saints.  Graciously 
bestow  upon  them  in  Thy  kingdom  Thy  promised  blessing, 
which  eye  hath  not  seen,  and  ear  hath  not  heard,  nor  has  it 
entered  into  the  heart  of  man  what  Thou,  O  God,  hast  pre- 
pared for  those  who  love  Thy  holy  name.  Give  peace  to 
their  souls,  and  deem  them  worthy  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven. 
Grant  that  we  may  end  our  lives  as  Christians,  acceptable 
unto  Thee  and  without  sin,  and  be  pleased  to  give  us  part 
and  lot  with  all  Thy  saints.  Accept,  O  God,  by  Thy  mini- 
stering archangels  at  Thy  holy,  heavenly,  and  reasonable 
altar  in  the  spacious  heavens,  the  thankofferings  of  those 
who  offer  sacrifice  and  oblation,  and  of  those  who  desire  to 
offer  much  or  little,  in  secret  or  openly,  but  have  it  not  to 
give.  Accept  the  thankofferings  of  those  who  have  pre- 
sented them  this  day,  as  Thou  didst  accept  the  gifts  of  Thy 
riirhteous  Abel. 


o 


The  Priest  offers  incense,  and  says  : 

As  Thou  didst  accept  the  sacrifice  of  our  father  Abraham, 
the  incense  of  Zacharias,  the  alms  of  Cornelius,  and  the 
widow's  two  mites,  accept  also  the  thankofferings  of  these,  and 
give  them  for  the  things  of  time  the  things  of  eternity,  and 
for  the  things  of  earth  the  things  of  heaven.  Defend,  O 
Lord,  our  most  holy  and  blessed  Pope  [Patriarch]  J,  whom 
Thou  hast  fore-ordained  to  rule  over  Thy  holy  catholic  and 
apostolic  church,  and  our  most  pious  Bishop  A,  that  they 


62  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

through  many  years  of  peace  iriay,  according  to  Thy  holy 
and  blessed  will,  fulfil  the  sacred  priesthood  committed  to 
their  care,  and  dispense  aright  the  word  of  truth.     Remem- 
ber the  orthodox  bishops  everywhere,  the  elders,  deacons, 
sub-deacons,  readers,  singers,  monks,  virgins,  widows,  and 
laity.     Remember,  O  Lord,  the  holy  city  of  our  God,  Jesus 
Christ,  and  the  imperial  city,  and  this  city  of  ours,  and  all 
cities  and  all  lands,  and  the  peace  and  safety  of  those  who 
dwell  therein  in  the  orthodox  faith  of  Christ.    Be  mindful,  O 
Lord,  of  the  return  of  the  backsliding,  and  of  every  Chris- 
tian soul  that  is  afflicted  and  oppressed,  and  in  need  of  Thy 
divine  mercy  and  help.     Be  mindful,  O  Lord,  of  our  brethren 
in  captivity.     Grant  that  they  may  find  mercy  and  com- 
passion with  those  who  have  led  them  captive.     Be  mindful 
also  of  us,  O  Lord,  Thy  sinful  and  unworthy  servants,  and 
blot  out  our  sins  in  Thy  goodness  and  mercy.     Be  mindful 
also  of  me,  Thy  lowly,  sinful,  and  unworthy  servant,  and  in 
Thy  mercy  blot  out  my  sins.     Be  with  us,  O  Lord,  who 
minister  unto  Thy  holy  name.     Bless  our  meetings,  O  Lord. 
Utterly  uproot  idolatry  from  the  world.     Crush  under  our 
feet  Satan,  and  all  his  wicked  influence.     Humble  now,  as  at 
all  times,  the  enemies  of  Thy  church.     Lay  bare  their  pride. 
Speedily  show  them  their  weakness.     Bring  to  nought  the 
wicked  plots  they  contrive  against  us.     Arise,  O  Lord,  and 
let  Thine  enemies  be  scattered,  and  let  all  who  hate  Thy 
holy  name  be  put  to  flight.     Do  Thou  bless  a  thousand 
times  ten  thousand  Thy  faithful  and  orthodox  people  while 
they  do  Thy  holy  will. 

The  Deacon. 
Let  those  who  are  seated  stand. 

The  Priest  says  the  following  prayer : 
Deliver  the  captive;  rescue  the  distressed;  feed  the 
hunirrv;  comfort  the  faint-hearted;  convert  the  erring; 
enlighten  the  darkened ;  raise  the  fallen  ;  confirm  the  waver- 
inf' ;  heal  the  sick ;  and  guide  them  all,  good  Lord,  into  the 
way  of  salvation,  and  into  Thy  sacred  fold.  Deliver  us  from 
our  iniquities  ;  protect  and  defend  us  at  all  times. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  MARK.  63 

The  Deacon. 
Turn  to  the  east. 

The  Priest  boivs  and  prays. 

For  Thou  art  far  above  all  prhicipality,  and  power,  and 
might,  and  dominion,  and  every  name  that  is  named,  not  only 
in  this  world,  but  in  that  which  is  to  come.  Round  Thee  stand 
ten  thousand  times  ten  thousand,  and  thousands  of  thousands 
of  holy  angels  and  hosts  of  archangels ;  and  Thy  two  most 
honoured  creatures,  the  many-eyed  cherubim  and  the  six- 
winged  seraphim.  With  twain  they  cover  their  faces,  and 
with  twain  they  cover  their  feet,  and  with  twain  they  do 
fly ;  and  they  cry  one  to  another  for  ever  with  the  voice 
of  praise,  and  glorify  Thee,  O  Lord,  singing  aloud  the 
triumphal  and  thrice-holy^  hymn  to  Thy  great  glory. 

Holy,  holy,  holy,  Lord  God  of  Sabaoth.  Heaven  and 
earth  are  full  of  Thy  glory  : 

A  loud. 
Thou  dost  ever  sanctify  all  men ;  but  with  all  who  glorify 
Thee,  receive  also,  O  Sovereign  Lord,  our  sanctification,  who 
with  them  celebrate  Thy  praise,  and  say, 

The  People. 
Holy,  holy,  holy  Lord. 

Tlie  Pnest  makes  the  sign  of  the  cross  over  the  sacred  mysteries. 
XVI.  For  truly  heaven  and  earth  are  full  of  Thy  glory, 
through  the  manifestation  of  our  Lord  and  God  and  Saviour 
Jesus  Christ.  Fill,  O  God,  this  sacrifice  with  Thy  blessing, 
through  the  inspiration  of  Thy  all-holy  Spirit.  For  the 
Lord  Himself,  our  God  and  universal  King,  Christ  Jesus, 
reclining  at  meat  the  same  night  on  which  he  delivered  Him- 
self up  for  our  sins  and  died  in  the  flesh  for  all,  took  bread 
in  His  holy,  pure,  and  guiltless  hands,  and  lifting  His  eyes 
to  His  Father,  our  God,  and  the  God  of  all,  gave  thanks ; 
and  when  He  had  blessed,  hallowed,  and  broken  the  bread, 
gave  it  to  His  holy  and  blessed  disciples  and  apostles,  saying, 

^  The  Trisagiou. 


64  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

Aloud. 


"  Take,  eat." 


Pray  earnestly. 


The  Deacon. 


The  Priest  (aloud). 

For  this  is  my  body,  which  is  broken  for  you,  and  divided 
for  the  remission  of  sins. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

The  Priest  prays. 

After  the  same  manner  also,  when  He  had  supped,  He 
took  the  cup  of  wine  mingled  with  water,  and  lifting  His 
eyes  to  Thee,  His  Father,  our  God,  and  the  God  of  all,  gave 
thanks ;  and  when  He  had  blessed  and  filled  it  with  the 
Holy  Spirit,  gave  it  to  His  holy  and  blessed  disciples  and 
apostles,  saying, 


Drink  ye  all  of  it. 


A  loud. 
The  Deacon. 


Pray  earnestly  again. 

The  Priest  (aloud). 

For  this  is  my  blood  of  the  new  testament,  which  is  shed 
for  you  and  for  many,  and  distributed  among  you  for  the 
remission  of  sins. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

The  Priest  prays  thus : 

This  do  ye  in  remembrance  of  me  ;  for  as  often  as  ye  eat 
this  bread  and  drink  this  cup,  ye  do  show  forth  my  death 
and  acknowledge  my  resurrection  and  ascension  until  I  come. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  MARK.  C5 

O  Sovereign  and  Almighty  Lord,  King  of  heaven,  while 
we  show  forth  the  death  of  Thine  only-begotten  Son,  our 
Lord,  God,  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  and  acknowledge 
His  blessed  resurrection  from  the  dead  on  the  third  day,  we 
do  also  openly  declare  His  ascension  into  heaven,  and  His 
sitting  on  the  right  hand  of  Thee,  God  and  Father,  and 
await  His  second  terrible  and  dreadful  coming,  in  which  He 
will  come  to  judge  righteously  the  quick  and  the  dead,  and 
to  render  to  each  man  according  to  his  works. 

XVII.  O  Lord  our  God,  we  have  placed  before  Thee  what 
is  Thine  from  Thine  own  mercies.  We  pray  and  beseech 
Thee,  O  good  and  merciful  God,  to  send  down  from  Thy 
holy  heaven,  from  the  mansion  Thou  hast  prepared,  and 
from  Thine  infinite  bosom,  the  Paraclete  Himself,  holy, 
powerful,  and  life-giving,  the  Spirit  of  truth,  who  spake  in 
the  law,  the  apostles,  and  prophets ;  who  is  everywhere  pre- 
sent, and  filleth  all  things,  freely  working  sanctification  in 
whom  He  will  with  Thy  good  pleasure  ;  one  in  His  nature ; 
manifold  in  His  Avorking ;  the  fountain  of  divine  blessing  ;  of 
like  sabstance  with  Thee,  and  proceeding  from  Thee  ;  sitting 
with  Thee  on  the  throne  of  Thy  kingdom,  and  with  Thine 
only-begotten  Son,  our  Lord  and  God  and  Saviour  Jesus 
Christ.  Send  down  upon  us  also,  and  upon  this  bread  and 
upon  these  cups.  Thy  Holy  Spirit,  that  by  His  all-powerful 
and  divine  influence  He  may  sanctify  and  consecrate  them, 
and  make  this  bread  the  body. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

The  Priest  {aloud). 
And  this  cup  the  blood  of  the  new  testament,  of  the  very 
Lord,  and  God,  and  Saviour,  and   universal  King  Christ 
Jesus. 

The  Deacon. 
Deacons,  come  down. 

The  Priest  (aloiict). 
That  to  all  of  us  who  partake  thereof  they  may  tend  unto 

£ 


66  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

faith,  sobriety,  healing,  temperance,  sanctification,  the  re- 
newal of  soul,  body,  and  spirit,  participation  in  the  blessed- 
ness of  eternal  life  and  immortality,  the  glory  of  Thy  most 
holy  name,  and  the  remission  of  sins,  that  Thy  most  holy, 
precious,  and  glorious  name  may  be  praised  and  glorified  in 
this  as  in  all  things. 


The  People. 


As  it  was  and  is. 


The  Priest. 
XVIII.  Peace  be  to  all. 

The  Deacon, 
Pray. 

The  Priest  prays  in  secret. 

O  God  of  light,  Father  of  life,  Author  of  Grace,  Creator 
of  worlds,  Founder  of  knowledge,  Giver  of  wisdom,  Treasure 
of  holiness.  Teacher  of  pure  prayers.  Benefactor  of  our 
souls,  who  givest  to  the  faint-hearted  who  put  their  trust  in 
Thee  those  things  into  which  the  angels  desire  to  look.  O 
Sovereign  Lord,  who  hast  brought  us  up  from  the  depths 
of  darkness  to  light,  who  hast  given  us  life  from  death,  who 
hast  graciously  bestowed  upon  us  freedom  from  slavery, 
who  hast  scattered  the  darkness  of  sin  within  us,  through  the 
presence  of  Thine  only-begotten  Son,  do  Thou  now  also, 
through  the  visitation  of  Thy  all-holy  Spirit,  enlighten  the 
eyes  of  our  understanding,  that  we  may  partake  without  fear 
of  condemnation  of  this  heavenly  and  immortal  food,  and 
sanctify  us  wholly  in  soul,  body,  and  spirit,  that  with  Thy 
holy  disciples  and  apostles  we  may  say  this  prayer  to  Thee  : 
"  Our  Father  who  art  in  heaven,"  etc. 

Aloud. 

And  grant,  O  Sovereign  Lord,  in  Thy  mercy,  that  we 
with  freedom  of  speech,  without  fear  of  condemnation,  with 
pure  heart    and    enlightened  soul,  with  face  that  is  not 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  MARK.  67 

ashamed,  and  with  hallowed  lips,  may  venture  to  call  upon 
Thee,  the  holy  God  who  art  in  heaven,  as  our  Father,  and 
say: 

The  People. 
Our  Father  who  art  in  heaven,  etc. 

The  Priest  prays. 

Verily,  Lord,  Lord,  lead  us  not  into  temptation,  but 
deliver  us  from  evil ;  for  Thy  abundant  mercy  showeth  that 
we  through  our  great  infirmity  are  unable  to  resist  it.  Grant 
that  we  may  find  a  way  whereby  we  may  be  able  to  with- 
stand temptation  ;  for  Thou  hast  given  us  power  to  tread  upon 
serpents,  and  scorpions,  and  all  the  power  of  the  enemy. 

Aloud. 
For  Thine  is  the  kingdom  and  power. 

The  People. 
Amen. 

The  Priest. 
XIX.  Peace  be  to  all. 

The  Deacon. 
Bow  your  heads  to  Jesus. 

The  People. 
Thou,  Lord. 

The  Priest  prays. 

O  Sovereign  and  Almighty  Lord,  who  sittest  upon  the 
cherubim,  and  art  glorified  by  the  seraphim ;  who  hast 
made  the  heaven  out  of  waters,  and  adorned  it  with  choirs 
of  stars ;  who  hast  placed  an  unbodied  host  of  angels  in  the 
highest  heavens  to  sing  Thy  praise  for  ever ;  before  Thee 
have  we  bowed  our  souls  and  bodies  in  token  of  our  bondage. 
We  beseech  Thee  to  repel  the  dark  assaults  of  sin  from  our 
understanding,  and  to  gladden  our  minds  with  the  divine 


68  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

radiance  of  Thy  Holy  Spirit,  that,  filled  with  the  knowledge 
of  Thee,  we  may  worthily  partake  of  the  mercies  set  before 
us,  the  pure  body  and  precious  blood  of  Thine  only-begotten 
Son,  our  Lord  and  God  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.  Pardon 
all  our  sins  in  Thy  abundant  and  unsearchable  goodness, 
through  the  grace,  mercy,  and  love  of  Thine  only-begotten 
Son. 

Aloud. 

Through  whom  and  with  whom  be  glory  and  power  to 
Thee,  with  the  all-holy,  good,  and  life-giving  Spirit. 

TJte  Priest. 
XX.  Peace  be  to  all. 

The  Deacon. 
With  the  fear  of  God. 

The  Priest  prays. 

O  holy,  highest,  awe-inspiring  God,  who  dwellest  among 
the  saints,  sanctify  us  by  the  word  of  Thy  grace  and  by  the 
inspiration  of  Thy  all-holy  Spirit ;  for  Thou  hast  said,  O 
Lord  our  God,  "  Be  ye  holy ;  for  I  am  holy."  O  Word 
of  God,  past  finding  out,  consubstantial  and  co-eternal 
with  the  Father  and  the  Holy  Spirit,  and  sharer  of  their 
sovereignty,  accept  the  pure  song  which  cherubim  and 
seraphim,  and  the  unworthy  lips  of  Thy  sinful  and  unworthy 
servant,  sing  aloud. 

The  People. 
Lord,  have  mercy;  Lord,  have  mercy;  Lord,  have  mercy. 

The  Priest  (aloud). 
Holy  things  for  the  holy. 

The  People. 

One  Father  holy,  one  Son  holy,  one  Spirit  holy,  in  the 
unity  of  the  Holy  Spirit.     Amen. 

The  Deacon. 
For  salvation  and  help. 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  MABK.  69 

TJie  Priest  makes  the  sign  of  the  cross  upon  the  people,  and 
saith  in  a  loud  voice  : 

The  Lord  be  with  all. 

The  Priest  breaks  the  bread,  and  saith : 
Praise  ye  God. 

The  Priest  divides  it  among  those  present,  and  saith : 

The  Lord  will  bless  and  help  you   through    His   great 
(mercy). 

The  Priest  saijs : 
Command. 

The  Clergy  say : 
The  Holy  Spirit  commands  and  sanctifies. 

The  Priest. 
Lo,  they  are  sanctified  and  consecrated. 

The  Clergy. 
One  Father  holy  {thrice). 

The  Priest  says : 
The  Lord  be  with  all. 

The  Clergy. 
And  with  thy  spirit. 

The  Priest  says : 
The  Lord  Himself  hath  blessed  it. 

The  Priest  partakes,  and  prays. 
"  According  to  Thy  loving-kindness,"  etc. 

Or, 
"  As  the  hart  panteth  after  the  water-brooks,"  etc. 

Wlien  he  gives  the  bread  to  the  clergy,  he  says  : 
The  holy  body. 


70  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

And  lohen  he  gives  the  chalice,  he  says: 
The  precious  blood  of  our  Lord,  and  God,  and  Saviour. 

After  the  service  is  completed^  the  Deacon  says : 

XXI.  Stand  for  prayer. 

The  Priest. 
Peace  be  to  all. 

The  Deacon. 
Pray. 

The  Priest  says  the  prayer  of  thanksgiving. 

O  Sovereign  Lord  our  God,  we  thank  Thee  that  we 
have  partaken  of  Thy  holy,  pure,  immortal,  and  heavenly 
mysteries,  which  Thou  hast  given  for  our  good,  and  for  the 
sanctification  and  salvation  of  our  souls  and  bodies.  We 
pray  and  beseech  Thee,  O  Lord,  to  grant  in  Thy  good 
mercy,  that  by  partaking  of  the  holy  body  and  precious 
blood  of  Thine  only-begotten  Son,  we  may  have  faith  that 
is  not  ashamed,  love  that  is  unfeigned,  fulness  of  holiness, 
power  to  eschew  evil  and  keep  Thy  commandments,  provision 
for  eternal  life,  and  an  acceptable  defence  before  the  awful 
tribunal  of  Thy  Christ. 

In  a  loud  voice. 

Through  whom  and  with  whom  be  glory  and  power  to 
Thee,  with  Thy  all-holy,  good,  and  life-giving  Spirit. 

The  Priest  then  turns  to  the  people,  and  says  : 

XXII.  O  mightiest  King,  co-eternal  with  the  Father,  who 
by  Thy  might  hast  vanquished  hell  and  trodden  death  under 
foot,  who  hast  bound  the  strong  man,  and  by  Thy  miraculous 
power  and  the  enlightening  radiance  of  Thy  unspeakable 
Godhead  hast  raised  Adam  from  the  tomb,  send  forth  Thy 
invisible  right  hand,  which  is  full  of  blessing,  and  bless  us 
all.  Pity  us,  O  Lord,  and  strengthen  us  by  Thy  divine 
power.  Take  away  from  us  the  sinful  and  wicked  influence 
of  carnal  desire.      Let  the  light  shine  into  our   souls,  and 


THE  DIVINE  LITURGY  OF  MARK.  71 

dispel  the  surroundino;  darkness  of  sin.  Unite  us  to  the  all- 
blessed  assembly  that  is  well-pleasing  unto  Thee ;  for  through 
Thee  and  with  Thee,  all  praise,  honour,  power,  adoration, 
and  thanksgiving  are  due  unto  the  Father  and  the  Holy 
Spirit,  now,  henceforth,  and  for  evermore. 

The  Deacon. 
Depart  in  peace. 

The  People. 
In  the  name  of  the  Lord. 

The  Priest  {aloud). 
XXIII.  The  love  of  God  the  Father;  the  grace  of  the  Son, 
our  Lord  Jesus  Christ ;  the  communion  and  gift  of  the  all- 
holy  Spirit,  be  with  us  all,  now,  henceforth,  and  for  evermore. 

The  People. 
Amen.     Blessed  be  the  name  of  the  Lord. 

The  Priest  prays  in  the  sacristy^  and  says  : 
O  Lord,  Thou  hast  given  us  sanctification  by  partaking 
of  the  all-holy  body  and  precious  blood  of  Thine  only-be- 
gotten Son  ;  give  us  the  grace  and  gift  of  the  all-holy  Spirit. 
Enable  us  to  lead  blameless  lives ;  and  guide  us  unto  the 
perfect  redemption,  and  adoption,  and  the  everlasting  joys  of 
the  world  to  come.  For  Thou  art  our  sanctification,  and  we 
ascribe  glory  unto  Thee,  the  Father,  and  the  Son,  and  the 
all-holy  Spirit,  now,  henceforth,  and  for  evermore. 


Amen. 

Peace  be  to  all. 


The  People. 
The  Piiest. 
The  People. 


And  to  thy  spirit. 

The  Priest  dismisses  them,  and  says  : 
May  God  bless,  who   blesseth   and  sanctifieth,  who  de- 
fendeth  and  preserveth  us  all  through  the  partaking  of  Ilis 
holy  mysteries  ;  and  who  is  blessed  for  ever.     Amen. 


III. 
LITUEGY  OF  THE  HOLY  APOSTLES, 

OR  ORDER  OF  THE  SACRAMENTS. 


I.  First:  Glory  to  God  in  the  highest;  and^  Oar  Father 
which  art  in  heaven. 

Prayer. 
Strengthen,  O  our  Lord  and  God,  our  weakness  through 
Thy  mercy,  that  we  may  administer  the  holy  mystery  which 
has  been  given  for  the  renovation  and  salvation  of  our  de- 
graded nature,  through  the  mercies  of  Thy  beloved  Son  the 
Lord  of  all. 

"^  On  common  days. 

Adored,  glorified,  lauded,  celebrated,  exalted,  and  blessed 
in  heaven  and  on  earth,  be  the  adorable  and  glorious  name 
of  Thine  ever-glorious  Trinity,  O  Lord  of  all. 

On  common  days  they  sing  the  Psalm  (xv.),  Lord,  who 
shall  dwell  in  Thy  tabernacle  ?  entire  with  its  canon^  of  the 
mystery  of  the  sacraments. 

Aloud. 
Who  shall  shout  with  joy  ? 

Prayer. 
IL  Before  the  resplendent  throne  of  Thy  majesty,  O  Lord, 
and  the  exalted  and  sublime  throne  of  Thy  glory,  and  on  the 

1  Suicer  says  that  a  canon  is  a  psalm  or  hymn  (canticum)  wont  to  be 
sung  on  certain  days,  ordinarily  and  as  if  by  rule.  He  quotes  Zonaras, 
who  says  that  a  canon  is  metrical,  and  is  composed  of  nine  odes.  See 
Sophocles,  Glossary  of  Byzantine  Greek,  Introduction,  §43.  The  canon 
of  the  Nestorian  Church  is  somewhat  different.  See  Neale,  General  In- 
troduction to  the  History  of  the  Eastern  Church,  p.  979. 

73 


74  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

awful  seat  of  the  strength  of  Thy  love  and  the  propitiatory 
altar  -which  Thy  will  hath  established,  in  the  region  of  Thy 
pasture,  with  thousands  of  cherubim  praising  Thee,  and 
ten  thousands  of  seraphim  sanctifying  Thee,  we  draw  near, 
adore,  thank,  and  glorify  Thee  always,  O  Lord  of  all. 

On  commemorations  and  Fridays. 
Thy  name,  great  and  holy,  illustrious  and  blessed,  the 
blessed  and  incomprehensible  name  of  Thy  glorious  Trinity, 
and  Thy  kindness  to  our  race,  we  ought  at  all  times  to  bless, 
adore,  and  glorify,  O  Lord  of  all. 

Hesponsory  "^  at  the  chancel,  as  above. 
Who  commanded.  To  the  priest.  How  breathes  in  us, 
O  our  Lord  and  God,  the  sweet  fragrance  of  the  sweetness 
of  Thy  love  ;  illumined  are  our  souls,  through  the  know- 
ledge of  Thy  truth  :  may  we  be  rendered  worthy  of  receiv- 
ing the  manifestation  of  Thy  beloved  from  Thy  holy  heavens  : 
there  shall  we  render  thanks  unto  Thee,  and  (in  the  mean- 
time) glorify  Thee  without  ceasing  in  Thy  church,  crowned 
and  filled  with  every  aid  and  blessing,  because  Thou  art 
Lord  and  Father,  Creator  of  all. 

HI.  Prayer  of  incense. 
We   shall  repeat  the  hymn  to  Thy  glorious  Trinity,  O 
Father,  Son,  and  Holy  Ghost. 

On  fast-days. 
And  on  account. 

At  the  commemoration  of  saints. 
Thou,  O  Lord,  art  truly  the  raiser  up  of  our  bodies  :  Thou 
art  the  good  Saviour  of  our  souls,  and  the  secure  preserver 
of  our  life;  and  we  ought  to  thank  Thee  continually,  to 
adore  and  glorify  Thee,  O  Lord  of  all. 

^  "  The  psalm,  or  verses  of  a  psalm,  sung  after  the  epistle,  was  always 
entitled  gradual,  from  being  chanted  on  the  steps  (jgradus)  of  the  pulpit. 
When  sung  by  one  person  without  interruption,  it  was  called  tractus ; 
when  chanted  alternately  by  several  singers,  it  was  termed  responsoryy 
— Palmer,  Origines  Litnrgicae,  vol.  ii.  p.  46,  note. 


LITURGY  OF  TEE  HOLY  APOSTLES.  lb 

At  the  lessons} 

Holy  art  Thou,  worthy  of  praise,  mighty,  immortal,  who 
dwellest  in  the  holies,  and  Thy  will  resteth  in  them  :  have 
regard  unto  us,  O  Lord ;  be  merciful  unto  us,  and  pity  us, 
as  Thou  art  our  helper  in  all  circumstances,  O  Lord  of  all. 

IV.  At  the  apostle.' 
Enlighten,  O  our  Lord  and  God,  the  movements  of  our 
meditations  to  hear  and  understand  the  sweet  listenings  to 
Thy  life-giving  and  divine  commands;  and  grant  unto  us 
through  Thy  grace  and  mercy  to  gather  from  them  the 
assurance  of  love,  and  hope,  and  salvation  suitable  to  soul 
and  body,  and  we  shall  sing  to  Thee  everlasting  glory  with- 
out ceasing  and  always,  O  Lord  of  all. 

On  fast-days. 
To  Thee,  the  wise  governor. 

V.  Descending,  he  shall  salute  the  Gospel,  saying  this  prayer 

before  the  altar. 
Thee,  the  renowned  seed  of  Thy  Father,  and  the  image  of 
the  person  of  Thy  Father,  who  wast  revealed  in  the  body 
of  our  humanity,  and  didst  arise  to  us  in  the  light  of  Thy 
annunciation,  Thee  we  thank,  adore,  etc. 

And  after  the  proclamation  :^ 
Thee,  O  Lord  God  Almighty,  we  beseech  and  entreat, 
perfect  with  us  Thy  grace,  and  pour  out  through  our  hands 
Thy  gift,  the  pity  and  compassion  of  Thy  divinity.  May 
they  be  to  us  for  the  propitiation  of  the  offences  of  Thy 
people,  and  for  the  forgiveness  of  the  sins  of  the  entire  flock 
of  Thy  pasture,  through  Thy  grace  and  tender  mercies,  O 
good  friend  of  men,  O  Lord  of  all. 

VI.   T/ie  Deacons  say : 
Bow  your  heads. 

^  i.e.  while  the  lesson  from  the  Old  Testament  is  being  read. 

2  i.e.  while  the  lesson  from  the  Apostolical  Epistles  is  being  read. 

3  Renaudot  understands  by  the  proclamation  the  reading  aloud  of  the 
Gospel. 


J 


76  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

The  Priest  says  tliis  secret  prayer  in  the  sanctuary  {Bema) : 

O  Lord  God  Omnipotent,  Thine  is  the  holy  catholic 
church,  inasmuch  as  Thou,  through  the  great  passion  of 
Thy  Christ,  didst  buy  the  sheep  of  Thy  pasture ;  and  from 
the  grace  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  who  is  indeed  of  one  nature 
with  Thy  glorious  divinity,  are  granted  the  degrees  of  the 
true  priestly  ordination ;  and  through  Thy  clemency  Thou 
didst  vouchsafe,  O  Lord,  to  make  our  weakness  spiritual 
members  in  the  great  body  of  Thy  holy  church,  that  we 
might  administer  spiritual  aid  to  faithful  souls.  Now,  O 
Lord,  perfect  Thy  grace  with  us,  and  pour  out  Thy  gift 
through  our  hands :  and  may  Thy  tender  mercies  and  the 
clemency  of  Thy  divinity  be  upon  us,  and  upon  the  people 
whom  Thou  hast  chosen  for  Thyself. 

Aloud. 

And  grant  unto  us,  O  Lord,  through  Thy  clemency,  that 
we  may  all  together,  and  equally  every  d^y  of  our  life, 
please  Thy  divinity,  and  be  rendered  worthy  of  the  aid  of 
Thy  grace  to  offer  Thee  praise,  honour,  thanksgiving,  and 
adoration  at  all  times,  O  Lord. 

VII.  And  the  Deacons  ascend  to  the  altar^  and  say : 
He  who  has  not  received  baptism,  etc.^ 

And  the  Priest  begins  the  responsory  of  the  mysteries,  and  the 
Sacristan  and  Deacon  place  the  disk  and  the  chalice  upon 
the  altar.     The  Priest  crosses  his  hands,  and  says : 

We  offer  praise  to  Thy  glorious  Trinity  at  all  times  and 
for  ever. 

Aiid  proceeds : 

May  Christ,  who  was  offered  for  our  salvation,  and  com- 
manded us  to  commemorate  His  death  and  His  resurrection. 
Himself  receive  this  sacrifice  from  the  hands  of  our  weak- 
ness, through  His  grace  and  mercies  for  ever.     Amen. 
1  The  Malabar  Lit.  fills  up,  "let  him  depart." 


LITURGY  OF  THE  HOLY  APOSTLES.  77 

And  proceeds : 

Laid  are  the  renowned  holy  and  life-giving  mysteries  upon 
the  attar  of  the  mighty  Lord,  even  until  His  advent,  for 
ever.     Amen. 

Praise.  Thy  memory.  Our  Father.  The  apostles  of 
the  Father.  Upon  the  holy  altar.  They  who  have  slept. 
Matthew,  ^[ark,  Luke,  etc. 


THE  LITURGY  OF  THE  BLESSED  APOSTLES, 

COMPOSED  BY  ST.  ADiEUS  AND  ST.  MARIS, 
TEACHERS  OF  THE  EASTERNS.^ 

Vin.  The  Priest  draws  near  to  celebrate,  and  thrice  hoios  before 
the  altar,  the  middle  of  which  he  kisses,  then  the  right  and  the 
left  ivings ;  and  bows  to  the  higher  portion  of  it,  and  says : 

Bless,  O  Lord.  Pray  for  me,  my  fathers,  brethren,  and 
masters,  that  God  may  grant  unto  me  the  capability  and 
power  to  perform  this  service  to  which  I  have  drawn  near, 
and  that  this  oblation  may  be  accepted  from  the  hands  of 
my  weakness,  for  myself,  for  you,  and  for  the  whole  body  of 
the  holy  catholic  church,  through  His  grace  and  mercies  for 
ever.     Amen. 

And  they  respond: 
May  Christ  listen  to  thy  prayers,  and  be  pleased  with  thy 
sacrifice,  receive  thy  oblation,  and  honour  thy  priesthood, 
and  grant  unto  us,  through  thy  mediation,  the  pardon  of  our 
offences,  and  the  forgiveness  of  our  sins,  through  His  grace 
and  mercies  for  ever. 

Presently  he  bows  to  the  loioer  part,  uttering  the  same  toords ; 
and  they  respond  in  the  same  manner :  then  he  bows  to 
the  altar,  and  says : 

God,  Lord  of  all,  be  with  us  all  through  His  grace  and 
mercies  for  ever.     Amen. 

1  "  In  the  Syriac  copy,  70,  Bibliolli.  Reg.,  this  title  does  not  occur,  the 
service  going  forward  without  interruption." — Etheridge. 


78  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

And  bowing  to  the  Deacon^  who  is  on  the  left,  he  says : 

God,  tlie  Lord  of  all,  confirm  thy  words,  and  secure  to 
thee  peace,  and  accept  this  oblation  from  my  hands  for  me, 
for  thee,  for  the  whole  body  of  the  holy  catholic  church, 
and  for  the  entire  world,  through  His  grace  and  mercies  for 
ever. 

He  bows  himself  to  the  altar^  and  says  in  secret : 

IX.  O  our  Lord  and  God,  look  not  on  the  multitude  of  our 
sins,  and  let  not  Thy  dignity  be  turned  away  on  account  of 
the  heinousness  of  our  iniquities;  but  through  Thine  unspeak- 
able grace  sanctify  this  sacrifice  of  Thine,  and  grant  through 
it  power  and  capability,  so  that  Thou  mayest  forget  our 
many  sins,  and  be  merciful  when  Thou  shalt  appear  at  the 
end  of  time,  in  the  man  whom  Thou  hast  assumed  from 
among  us,  and  we  may  find  before  Thee  grace  and  mercy, 
and  be  rendered  worthy  to  praise  Thee  with  spiritual^  assem- 
blies. 

He  riseSj  and  says  this  prayer  in  secret : 

We  thank  Thee,  O  our  Lord  and  God,  for  the  abundant 
riches  of  Thy  grace  to  us. 

And  he  proceeds : 

Us  who  were  sinful  and  degraded,  on  account  of  the  mul- 
titude of  Thy  clemency.  Thou  hast  made  worthy  to  celebrate 
the  holy  mysteries  of  the  body  and  blood  of  Thy  Christ. 
We  beg  aid  from  Thee  for  the  strengthening  of  our  souls, 
that  in  perfect  love  and  true  faith  we  may  administer  Thy 
gift  to  us. 

Canon. 
And  we  shall  ascribe  to  Thee  praise,  glory,  thanksgiving, 
and  adoration,  now,  always,  and  for  ever  and  ever. 

He  signs  himself  with  the  sign  of  the  cross,  and  they  respond : 

Amen. 

X.  And  he  proceeds : 
Peace  be  with  you. 

^  Intellectualibus. 


LITURGY  OF  THE  HOLY  APOSTLES.  79 

They  respond: 
With  thee  and  with  thy  spirit. 

And  they  give  peace  to  each  other,  and  say : 
For  all  [Catholics].^ 

The  Deacon  says : 
Let  us  thank,  entreat,  and  beseech. 

The  priest  says  this  prayer  in  secret : 
O  Lord,  mighty  God,  help  my  weakness  through  Thy 
clemency  and  the  aid  of  Thy  grace ;  and  make  me  worthy  of 
offering  before  Thee  this  oblation,  as  for  the  common  aid  of 
all,  and  to  the  praise  of  Thy  Trinity,  O  Father,  Son,  and 
Holy  Ghost. 

Another  prayer,  which  is  said  also  in  the  Liturgy  of  Nestorius. 

O  our  Lord  and  God,  restrain  our  thoughts,  that  they 
wander  not  amid  the  vanities  of  this  world.  O  Lord  our 
God,  grant  that  I  may  be  united  to  the  affection  of  Thy 
love,  unworthy  though  I  be.     Glory  be  to  Thee,  O  Christ. 

Ascend  into  the  chamber  of  Thy  renowned  light,  O  Lord ; 
sow  in  me  the  good  seed  of  humility ;  and  under  the  wings 
of  Thy  grace  hide  me  through  Thy  mercy.  If  Thou  wert 
to  mark  iniquities,  O  Lord,  who  shall  stand  ?  Because  there 
is  mercy  with  Thee. 

In  another  MS.  the  Priest  says  the  following  prayer  in  secret : 
O  mother  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  beseech  for  me  the 
only-begotten  Son,  who  was  born  of  thee,  to  forgive  me  my 
offences  and  my  sins,  and  to  accept  fi'om  my  feeble  and 
sinful  hands  this  sacrifice  which  my  weakness  offers  upon 
this  altar,  through  thy  intercession  for  me,  O  holy  mother. 

XI.   When  the  Deacon  shall  say,  "With  watchfulness  and  care, 
immediately  the  Priest  rises  tip  and  imcovers  the  sacra- 
ments, taking  away  the  veil  icith  which  they  icere  covered : 
he  blesses  the  incense,  and  says  a  canon  toith  a  loud  voice. 
The  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  the  love  of  God 
1  The  word  Catholics  is  omitted  iu  most  MSS. 


80  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

the  Father,  and  the  communion  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  be  with 
us  all,  now,  etc. 

He  signs  the  sacraments,  and  they  o'espond : 
Amen. 

The  Priest  proceeds : 
Upwards  be  your  minds. 

They  respond: 

They  are  towards  Thee,  O  God  of  Abraham,  Isaac,  and 
Israel,  O  glorious  King. 

The  Priest. 
The  oblation  is  offered  to  God,  the  Lord  of  all. 

They  respond : 
It  is  meet  and  right. 

The  Deacon. 
Peace  be  with  you. 

The  Priest  puts  on  the  incense,  and  says  this  prayer  : 

O  Lord,  Lord,  grant  me  an  open  countenance  before 
Thee,  that  with  the  confidence  which  is  from  Thee  we  may 
fulfil  this  awful  and  divine  sacrifice  with  consciences  free 
from  all  iniquity  and  bitterness.  Sow  in  us,  O  Lord,  affec- 
tion, peace,  and  concord  towards  each  other,  and  toward 
every  one. 

And  standing,  he  says  in  secret: 

Worthy  of  glory  from  every  mouth,  and  of  thanksgiving 
from  all  tongues,  and  of  adoration  and  exaltation  from  all 
creatures,  is  the  adorable  and  glorious  name  of  Father,  Son, 
and  Holy  Ghost,  who  created  the  world  through  His  grace, 
and  its  inhabitants  through  His  clemency,  who  saved  men 
through  His  mercy,  and  showed  great  favour  towards 
mortals.  Thy  majesty,  O  Lord,  thousands  of  thousands  of 
heavenly  (spirits),  and  ten  thousand  myriads  of  holy  angels, 
hosts  of  spirits,  ministers  of  fire  and  spirit,  bless  and  adore ; 
with  the  holy  cherubim  and  the  spiritual  seraphim   they 


LITURGY  OF  THE  HOLY  APOSTLES.  81 

sanctify  and  celebrate  Tliy  name,  crying  and  praising,  with- 
out ceasing  crying  unto  each  other. 

They  say  witJi  a  loud  voice : 

Holy,  holy,  holy,  Lord  God  Almighty;  full  are  the 
heavens  and  the  earth  of  His  glory. 

The  Priest  in  secret : 

Holy,  holy,  holy  art  Thou,  O  Lord  God  Almighty ;  the 
heavens  and  the  earth  are  full  of  His  glory  and  the  nature 
of  His  essence,  as  they  are  glorious  with  the  honour  of  His 
splendour ;  (as  it  is  written),  The  heaven  and  the  earth  are 
full  of  me,  saith  the  mighty  Lord.  Holy  art  Thou,  O  God 
[our]  Father,  truly  the  only  one,  of  whom  the  whole  family 
in  heaven  and  earth  is  named.  Holy  art  Thou,  Eternal 
Son,  through  whom  all  things  were  made.  Holy  art  Tliou, 
holy,  eternal  Spirit,  through  whom  all  things  are  sanctified. 
Woe  to  me,  woe  to  me,  who  have  been  astonied,  because  I 
am  a  man  of  polluted  lips,  and  dwell  among  a  people  of 
polluted  lips,  and  my  eyes  have  seen  the  King,  the  mighty 
Lord.  How  terrible  to-day  is  this  place  !  For  this  is  none 
other  than  the  house  of  God  and  the  gate  of  heaven  ; 
because  Thou  hast  been  seen  eye  to  eye,  O  Lord.  Now,  I 
pray,  may  Thy  grace  be  with  us,  O  Lord ;  purge  away  our 
impurities,  and  sanctify  our  lips ;  unite  the  voices  of  our 
insignificance  with  the  sanctification  of  seraphim  and  arch- 
angels. Glory  be  to  Thy  tender  mercies,  because  Thou  hast 
associated  the  earthly  Avitli  the  heavenly.^ 

And  he  proceeds,  saying  in  secret  this  prayer,  in  a  bowing 

posture : 

XIL  And  with  those  heavenly  powers  we  give  Thee  thanks, 
even  we,  Thine  insignificant,  pithless,  and  feeble  servants  ; 
because  Thou  hast  granted  unto  us  Thy  great  grace  which 
cannot  be  repaid.  For  indeed  Tiiou  didst  take  upon  Thee 
our  human  nature,  that  Thou  mightest  bestow  life  on  us 
through  Thy  diviuity ;  Thou  didst  exalt  our  low  condition  ; 

^  Spiritualibus. 


82  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

Thou  didst  raise  our  ruined  state ;  Thou  didst  rouse  up  our 
mortality  ;  Tliou  didst  wash  away  our  sins  ;  Thou  didst  blot 
out  the  guilt  of  our  sins  ;  Thou  didst  enlighten  our  intelli- 
gence, and  Thou  didst  condemn  our  enemy,  O  Lord  our  God; 
and  Thou  didst  cause  the  insignificance  of  our  pithless  nature 
to  triumph.  Through  the  tender  mercies  of  Thy  grace  poured 
out,  O  clement  One,  pardon  our  offences  and  sins ;  blot  out 
my  offences  in  the  judgment.  And  on  account  of  all  Thy 
aids  and  Thy  favours  to  us,  we  shall  ascribe  unto  Thee  praise/ 
honour,  thanksgiving,  and  adoration,  now,  always,  and  for 
ever  and  ever. 

The  Priest  signs  the  sacraments.     The  response  is  made. 
Amen. 

The  Deacon. 
In  your  minds.     Pray  for  peace  with  us. 

The  Priest  says  this  jjra^/er  bowing,  and  in  a  loio  voice : 

O  Lord  God  Almighty,  accept  this  oblation  for  the  whole 
holy  catholic  church,  and  for  all  the  pious  and  righteous 
fathers  who  have  been  pleasing  to  Thee,  and  for  all  the 
prophets  and  apostles,  and  for  all  the  martyrs  and  confessors, 
and  for  all  that  mourn,  that  are  in  straits,  and  are  sick,  and 
for  all  that  are  under  difficulties  and  trials,  and  for  all  the 
weak  and  the  oppressed,  and  for  all  the  dead  that  have  gone 
from  amongst  us ;  then  for  all  that  ask  a  prayer  from  our 
weakness,  and  for  me,  a  degraded  and  feeble  sinner.  O  Lord 
our  God,  according  to  Thy  mercies  and  the  multitude  of 
Thy  favours,  look  upon  Thy  people,  and  on  me,  a  feeble 
man,  not  according  to  my  sins  and  my  follies,  but  that  they 
may  become  worthy  of  the  forgiveness  of  their  sins  through 
this  holy  body,  which  they  receive  with  faith,  through  the 
grace  of  Thy  mercy  for  ever  and  ever.     Amen. 

In  another  MS.  that  prayer  begins  thus : 

O  Lord  God  Almighty,  hear  the  voice  of  my  cry  before 

^  Hymnum. 


LITURGY  OF  THE  HOLY  APOSTLES.  83 

Thee  at  this  time.  Give  car,  O  Lord,  and  hear  my  groan- 
ings  before  Thy  majesty,  and  accept  tlie  entreaty  of  me,  a 
sinner,  with  which  I  call  upon  Thy  grace,  at  this  hour  at 
which  the  sacrifice  is  offered  to  Thy  Father.  Have  mercy 
on  all  creatures;  spare  the  guilty;  convert  the  erring; 
restore  the  oppressed ;  on  the  disquieted  bestow  rest ;  heal 
the  weak  ;  console  the  afflicted  ;  and  perfect  the  alms  of 
those  who  work  righteousness  on  account  of  Thy  holy  name. 
Have  mercy  on  me  also,  a  sinner,  through  Thy  grace.  O 
Lord  God  Almighty,  may  this  oblation  be  accepted  for  the 
entire  holy  catholic  church  ;  and  for  priests,  kings,  princes, 
and  tlte  rest  as  above. 

The  Priest  says  this  prayer  of  inclination  in  secret : 

Xni.  Do  Thou,  O  Lord,  through  Thy  many  and  ineffable 
mercies,  make  the  memorial  good  and  acceptable  to  all  the 
pious  and  righteous  fathers  who  have  been  pleading  before 
Thee  in  the  commemoration  of  the  body  and  blood  of  Thy 
Christ,  which  we  offer  to  Thee  upon  Thy  pure  and  holy 
altar,  as  Thou  hast  taught  us ;  and  grant  unto  us  Thy  rest 
all  the  days  of  this  life. 

He  proceeds  : 

O  Lord  our  God,  bestow  on  us  Thy  rest  and  peace  all  the 
days  of  this  life,  that  all  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth  may 
know  Thee,  that  Thou  art  the  only  true  God  the  Father, 
and  Thou  didst  send  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  Thy  Son  and 
Thy  beloved;  and  He  Himself  our  Lord  and  God  came 
and  taught  us  all  purity  and  holiness.  ^lake  remembrance 
of  prophets,  apostles,  martyrs,  confessors,  bishops,  doctors, 
priests,  deacons,  and  all  the  sons  of  the  holy  catholic  church 
who  have  been  signed  with  the  sign  of  life,  of  holy  baptism. 
We  also,  O  Lord. 

He  proceeds : 

We,  Thy  degraded,  weak,  and  feeble  servants  who  are  con- 
gregated in  Thy  name,  and  now  stand  before  Thee,  and  have 
received  with  joy  the  form  which  is  from  Thee,  praising, 


84  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

trlorifvinfr,  and  exaltin^f.  commemorate  and  celebrate  this 
great,  awful,  holy,  and  divine  mystery  of  the  passion,  death, 
burial,  and  resurrection  of  our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus 
Christ. 

And  may  Thy  Holy  Spirit  come,  O  Lord,  and  rest  upon 
this  oblation  of  Thy  servants  which  they  offer,  and  bless  and 
sanctify  it ;  and  may  it  be  unto  us,  O  Lord,  for  the  propitia- 
tion of  our  offences  and  the  forgiveness  of  our  sins,  and  for 
a  grand  hope  of  resurrection  from  the  dead,  and  for  a  new 
life  in  the  kingdom  of  the  heavens,  with  all  who  have  been 
pleasing  before  Him.  And  on  account  of  the  whole  of  Thy 
wonderful  dispensation  towards  us,  we  shall  render  thanks 
unto  Thee,  and  glorify  Thee  without  ceasing  in  Thy  church, 
redeemed  by  the  precious  blood  of  Thy  Christ,  with  open 
mouths  and  joyful  countenances  : 

Canon. 

Ascribing  praise,^  honour,  thanksgiving,  and  adoration  to 
Thy  holy,  loving,  and  life-giving  name,  now,  always,  and  for 
ever. 

The  Priest  signs  the  mysteries  with  the  cross,  and  they  respond : 
Amen. 

The  Priest  hows  himself  and  kisses  the  altar  ^  first  in  themidde^ 
then  at  the  two  sides  right  and  left,  and  says  this  prayer : 

In  another  MS.,  says  a  Psalm?  Have  mercy  upon  me,  O 
God,  even  to,  and  sinners  shall  be  converted  unto  Thee. 
Unto  Thee  lift  I  up  mine  eyes,^  even  to,  have  mercy  upon  us, 
O  Lord,  have  mercy  upon  us.  Stretch  forth  Thy  hand,  and 
let  Thy  right  hand  save  me,  O  Lord ;  may  Thy  mercies  re- 
main upon  me,  O  Lord,  for  ever,  and  despise  not  the  works 
of  Thy  hands. 

Then  he  says  this  prayer  : 

XIV.  O  Christ,  peace  of  those  in  heaven  and  great  rest  of 
1  Hymnum.  ^  Ps.  li.  ^  Ps.  cxxiil 


LITURGY  OF  THE  HOLY  APOSTLES.  85 

those  below/  grant  that  Tliy  rest  and  peace  may  dwell  in  the 
four  parts  of  the  world,  but  especially  in  Thy  holy  catholic 
church ;  grant  that  the  priesthood  with  the  government  may 
have  peace ;  cause  wars  to  cease  from  the  ends  of  the  earth, 
and  scatter  the  nations  that  delight  in  wars,^  that  we  may 
enjoy  the  blessing  of  living  in  tranquillity  and  peace,  in  all 
temperance  and  fear  of  God.  Spare  the  offences  and  sins 
of  the  dead,  through  Thy  grace  and  mercies  for  ever. 

And  to  those  loJio  are  around  the  altar  he  says : 
Bless,  O  Lord.     Bless,  O  Lord. 

And  he  puis  on  the  incense  ivith  ichich  he  covers  himself, 

and  says  : 

Sweeten,  O  Lord  our  God,  the  pleasant  odour  of  our 
souls  through  the  sweetness  of  Thy  love,  and  through  it 
cleanse  me  from  the  stains  of  my  sin,  and  forgive  me  my 
offences  and  sins,  whether  known  or  unknown  to  me. 

A  second  time  he  takes  the  incense  with  both  hands,  and  censes 
the  mysteries  ;  presently  he  says  : 

The  clemency  of  Thy  grace,  O  our  Lord  and  God,  gives 
us  access  to  these  renowned,  holy,  life-giving,  and  divine 
mysteries,  unworthy  though  we  be. 

The  Priest  repeats  these  icords  once  ami  again,  and  at  each  iii- 
terval  unites  his  hands  over  his  breast  in  the  form  of  a 
cross.  He  kisses  the  altar  in  the  middle,  and  receives  icilh 
both  hands  the  npper  oblation ;  and  looking  zip,  says  : 

Praise  be  to  Thy  holy  name,  O  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and 
adoration  to  Thy  majesty,  always  and  for  ever.  Amen.  For 
He  is  the  living  and  life-giving  bread  which  cometli  down 
from  heaven,  and  giveth  life  to  the  whole  world,  of  which 
they  who  eat  die  not ;  and  they  who  receive  it  are  saved  by 
it,  and  do  not  see  corruption,  and  live  through  it  for  ever ; 
and  Thou  art  the  antidote  of  our  mortality,  and  the  resurrec- 
tion of  our  entire  frame. 

1  i.e.  the  dead.  "  Lit.  ''  wish  for  wars." 


86  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

In  another  MS.  there  is  a  different  reading. 

Glory  to  Thee,  O  God  the  Father,  who  didst  send  Thine 
only-begotten  Son  for  our  salvation,  and  He  Himself  before 
He  suffered,  etc. 

XV.  In  the  MS.  of  Elias,  which  we  have  followed^  there  is  a 
defect,  seeing  that  the  ivhole  recitation  of  the  loords  of  Christ  is 
omitted  through  the  fault  of  the  transcriber,  or  because  these 
ought  to  have  been  taken  from  another  source,  namely,  from  the 
Liturgy  of  Tlieodorus  or  Nestorius.  In  that  which  the  Patriarch 
Josepli  wrote  at  Rome,  1697,  that  entire  passage  is  remodelled 
according  to  the  Chaldean  missal  published  at  Rome,  as  in  the 
mass,  a  translation  of  luhich  loas  edited  by  Alexius  Menesius. 
Since  there  were  no  other  codices  at  hand,  in  this  place  it  seemed 
good  to  place  asterisks  to  indicate  the  defects.     *     *     *     * 

XVI.  Praise  to  Thy  holy  name,  O  Lord, — as  above. 

The  Priest  kisses  the  host  in  the  form  of  a  cross ;  in  such  a 
tvay,  however,  that  his  lips  do  not  touch  it,  but  appear  to 
kiss  it ;  and  he  says  : 

Glory  to  Thee,  O  Lord;  glory  to  Thee,  O  Lord,  on 
account  of  Thine  unspeakable  gift  to  us,  for  ever. 

Then  he  draws  nigh  to  the  fraction  of  the  host,  ivhich  he  accom- 
plishes with  both  his  hands,  saying : 

We  draw  nigh,  O  Lord,  with  true  faith,  and  break  with 
thanksgiving  and  sign  through  Thy  mercy  the  body  and 
blood  of  our  Life-giver,  Jesus  Christ,  in  the  name  of  the 
Father,  Son,  and  Holy  Ghost. 

And,  naming  the  Trinity,  he  breaks  the  host,  lohich  he  holds  in 
his  hands,  into  two  parts :  and  the  one  which  is  in  his  left 
hand  he  lays  down  on  the  disk ;  loith  the  other,  ivhich  he 
holds  in  his  right  hand,  he  signs  the  chalice,  saying : 

The  precious  blood  is  signed  with  the  holy  body  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ.  In  the  name  of  the  Father,  and  the 
Son,  and  the  Holy  Ghost  for  ever. 


LITURGY  OF  THE  HOLY  APOSTLES.  87 

And  they  respond: 
Amen. 

Then  he  dips  it  even  to  the  middle  in  the  chalice,  and  signs 
with  it  the  body  which  is  in  the  paten  ^  saying: 

The  holy  body  is  signed  with  the  propitiatory  blood  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ.  In  the  name  of  the  Father,  and  of  the 
Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost  for  ever. 

And  they  respond : 
Amen. 

And  he  unites  the  tioo  parts,  the  one  with  the  other,  saying : 

Divided,  sanctified,  completed,  perfected,  united,  and  com- 
mingled have  been  these  renowned,  holy,  life-giving,  and 
divine  mysteries,  the  one  with  the  other,  in  the  adorable  and 
glorious  name  of  Thy  glorious  Trinity,  O  Father,  Son,  and 
Holy  Ghost,  that  they  may  be  to  us,  O  Lord,  for  the  propi- 
tiation of  our  offences  and  the  forgiveness  of  our  sins;  also 
for  the  grand  hope  of  a  resurrection  from  the  dead,  and  of 
a  new  life  in  the  kingdom  of  the  heavens,  for  us  and  for  the 
holy  church  of  Christ  our  Lord,  here  and  in  every  place 
whatsoever,  now  and  always,  and  for  ever. 

XVIL  In  the  meantime  he  signs  the  host  icith  his  right  thumb 
in  the  form  of  a  cross  from  the  loioer  part  to  the  upper, 
and  from  the  right  to  the  left,  and  thus  forms  a  slight 
fissure  in  it  ichere  it  has  been  dipped  in  the  blood.  He 
puts  a  part  of  it  into  the  chalice  in  the  form  of  a  cross : 
the  loioer  part  is  placed  towards  the  priest,  the  upper 
towards  the  chalice,  so  that  the  place  of  the  fissure  looks 
to  the  chalice.     He  bows,  and  rising,  says : 

Glory  be  to  Thee,  O  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  who  hast  made 
me,  unworthy  though  I  be,  through  Thy  grace,  a  minister 
and  mediator  of  Thy  renowned,  holy,  life-giving,  and  divine 
mysteries :  through  the  grace  of  Thy  mercy,  make  me 
worthy  of  the  pardon  of  my  offences  and  the  forgiveness  of 
my  sins. 


88  EARLY  LITURGIES.    . 

He  signs  MmseJf  tvith  the  sign  of  the  cross  on  his  forehead, 
and  does  the  same  to  those  standing  round  him. 

In  another  MS. 

He  signs  his  forehead'  loith  the  sign  of  the  cross,  and  says : 

Glory  to  Thee,  O  Lord,  who  didst  create  me  by  Thy 
grace.  Glory  to  Thee,  O  Lord,  who  didst  call  me  by  Thy 
mercy.  Glory  to  Thee,  O  Lord,  who  didst  appoint  me  the 
mediator  of  Thy  gift ;  and  on  account  of  all  the  benefits  to 
my  weakness,  ascribed  unto  Thee  be  praise,  honour,  thanks- 
giving, and  adoration,  now,  etc. 

The  Deacons  approach,  and  he  signs  each  one  of  them  on  the 

forehead,  saying : 

Christ  accept  thy  ministry :  Christ  cause  thy  face  to 
shine :  Christ  save  thy  life  :  Christ  make  thy  youth  to  grow. 

And  they  respond: 
Christ  accept  thy  oblation. 

XVIII.  All  return  to  their  own  place;  and  the  Priest,  after 
bowing,  rises  and  says  in  the  tone  of  the  Gospel : 

The  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  the  love  of  God 
the  Father,  and  the  communion  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  be  with 
us  all. 

The  Priest  signs  himself,  and  lifts  up  his  hand  over  his  head, 
so  that  it  should  be  in  the  air,  and  the  people  be  partakers 
in  the  signing : 

The  Deacon  says : 

We  all  with  fear:  and  at  these  words,  He  hath  given  to 
us  His  mysteries. 

The  Priest  begins  to  break  the  body,  and  says : 

Be  merciful,  O  Lord,  through  Thy  clemency  to  the  sins 
and  follies  of  Thy  servants,  and  sanctify  our  lips  through 


LITURGY  OF  THE  HOLY  APOSTLES.  89 

Thy  grace,  that  they  may  give  the  fruits  of  glory  and  praise 
to  Thy  divinity,  with  all  Thy  saints  in  Thy  kingdom. 

And,  raising  his  voice,  he  says: 

And  make  us  worthy,  O  Lord  our  God,  to  stand  before 
Thee  continually  without  stain,  with  pure  heart,  with  open 
countenance,  and  with  the  confidence  which  is  from  Thee, 
mercifully  granted  to  us:  and  let  us  all  with  one  accord 
invoke  Thee,  and  say  thus :  Our  Father,  etc. 

The  People  say : 
Our  Father. 

The  Pnest. 

O  Lord  God  Almighty,  O  Lord  and  our  good  God,  who 
art  full  of  mercy,  we  beg  Thee,  O  Lord  our  God,  and 
beseech  the  clemency  of  Thy  goodness ;  lead  us  not  into 
temptation,  but  deliver  and  save  us  from  the  evil  one  and 
his  hosts ;  because  Thine  is  the  kingdom,  the  power,  the 
strength,  the  might,  and  the  dominion  in  heaven  and  on 
earth,  now  and  always. 

He  signs  himself,  and  they  respond : 
Amen. 

XIX.  And  he  proceeds : 
Peace  be  with  you. 

They  respond: 
With  thee  and  with  thy  spirit. 

He  proceeds : 

It  is  becoming  that  the  holy  things  should  be  to  the  holy 
in  perfection. 

And  they  say : 

One  holy  Father :  one  holy  Son  :  one  Holy  Ghost.  Glory 
be  to  the  Father,  and  to  the  Son,  and  to  the  Holy  Ghost,  for 
ever  and  ever.     Amen. 


90  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

TJie  Deacon. 
Praise  ye. 

And  they  say  tJte  responsory.     And  loJien  the  Deacon  comes  to 
carry  the  chalice,  he  says  : 

Let  us  pray  for  peace  with  us. 

The  Priest  says : 

The  grace  of  the  Holy  Ghost  be  with  thee,  with  us,  and 
with  those  who  receive  Him. 

And  he  gives  the  chalice  to  the  Deacon.      T7ie  Deacon  says : 


Bless,  O  Lord. 


The  Priest. 


The  gift  of  the  grace  of  our  Life-giver  and  Lord  Jesus 
Christ  be  completed,  in  mercies,  with  all. 

And  he  signs  the  people  ivith  the  cross.     In  the  meantime  the 

responsories  are  said. 

Brethren,  receive  the  body  of  the  Son,  cries  the  church, 
and  drink  ye  His  chalice  with  faith  in  the  house  of  His 
kingdom. 

On  feast-days. 
Strengthen,  O  Lord. 

On  the  Lord's  day. 
O  Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

Daily. 
The  mysteries  which  we  have  received. 

The  responsories  being  ended,  the  Deacon  says : 
All  therefore. 

And  they  respond: 
Glory  be  to  Himself  on  account  of  His  ineffable  gift. 


LITURGY  OF  THE  HOLY  APOSTLES.  91 

Tlte  Deacon. 
Let  us  pray  for  peace  with  us. 

The  Priest  at  the  middle  of  the  altar  says  this  prayer  : 

XX.  It  is  meet,  O  Lord,  just  and  right  in  all  days,  times, 
and  hours,  to  thank,  adore,  and  praise  the  awful  name  of 
Thy  majesty,  because  Tliou  hast  through  Thy  grace,  O  Lord, 
made  us,  mortal  men  possessing  a  frail  nature,  worthy  to 
sanctify  Thy  name  with  the  heavenly  ^  beings,  and  to 
become  partakers  of  the  mysteries  of  Thy  gift,  and  to  be 
delighted  with  the  sweetness  of  Thy  oracles.  And  voices  of 
glory  and  thanksgiving  we  ever  offer  up  to  Thy  sublime 
divinity,  O  Lord. 

Another. 

Christ,  our  God,  Lord,  King,  Saviour,  and  Life-giver, 
through  His  grace  has  made  us  worthy  to  receive  His  body 
and  His  precious  and  all-sanctifying  blood.  May  He  grant 
unto  us  that  we  may  be  pleasing  unto  Him  in  our  words, 
works,  thoughts,  and  deeds,  so  that  that  pledge  which  we 
have  received  may  be  to  us  for  the  pardon  of  our  offences, 
the  forgiveness  of  our  sins,  and  the  grand  hope  of  a  resur- 
rection from  the  dead,  and  a  new  and  true  life  in  the  king- 
dom of  the  heavens,  with  all  who  have  been  pleasing  before 
Him,  through  His  grace  and  His  mercies  for  ever. 

On  ordinary  days. 

Praise,  O  Lord,  honour,  blessing,  and  thanksgiving  we 
ought  to  ascribe  to  Thy  glorious  Trinity  for  the  gift  of  Thy 
holy  mysteries,  which  Thou  hast  given  to  us  for  the  propitia- 
tion of  our  offences,  O  Lord  of  all. 

Another. 

Blessed  be  Thy  adorable  honour,  from  Thy  glorious  place, 
O  Christ,  the  propitiator  of  our  offences  and  our  sins,  and 
who  takest  away  our  follies  through  Thy  renowned,  holy, 

^  Spiritualibus. 


92  EARLY  LITURGIES. 

life-giving,  and  divine  mysteries.     Christ  the  hope  of  our 
nature  always  and  for  ever.     Amen. 

Obsignation  or  final  benediction. 

May  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  to  whom  we  have  ministered, 
and  whom  we  have  seen  and  honoured  in  His  renowned,  holy, 
life-giving,  and  divine  mysteries,  Himself  render  us  worthy 
of  the  splendid  glory  of  His  kingdom,  and  of  gladness  with 
His  holy  angels,  and  for  confidence  before  Him,  that  we 
may  stand  at  His  right  hand.  And  on  our  entire  congrega- 
tion may  His  mercies  and  compassion  be  continually  poured 
out,  now  and  always,  and  ever. 

On  the  Lords  day  and  on  feast-days. 

May  He  Himself  who  blessed  us  with  all  spiritual  bless- 
ings in  the  heavens,  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord,  and 
prepared  us  for  His  kingdom,  and  called  us  to  the  desirable 
good  things  which  neither  cease  nor  perish,  as  He  promised 
to  us  in  His  life-giving  gospel,  and  said  to  the  blessed  con- 
gregation of  His  disciples  :  Verily,  verily  I  say  unto  you, 
that  every  one  who  eateth  my  body  and  drinketh  my  blood, 
abideth  in  me,  and  I  in  him,  and  I  will  raise  him  up  at  the 
last  day ;  and  he  cometh  not  to  judgment,  but  I  will  make 
him  pass  from  death  to  eternal  life, — may  He  Himself  now 
bless  this  congregation,  and  maintain  our  position,  and  render 
glorious  our  people  who  have  come  and  rejoiced  in  receiving 
His  renowned,  holy,  life-giving,  and  divine  mysteries;  and 
may  ye  be  sealed  and  guarded  by  the  holy  sign  of  the  Lord's 
cross  from  all  evils,  secret  and  open,  now  and  always. 


SYRIAC  DOCUMENTS 


OF 


THE  ANTE-NICENE  PERIOD. 


TRANSLATED   BY 


EEV.   B.   r.   PEATTEN,  B.A. 


INTRODUCTION  TO  AMBROSE  AND  MARA 
BAR  SERA P ION. 

HE  text  of  the  two  following  short  pieces  is  found 
in  the  Spicilegium  Syriacum  of  the  late  Dr. 
Cureton.  This  careful  scholar  speaks  of  the 
second  of  these  compositions  as  containing  "  some 
very  obscure  passages."  The  same  remark  holds  good  also 
of  the  first.  Dr.  Payne  Smith  describes  them  both  as  "  full 
of  difficulties."  So  far  as  these  arise  from  errors  in  the 
text,  they  might  have  been  removed,  had  I  been  able  to  avail 
myself  of  the  opportunity  kindly  offered  me  by  Dr.  Rieu, 
Keeper  of  the  Oriental  MSS.  at  the  British  Museum,  of  in- 
specting the  original  MS.  As  it  is,  several  have,  it  is  hoped, 
been  successfully  met  by  conjecture. 

To  Dr.  R.  Payne  Smith,  Dean  of  Canterbury,  who,  as  on 
two  previous  occasions,  has  most  kindly  and  patiently  afforded 
me  his  valuable  assistance,  I  beg  to  offer  my  very  grateful 
acknowledizments. 

B.  P.  Pratten. 


85 


AMBROSE.^ 


MEMORIAL^  which  Ambrose,  a  chief  man  of 
Greece,  wrote :  who  became  a  Christian,  and  all 
his  fellow-senators  raised  an  outcry  against  him  ; 
and  he  fled  from  them,  and  wrote  and  pointed 
cut  to  them  all  their  foolishness. 

Beginning  his  discourse,^  he  answered  and  said  : — 
Think  not,  men  of  Greece,  that  my  separation  from  your 
customs  has  been  made  without  a  just  and  proper  reason. 
For  I  acquainted  myself  with  all  your  wisdom,  [consisting] 
of  poetry,  of  oratory,  of  philosophy ;  and,  when  I  found  not 
[there]  anything  [agreeable  to  what  is]  right,  or  that  is 
worthy  of  the  Divine  nature,  I  resolved  to  make  myself 
acquainted  wdth  the  wisdom  of  the  Christians  also,  and  to 
learn  and  see  who  [they  are],  and  when  [they  took  their  rise], 
and  what  is  [the  nature  of]  this  new  and  strange  wisdom  [of 
theirs],*  or  on  what  good  [hopes]  those  who  are  imbued  with 
it  rely,  that  they  speak  [only]  that  which  is  true. 

Men  of  Greece,  when  I  came  to  examine  [the  Christian 
writings],  I  found  not  any  folly^  [in  them],  as  I  had  found 

^  This  piece  has  much  in  common  with  the  Discourse  to  the  Greeks 
(Adyoj  TTfof  "EAXyji/aj),  ascribed  by  many  to  Justin,  which  is  contained 
in  vol.  ii.  pp.  279-283  of  this  Library.  Two  things  seem  to  be  evident : 
(1)  That  neither  of  the  two  pieces  is  the  original  composition  :  for  each 
contains  something  not  found  in  the  other  ;  (2)  That  the  original  w;is  in 
Greek  :  for  the  Syriac  has  in  some  instances  evidently  mistranslated  the 
Greek. 

^  The  Greek  vTrouvvj/icotrx. 
2  Lit.,  "  and  in  the  beginning  of  his  words." 
*  Lit.,  "  what  is  the  newness  and  strangeness  of  it." 
^  The  word  also  means  "sin  ;"  and  this  notion  is  the  more  promi- 
nent of  the  two  in  what  foUows. 


98  SYFTAC  DOCUMENTS. 

in  the  celebrated  Homer,  who  has  said  concerning  the  wars 
of  the  two  trials  :^  "  Because  of  Helen,  many  of  the  Greeks 
perished  at  Troy,  away  from  their  beloved  home."  ^  For, 
first  of  all,  we  are  told^  concerning  Agamemnon  their  king, 
that  by  reason  of  the  foolishness  of  his  brother  Menelaus, 
and  the  violence  of  his  madness,  and  the  uncontrollable 
nature  of  his  passion,  he  resolved  to  go  and  rescue  Helen 
from  [the  hands  of]  a  certain  leprous^  shepherd ;  and  [after- 
wards], when  the  Greeks  had  become  victorious  in  the  war, 
and  burnt  cities,  and  taken  women  and  children  captive,  and 
the  land  was  filled  with  blood,  and  the  rivers  with  corpses, 
Agamemnon  himself  also  was  found  to  be  taken  captive  by 
[his]  passion  for  Briseis.  Patroclus,  again,  we  are  told,  was 
slain,  and  Achilles,  the  son  of  the  goddess  Thetis,  mourned 
over  him  ;  Hector  was  dragged  [along  the  ground],  and 
Priam  and  Hecuba  together  were  weeping  over  the  loss  of 
their  children  ;  Astyanax,  the  son  of  Hector,  was  thrown 
down  from  the  walls  of  Ilion,  and  his  mother  Andromache 
the  mighty  Ajax  bore  away  [into  captivity]  ;  and  that  which 
was  taken  as  booty  was,  after  a  little  while,  [all]  squandered 
in  sensual  indulo-ence. 

Of  the  wiles  of  Odysseus  the  son  of  Laertes,  and  of  his 
murders,  who  shall  tell  the  tale  ?  For  of  a  hundred  and 
ten  suitors  did  his  house  in  one  day  become  the  grave,  and 

^  It  is  difficult  to  assign  any  satisfactory  meaning  to  the  word 

^->-30  I  m  1,  which  appears,  however,  to  be  the  reading  of  the  MS., 
since  Cureton  endeavours  to  justify  the  rendering  given.  "  Calamities," 
a  sense  the  word  will  also  bear,  seems  no  easier  of  explanation.  If  we 
could  assume  the  meaning  to  be  "  nations"  (nationes),  a  word  similar 
in  sound  to  that  found  in  the  text,  explaining  it  of  heathen  peoples, 
Gentiles  (comp.  Tertullian,  de  Idol.  22,  "per  deos  nationum"),  this 
might  seem  to  meet  the  difficulty.  But  there  is  no  trace  in  this  com- 
position of  a  Latin  influence  :  if  a  foreign  word  must  be  used,  we  should 
rather  have  expected  the  Greek  'iduyi. 

"  II.  ii.  177  sq.  3  Lit.,  "  they  say." 

*  It  has  been  proposed  to  substitute  in  the  Greek  copy  T^tTrapou, 
"  dainty,"  for  "hi-apw.  But  the  Syriac  confirms  the  MS.  reading.  The 
term  is  thought  to  be  expressive  of  the  contempt  in  which  shepherds 
were  held.     See  vol.  ii.  p.  279,  note  1. 


AMBROSE.  99 

it  was  filled  with  corpses  and  blood.  He,  too,  [it  was]  that  by 
his  wickedness  gained  the  praises  [of  men],  because  through 
[his]  pre-eminence  in  craft  he  escaped  detection  ;  he,  too, 
[it  was]  who,  you  say,  sailed  upon  the  sea,  and  heard  [not] 
the  voice  of  the  Sirens  [only]  because  he  stopped  his  ears 
with  wax.^ 

The  famous  Achilles,  again,  the  son  of  Peleus,  who  bounded 
across  the  river,  and  routed"  the  Trojans,  and  slew  Hector, 
— this  said  hero  of  yours  became  the  slave  of  Philoxena,  and 
was  overcome  by  an  Amazon  [as  she  lay]  dead  and  stretched 
[upon  her  bier]  ;  and  he  put  off  his  armour,  and  arrayed 
himself  in  nuptial  garments,  and  finally  fell  a  sacrifice  to 
love. 

Thus  much  concerning  [your]  great  men ;  ^  and  thou. 
Homer,  hadst  deserved  forgiveness,  if  thy  silly  story-telling 
had  gone  so  far  [only]  as  to  prate  about  men,  and  not  about 
the  gods.  As  for  what  [he  says]  about  the  gods,  I  am  ashamed 
even  to  speak  of  it :  for  the  stories  that  have  been  invented 
about  them  are  very  wicked  and  shocking ;  passing  strange,** 
too,  and  not  to  be  believed ;  and,  if  the  truth  must  be  told,'^ 
fit  only  to  be  laughed  at.  For  a  person  will  [be  compelled 
to]  laugh  when  he  meets  with  them,  and  will  not  believe  them 
when  he  hears  them.  For  [think  of]  gods  who  did  not  one 
of  them  observe  the  laws  of  rectitude,  or  of  purity,  or  of 
modesty,  but  [were]  adulterers,  and  spent  their  time  in 
debauchery,  and  [yet]  were  not  condemned  to  death,  as  they 
ouirlit  to  have  been  ! 

^  lu  the  Greek  this  is  adduced  as  an  evidence  of  his  weakness  :  "  be- 
cause he  was  unable  to  stop  his  ears  by  [his]  self-control  ((ppov/;ait)." 

-  kO^-L,  the  reading  of  the  text,  which  can  only  mean  "  fled,"  is 
manifestly  incorrect.  The  Aphel  of  this  verb,  *Or^|,  "  caused  to  flee," 
is  suggested  by  Dr.  Payne  Smith,  who  also  proposes  ;  f^^,  "exstirpavit." 

^   Or,  "  [your]  heroes." 

*  This  is  not  intended  as  a  translation  of  ^— i-lijllD,  which  is  literally 
"  conquered."  Dr.  Payne  Smith  thinks  it  just  possible  that  there  was 
in  the  Greek  some  derivative  of  v-Trspfix^.T^u  =  "  to  surpass  belief,"  which 
the  Syrian  translator  misunderstood. 

^  This  is  conjectured  to  be  the  meaning  of  what  would  be  literally 
rendered,  "  et  id  quod  coactum  est." 


100  SYRIAG  DOCUMENTS. 

"Why,  the  sovereign  of  the  gods,  the  very  "  father  of  gods 
and  men,"  not  only,  as  ye  say,  was  an  adulterer  (this  was  but  a 
light  thing),  but  even  slew  his  own  father,  and  was  a  paederast. 
I  will  first  of  all  speak  of  [his]  adultery,  though  I  blush  [to 
do  so]  :  for  he  appeared  to  Antiope  as  a  satyr,  and  descended 
upon  Danae  as  a  shower  of  gold,  and  became  a  bull  for 
Europa,  and  a  swan  for  Leda ;  whilst  the  love  of  Semele, 
the  mother  of  Dionysus,  exposed  both  his  own  ardency  [of 
passion]  and  the  jealousy  of  the  chaste  Hera.  Ganymede 
the  Phrygian,  too,  he  carried  off  [disguised]  as  an  eagle,  that 
the  fair  and  comely  boy,  forsooth,  might  serve  as  cup-bearer 
to  him.  This  said  sovereign  of  the  gods,  moreover,  killed 
his  father  Kronos,  that  he  might  seize  upon  his  kingdom. 

Oh  !  to  how  many  charges  is  the  sovereign  of  the  gods 
amenable,^  and  how  many  deaths  does  he  deserve  [to  die],  as 
an  adulterer,  and  as  a  sorcerer,^  and  as  a  paederast !  Read  to 
the  sovereign  of  the  gods,  O  men  of  Greece,  the  law  con- 
cerning parricide,  and  the  condemnation  pronounced  on 
adultery,  and  [about}  the  shame  that  attaches  to  the  vile  sin 
of  paederasty.  How  many  adulterers  has  the  sovereign  of 
the  gods  indoctrinated  [in  sin]  !  Nay,  how  many  pasderasts, 
and  sorcerers,  and  murderers !  So  that,  if  a  man  be  found  in- 
dulging his  passions,  he  must  not  be  put  to  death  :  because 
he  has  done  this  that  he  may  become  like  the  sovereign  of 
the  gods ;  and,  if  he  be  found  a  murderer,  he  has  an  excuse 
[in]  the  sovereign  of  the  gods  ;  and,  if  a  man  be  a  sorcerer, 
he  has  learned  it  from  the  sovereign  of  the  gods ;  and,  if  he 
be  a  pasderast,  the  sovereign  of  the  gods  is  his  apologist. 
Then,  again,  if  one  should  speak  of  courage,  Achilles  was 
more  valiant  than  this  said  sovereign  of  the  gods :  for  he 
slew  the  man  that  slew  his  friend ;  but  the  sovereign  of  the 
gods  wept  over  Sarpedon  his  son  when  he  was  dying,  being 
distressed  [for  him]. 

Pluto,  again,  who  is  a  god,  carried  off  Kora,^  and  the 

^  Lit.,  "  of  how  many  censures  is  .  .  .  full." 
2  Since  he  could  change  his  form  to  suit  his  purpose. 
^  That  is,  "  the  Daughter"  (namely,  of  Demeter),  the  name  under  which 
Proserpine  was  worshipped  in  Attica. 


AMBROSE.  101 

mother  of  Kora  was  hurrying  hither  and  thither  searching 
for  her  daughter  in  all  desert  places ;  and,  [although]  Alex- 
ander Paris,  when  lie  had  carried  off  Helen,  paid  the  penalty 
of  vengeance,  as  [having  made  himself]  her  lover  by  force, 
yet  Pluto,  who  is  a  god,  when  he  carried  off  Kora,  re- 
mained without  rebuke ;  and,  [although]  ^lenelaus,  who  is  a 
man,  knew  how  to  search  for  Helen  his  wife,  yet  Demeter, 
who  is  a  goddess,  knew  not  where  to  search  for  Kora  her 
daughter. 

Let  Hephaastus  put  away  jealousy  from  him,  and  not  in- 
dulge resentment.^  For  lie  was  hated,^  because  he  was  old 
and  lame ;  while  Ares  was  loved,  because  he  was  a  youth 
and  beautiful  in  form.  There  was,  however,  a  reproof  [ad- 
ministered in  respect]  of  the  adultery.  Hephaestus  was  not, 
indeed,  [at  first]  aware  of  the  love  existing  between  Venus^ 
his  wife  and  Ares  ;  but,  when  he  did  become  acquainted  with 
it,  Hephagstus  said :  "  Come,  see  a  ridiculous  and  senseless 
piece  of  behaviour — how  to  me,  who  am  her  own,  Venus, 
the  daucrhter  of  the  sovereign  of  the  cods,  is  offerino;  insult — 
to  me,  [I  say]  who  am  her  own,  and  is  paying  honour  to  Ares, 
who  is  a  strano;er  to  her."  But  to  the  sovereiirn  of  the  sods 
it  was  not  displeasing :  for  he  loved  such  as  were  like  these. 
Penelope,  moreover,  remained  a  widow  twenty  years,  because 
she  was  expecting  [the  return  of]  her  husband  Odysseus,  and 
busied  herself  with  cunning  tasks,**  and  persevered  in  works 
of  skill,  while  all  those  suitors  kept  pressing  her  [to  marry 
them] ;  but  Venus,  who  is  a  goddess,  when  Hephtestus  her 
husband  was  close  to  her,  deserted  him,  because  she  was 
overcome  by  love  for  Ares.  Hearken,  men  of  Greece : 
which  of  you  would  have  dared  to  do  this,  or  would  even 
have  endured  to  see  it"?     And,  if  any  one  should  dare  [to 

^  Because  the  behaviour  of  which  he  had  to  coniph\iu  was  sanctioned 
by  the  highest  of  the  gods. 

2  For  .  I  m  ll],  "  was  tried,"  read  •  -  iro']  The  Greek  has^f^/ff/jro. 
Cureton:  "forgotten." 

3  The  word  is  "  Balthi." 

*  Dr.  Payne  Smith  reads  (l»J_i  <iiD  instead  cf  {'^V  [  J^,  a  word 
which,  as  Curetou  says,  is  not  in  the  lexicons. 


102  SYRIAC  DOCUMENTS. 

act  so],  what  torture  would  be  in  store  for  liim,  or  what 
scouro;ino;s ! 

Kronos,  again,  who  is  a  god,  who  devoured  all  those  chil- 
dren [of  his],  was  not  even  brought  before  a  court  of  justice. 
They  further  tell  [us]  that  the  sovereign  of  the  gods,  his 
son,  was  the  only  one  that  escaped  from  him ;  and  that  the 
madness  of  Kronos  his  father  was  cheated  [of  its  purpose] 
because  Ehea  his  wife,  the  mother  of  the  sovereign  of  the 
gods,  offered  him  a  stone  in  the  place  of  the  said  sovereign 
of  the  gods,  his  son,  to  prevent  him  from  devouring  him. 
Hearken,  men  of  Greece,  and  reflect  upon  this  madness ! 
Why,  [even]  the  dumb  animal  that  grazes  in  the  field  knows 
its  [proper]  food,  and  does  not  touch  strange  food ;  the  wild 
beast,  too,  and  the  reptile,  and  the  bird,  know  their  food.  As 
for  men,  I  need  not  say  anything  about  them  :  ye  yourselves 
are  acquainted  with  their  food,  and  understand  it  [well].  But 
Kronos,  who  is  a  god,  not  knowing  his  [proper]  food,  ate  up 
a  stone ! 

Therefore,  O  men  of  Greece,  if  ye  will  have  such  gods  as 
these,  do  not  find  fault  with  one  another  when  ye  do  such-like 
things.  Be  not  angry  with  thy  son  when  he  forms  the  design 
to  kill  thee :  because  he  [thus]  resembles  the  sovereign  of  the 
gods.  And,  if  a  man  commit  adultery  with  thy  wife,  why 
dost  thou  think  of  him  as  an  enemy,  and  yet  to  the  sove- 
reign of  the  gods,  who  is  like  him,  doest  worship  and  service? 
Why,  too,  dost  thou  find  fault  with  thy  wife  when  she  has 
committed  adultery  and  leads  a  dissolute  life,^  and  [yet] 
payest  honour  to  Venus,  and  placest  her  [images]  in  shrines? 
Persuade  [your]  Solon  to  repeal  his  laws  ;  Lycurgus,  also,  to 
make  no  laws ;  let  the  Areopagus  repeal^  theirs,  and  judge  no 
more ;  and  let  the  Athenians  have  councils  no  longer.  Let 
the  Athenians  discharge  Socrates  [from  his  office]  :  for  no 
one  like  Kronos  has  [ever]  come  before  him.  Let  them 
not  put  to  death  Orestes,  who  killed  his  mother :  for,  lo ! 

1  The  reading  of  the  Greek  copy,  dx.o'Koe.oTUi  ^uaxv,  is  here  given.  The 
Syrian  adapter,  misunderstanding  dx.o'ha.arui.,  renders:  "and  is  without 
punishment." 

2  Cureton,  "  break." 


AMBROSE.  103 

the  sovereign  of  the  cods  did  worse  things  tlian  these  to  liis 
father.  Qi^dipus  also  [too]  hastily  inflicted  mischief  on  him- 
self, in  depriving  his  eyes  of  sight,  because  he  had  killed  his 
mother  unwittingly:  for  he  did  not  think  about^  the  sovereign 
of  the  gods,  who  killed  his  father  and  [yet]  remained  without 
punishment.  Medea,  again,  who  killed  her  children,  the 
Corinthians  banish  [from  their  country] ;  and  [yet]  they  do 
service  and  honour  to  Kronos,  who  devoured  his  children. 
Then,  too,  as  regards  Alexander  Paris — he  was  right  in 
carrying  off  Helen  :  [for  he  did  it]  that  he  might  become 
like  Pluto,  who  carried  off  Kora.  Let  [your]  men  be  set 
free  from  law,  and  let  [your]  cities  be  [the  abode]  of  wanton 
women,  and  a  dwelling-place  for  sorcerers. 

Wherefore,  O  men  of  Greece,  seeing  that  your  gods  are 
grovelling  likeyourselves,  and  your  heroes  destituteof  courage,^ 
as  your  dramas  tell  and  your  stories  declare — then,  again, 
[what  shall  be  said]  of  the  tribulations  of  Orestes ;  and  the 
couch  of  Thyestes ;  and  the  foul  taint  [in  the  family]  of 
Pelops ;  and  concerning  Danaus,  who  through  jealousy  killed 
his  sons  [-in-law],  and  deprived  them  of  offspring ;  the  ban- 
quet of  Thyestes,  too,  [feeding  upon]  the  corpse  [set  before 
him  by  way]  of  vengeance  for  her  [whom  he  had  wronged]  ; 
[about]  Procne  also,  to  this  hour  screaming  as  she  flies ; 
her  sister  too,  warbling  with  her  tongue  cut  out?^  What, 
moreover,  is  it  fitting  to  say  about  the  murder  committed  by 
GEdipus,  who  took  his  own  mother  [to  wife],  and  whose 
brothers  killed  one  another,  they  being  [at  the  same  time] 
his  sons? 

Your  festivals,  too,  I  hate;  for  there  is  no  moderation  where 
they  are ;  the  sweet  flutes  also,  dispel lers  of  care,  which  play 
as  an  incitement  to  dancing  ;■*  and  the  preparation  of  oint- 

1  Lit.,  "  look  at." 

2  So  in  the  Greek  copy.  The  Syriac,  which  has  "  valiant,"  appears  to 
have  mistaken  ciuauopoi  for  dvop-toi. 

^  The  tradition  seems  to  be  followed  which  makes  Procne  to  have  been 
changed  into  a  swallow,  and  her  sister  (Philomela)  into  a  nightingale. 

■*  Cureton  :  "  play  with  a  tremulous  motion."  But  the  Syriac  very  well 
answers  to  the  Greek  iKKx'Kovjusvoi  7rp6;  olaTpuZn;  Kiutian;,  if  we  take  j^ 
to  denote  result:  q.d,  "  so  as  to  produce  [movement]." 


104  SYRIAC  DOCUMENTS. 

merits,  wherewith  ye  anoint  yourselves ;  and  the  chaplets 
which  ye  put  on.  In  the  abundance  of  your  wickedness, 
too,  ye  have  forgotten  shame,  and  your  understandings  have 
become  bhnded,  and  ye  have  been  infuriated^  by  the  heat  [of 
passion],  and  have  loved  the  adulterous  bed.^ 

Had  these  things  been  said  by  another,  perhaps  [our  ad- 
versaries] would  have  brought  an  accusation  against  him, 
[on  the  plea]  that  they  were  untrue.  But  your  own  poets 
say  them,  and  your  own  hymns  and  dramas  declare  them. 

Come,  therefore,  and  be  instructed  in  the  word  of  God, 
and  in  the  wisdom  which  is  fraught  with  comfort.  Rejoice, 
and  become  partakers  of  it.  Acquaint  yourselves  with  the 
King  Immortal,  and  acknowledge  His  servants.  For  not  in 
arms  do  they  make  their  boast,  nor  do  they  commit  murders  : 
because  our  Commander  has  no  delight  in  abundance  of 
strength,  nor  yet  in  horsemen  and  their  gallant  array,  nor 
yet  in  illustrious  descent;  but  He  delights  in  the  pure  soul, 
fenced  round  by  a  rampart  of  righteousness.  The  word  of 
God,  moreover,  and  the  promises  of  our  good  King,  and  the 
works  of  God,  are  ever  teaching  us.  Oh  [the  blessedness  of] 
the  soul  that  is  redeemed  by  the  power  of  the  word !  Oh 
[the  blessedness  of]  the  trumpet  of  peace  without  war !  Oh 
[the  blessedness  of]  the  teaching  which  quenches  the  fire  of 
appetite  !  which,  [though  it]  makes  not  poets,  nor  fits  [men] 
to  be  philosophers,  nor  has  [among  its  votaries]  the  orators  of 
the  crowd ;  yet  instructs  [men],  and  makes  the  dead  not  to 
die,  and  lifts  men  from  the  earth  [as]  gods  up  to  the  region 
which  is  above  the  firmament.  Come,  be  instructed,  and  be 
like  me :  for  I  too  was  [once]  as  ye  are. 

^  Greek,  i>i^ocK'/,ivoiMuoc.  ^  Lit.,  "  bed  of  falsity." 


A  LETTER  OF  MARA,  SON  OF  SERAPION. 


Mara,  son  of  Serapion,  to  Serapion,  my  son:  peace. 

When  thy  master  and  guardian  wrote  me  a  letter,  and  in- 
formed me  that  thou  wast  very  diligent  in  study,  [though  so] 
young  in  years,  I  blessed  God  that  thou,  a  little  boy,  [and] 
without  a  guide  [to  direct  thee],  hadst  begun  in  good  earnest ; 
and  to  myself  [also]  this  was  a  comfort — that  I  heard  of 
thee,  little  boy  [as  thou  art,  as  displaying]  such  greatness  of 
mind  and  conscientiousness  :^  [a  character]  which,  in  the  case 
of  many  [who  have  begun  well],  has  shown  no  eagerness  to 
continue. 

On  this  account,  lo,  I  have  written  for  thee  this  record, 
[touching]  that  which  I  have  by  careful  observation  dis- 
covered in  the  world.  For  the  kind  of  life  men  lead  has 
been  carefully  observed  by  me.  I  tread  the  path  of  learning," 
and  from  the  study  of  Greek  philosophy^  have  I  found  out 
all  these  things,  although  they  suffered  shipwreck  when  the 
birth  of  life  took  place.* 

^  Lit.,  "good  conscience." 

-  Or,  "my  daily  converse  is  with  learning."  So  Dr.  Payne  Smith  is 
inclined  to  take  these  difficult  words,  supplying,  as  Curetou  evidently 
does,  the  pronoun  fj].  The  construction  would  be  easier  if  we  could 
take  the  participle  ^.VmV)  as  a  passive,  and  render :  "  It  (the  kind  of 
life  men  lead)  has  been  explored  by  me  by  means  of  study." 
3  Lit.,  "Grsecism." 

*  The  meaning  probably  is,  that  the  maxims  referred  to  lost  their  im- 
portance for  him  when  he  entered  upon  the  nevf  life  of  a  Christian  (so 
Cureton) ,  or  their  importance  to  mankind  when  Christianity  itself  was  born 
into  the  world.  But  why  he  did  not  substitute  more  distinctive  Christian 
teaching  is  not  clear.     Perhaps  the  fear  of  pei-secution  influenced  him. 

105 


106  SYRIAC  DOCUMENTS. 

Be  diligent,  then,  my  son,  in  [attention  to]  those  things 
which  are  becoming  for  the  free,^  [so  as]  to  devote  thyself 
to  learning,  and  to  follow  after  wisdom ;  and  endeavour  thus 
to  become  confirmed  in  those  [habits]  with  which  thou  hast 
begun.  Call  to  mind  also  my  precepts,  as  a  quiet  person 
who  is  fond  of  the  pursuit  of  learning.  And,  even  though 
[such  a  life]  should  seem  to  thee  very  irksome,  [yet]  when 
thou  hast  made  experience  of  it  for  a  little  while,  it  will 
become  very  pleasant  to  thee :  for  to  me  also  it  so  happened. 
When,  moreover,  a  person  has  left  his  home,  and  is  able 
[still]  to  preserve  his  [previous]  character,  and  properly  does 
that  which  it  behoves  him  to  do,  he  is  that  chosen  man  who 
is  called  "  the  blessing  of  God,"  and  one  who  does  not  find 
aught  else  to  compare  with  his  freedom.^  For,  as  for  those 
persons  who  are  called  to  the  pursuit  of  learning,  they  are 
seeking  to  extricate  themselves  from  the  turmoils  of  time ; 
and  those  who  take  hold  upon  wisdom,  they  are  clinging 
to  the  hope  of  righteousness ;  and  those  who  take  their 
stand  on  truth,  they  are  displaying  the  banner  of  their 
virtue ;  and  those  who  cultivate  philosophy,  they  are  look- 
ing to  escape  from  the  vexations  of  the  world.  And  do 
thou  too,  my  son,  thus  wisely  behave  thyself  in  [regard  to] 
these  things,  as  a  wise  person  who  seeks  to  spend  a  pure 
life;  and  [beware]  lest  the  gain  which  many  hunger  after 
enervate  thee,  and  thy  mind  turn  to  covet  riches,  which 
have  no  stability.  For,  when  they  are  acquired  by  fraud, 
they  do  not  continue ;  nor,  even  when  justly  [obtained],  do 
they  last ;  and  all  those  things  which  are  seen  by  thee  in  the 
world,  as  belonging  to  that  which  is  [only]  for  a  little  time, 
[are  destined]  to  depart  like  a  dream ;  for  they  are  [but  as] 
the  risings  and  settings  of  the  seasons. 

About  the  [objects  of  that]  vainglory,  too,  of  which  the 
life  of  men  is  full,  be  not  thou  solicitous :  seeing  that  from 
those  things  which  give  us  joy  there  quickly  comes  to  us 
harm.     Most  especially  [is  this  the  case  with]  the  birth  of 

^  That  is,  the  matters  constituting  "a  liheral  education." 
2  Cureton's  less  literal  rendering  probably  gives  the  true  sense  :  "with 
•whose  liberty  nothing  else  can  be  compared." 


A  LETTER  OF  MARA.  107 

beloved  children.  For  in  two  respects  it  plainly  brings  us 
harm :  in  the  case  of  the  virtuous,  [our  very]  affection  for 
them  torments  us,  and  from  their  [very  excellence  of]  cha- 
racter we  suffer  torture ;  and,  in  the  case  of  the  vicious,  we 
are  worried  with  their  correction,  and  afflicted  with  their 
misconduct. 

Thou  hast  heard,^  moreover,  concerning  our  companions, 
that,  when  they  were  leaving  Samosata,  they  were  distressed 
[about  it],  and,  as  if  complaining  of  the  time  [in  which  their 
lot  was  cast],  said  thus :  "  We  are  now  far  removed  from 
our  home,  and  we  cannot  return  [again]  to  our  city,  or  behold 
our  people,  or  offer  to  our  gods  the  greeting  of  praise." 
Meet  was  it  that  that  day  should  be  called  [a  day]  of  lamen- 
tation, because  one  heavy  grief  possessed  them  all  alike. 
For  they  wept  as  they  remembered  their  fathers,  and  [they 
thought  of]  their  mothers'   Avith   sobs,  and  they  were  dis- 
tressed for  their  brethren,  [and]  grieved  for  their  betrothed 
whom  they  had  left  behind.     And,  although  we  had  heard 
that  their^  former  companions  were  proceeding  to  Seleucia, 
we  clandestinely  [set  out,  and]  proceeded  on  the  way  towards 
them,  and  united  our  own  misery  with  theirs.     Then  was 
our  grief   exceedingly  violent,   and  fitly  did  our  weeping 
abound,  by  reason  of  our  desperate  plight,  and  our  wailing 
gathered  [itself  into]  a  dense  cloud,*  and  our  misery  grew 
vaster  than  a  mountain  :  for  not  one  of  us  had  the  power  to 
ward  off  the  disasters  that  assailed  him.     For  affection  for 
the  living  was  intense,  as  well  as  sorrow  for  the  dead,  and 
our  miseries  were  driving  us  on  without  any  way  [of  escape]. 
For  we  saw  our  brethren  and  our  children  captives,  and 
we  remembered  our  deceased  companions,  who  were  laid  [to 
rest]  in  a  foreign^  land.     Each  one  of  us,  too,  was  anxious 

iCureton:  "  I  have  heard."    The  unpoiuted  text  is  here  ambiguous. 

2  Read  ^TlioiiDl,  instead  of  ^OOiIoId],  "peoples." 

3  Perhaps  "our"  is  meant. 

*  Curcton  :  "  and  the  dark  cloud  collected  our  sighs."  But  the  words 
immediately  foUowiug,  as  well  as  the  fact  that  in  each  of  the  clauses  the 
nominative  is  placed  last,  favom-s  the  reuderiug  given. 

5  Lit.,  "borrowed." 


108  SYRIAC  DOCUMENTS. 

for  himself,  lest  he  should  have  disaster  added  to  disaster, 
or  [lest]  another  calamity  should  overtake  that  which  went 
before  it.  What  enjoyment  could  men  have  that  were 
prisoners,  [and]  who  experienced  [things  like]  these  ? 

But  as  for  thee,  my  beloved,  be  not  distressed  because  in 
thy  loneliness  thou  hast^  been  driven  from  place  to  place. 
For  to  these  things  men  are  born,  since  they  [are  destined] 
to  meet  with  the  accidents  of  time.  But  [rather]  let  thy 
thought  be  this,  that  to  wise  men  every  place  is  alike,  and 
[that]  in  every  city  the  good  have  many  fathers  and  mothers. 
Else,  [if  thou  doubt  it],  take  thee  a  proof  from  [what  thou 
hast  seen]  thyself.  How  many  people  who  know  thee  not 
love  thee  as  [one  of]  their  own  children ;  and  [what]  a  host 
of  women  receive  thee  as  [they  would]  their  own  beloved 
ones  !  Verily,  as  a  stranger  thou  hast  been  fortunate ;  verily, 
for  thy  small  love  many  people  have  conceived  an  ardent 
affection  for  thee. 

What,  again,  are  we  to  say  concerning  the  delusion^  which 
has  taken  up  its  abode  in  the  world?  Both  by  reason  of 
toil  ^  painful  is  the  journey  through  it,  and  by  its  agitations 
are  we,  like  a  reed  by  the  force  of  the  wind,  bent  now  in  this 
direction,  now  in  that.  For  I  have  been  amazed  at  many 
who  cast  away  their  children,  and  I  have  been  astonished  at 
others  who  bring  up  those  that  are  not  theirs.  There  are 
persons  who  acquire  riches  in  the  world,  and  I  have  also  been 
astonished  at  others  who  inherit  that  which  is  not  [of]  their 
own  [acquisition].  Thus  [mayest  thou]  understand  and  see 
that  we  are  walking  under  the  guidance  of  delusion. 

Begin  and  tell  us,  O  wisest  of  men,*  on  which  of  [his] 
possessions  a  man  can  place  reliance,  or  concerning  what 
things  he  can  say  that  they  are  such  as  abide.     [Wilt  thou 

1  Lit.,  "because  thy  loneliness  has." 

2  Or  "error."  He  may  refer  either  to  the  delusion  of  those  who  pur- 
sue supposed  earthly  good,  or  to  the  false  appearances  by  which  men 
are  deceived  in  such  pursuit. 

3  For  'j^nVv'-'  read  (llm.O, 

*  Cureton :  "  A  sage  among  men  once  began  to  say  to  us."  This  would 
rec[uire  «^r-9,  not  |^. 


A  LETTER  OF  MARA.  109 

say  so]  of  abundance  of  riches?  they  are  snatched  away.  Of 
fortresses?  they  are  spoiled.  Of  cities?  they  are  laid  waste. 
Of  greatness?  it  is  brought  down.  Of  magnificence?  it  is 
overthrown.  Of  beauty?  it  withers.  Or  of  laws?  they 
pass  away.  Or  of  poverty  ?  it  is  despised.  Or  of  children  ? 
they  die.  Or  of  friends?  they  prove  false.  Or  of  the 
praises  [of  men]  ?  jealousy  goes  before  them. 

Let  a  man,  therefore,  rejoice  in  his  empire,  like  Darius; 
or  in  his  good  fortune,  like  Polycratcs ;  or  in  his  bravery, 
like  Achilles ;  or  in  his  wife,  like  Agamemnon  ;  or  in  his 
offspring,  like  Priam;  or  in  his  skill,  like  Archimedes;  or  in 
his  wisdom,  like  Socrates ;  or  in  his  learning,  like  Pythagoras ; 
or  in  his  ingenuity,  like  Palamedes ; — the  life  of  men,  my 
son,  departs  from  the  world,  but  their  praises  and  their 
virtues  abide  for  ever. 

Do  thou,  then,  my  little  son,  choose  thee  that  which  fadeth 
not  away.  For  those  who  occupy  themselves  with  these 
things  are  called  modest,  and  [are]  beloved,  and  lovers  of 
a  good  name. 

When,  moreover,  anything  untow^ard  befalls  thee,  do  not 
lay  the  blame  on  man,  nor  be  angry  against  God,  nor  ful- 
minate against  the  time  thou  livest  in. 

If  thou  shalt  continue  in  this  mind,  thy  gift  is  not  small 
which  thou  hast  received  from  God,  which  has  no  need  of 
riches,  and  is  never  reduced  to  poverty.  For  without  fear 
shalt  thou  pass  thy  life,^  and  with  rejoicing.  For  fear  and 
apologies  for  [one's]  nature  belong  not  to  the  wise,  but  to 
such  as  walk  contrary  to  law.  For  no  man  has  ever  been 
deprived  of  his  wisdom,  as  of  his  property. 

Follow  diligently  learning  rather  than  riches.  For  the 
greater  are  [one's]  possessions,  the  greater  is  the  evil  [atten- 
dant upon  them].  For  I  have  myself  observed  that,  where 
[a  man's]  goods  are  many,  so  also  are  the  tribulations  which 
happen  [to  him]  ;  and,  where  luxuries  are  accumulated,  there 
also  do  sorrows  congregate ;  and,  where  riches  are  abundant, 
there  is  [stored  up]  the  bitterness  of  many  a  year. 

If,  therefore,  thou  shalt  behave  with  understanding,  and 

1  .^AnV  V 


110  SYEIAC  DOCUMENTS. 

shalt  diligently  watch  over  [thy  conduct],  God  will  not  re- 
frain from  helping  thee,  nor  men  from  loving  thee. 

Let  that  which  thou  art  able  to  acquire  suffice  thee ;  and 
if,  moreover,  thou  art  able  to  do  without  property,  thou  shalt 
be  called  blessed,  and  no  man  whatsoever  shall  be  jealous  of 
thee. 

And  remember  also  this,  that  nothing  will  disturb  thy 
life  very  greatly,  except  [it  be  the  love  of]  gain ;  [and]  that 
no  man  after  his  death  is  called  an  owner  of  property  : 
because  it  is  by  the  desire  of  this  that  weak  men  are  led 
captive,  and  they  know  not  that  a  man  dwells  among  his 
possessions  [only]  in  the  manner  of  a  chance-comer,  and 
they  are  haunted  with'  fear  because  these  [possessions]  are 
not  secured  to  them  :  for  they  have  abandoned  that  which  is 
their  own,  and  seek  that  which  is  not  theirs. 

What  are  we  to  say,  when  the  wise  are  dragged  by  force 
by  the  hands  of  tyrants,  and  their  wisdom  is  deprived  of 
its  freedom^  by  slander,  and  they  are  plundered  for  their 
[superior]  intelligence,  without  [the  opportunity  of  making] 
a  defence  ?  [They  are  not  wdiolly  to  be  pitied.]  For  what 
benefit  did  the  Athenians  obtain  by  putting  Socrates  to 
death,  seeing  that  they  received  [as]  retribution  for  it  famine 
and  pestilence  ?  Or  the  people  of  Samos  by  the  burning  of 
Pythagoras,  seeing  that  in  one  hour  the  whole  ^  of  their 
country  was  covered  with  sand  ?  Or  the  Jews  [by  the 
murder]  of  their  Wise  King,  seeing  that  from  that  very 
time  their  kingdom  was  driven  away  [from  them]  ?  For 
with  justice  did  God  grant  a  recompense  to  the  wisdom  of 
[all]  three  of  them.  For  the  Athenians  died  by  famine ; 
and  the  people  of  Samos  were  covered  by  the  sea  without 
remedy;  and  the  Jews,  brought  to  desolation  and  expelled 
from  their  kingdom,  are  driven  away  into  every  land.  [Nay], 
Socrates  did  not  die,  because  of  Plato ;  nor  yet  Pythagoras, 
because  of  the  statue  of  Hera ;  nor  yet  the  Wise  King, 
because  of  the  new  laws  which  he  enacted. 

Moreover  I,  my  son,  have  attentively  observed  mankind, 

1  Lit.,  "made  cajotive." 

2  Pqj.  rn\n«^  read  ni\n 


A  LETTER  OF  MARA.  Ill 

[and  noticed]  in  what  a  dismal  state  of  ruin  they  are.  And  I 
have  been  amazed  that  they  are  not  utterly  prostrated^  by  the 
calamities  which  surround  them,  and  [that]  even  [their]  wars' 
are  not  enough  for  them,  nor  the  pains  [they  endure],  nor  the 
diseases,  nor  the  death,  nor  the  poverty ;  but  [that],  like  savage 
beasts,  they  must  needs  rush  upon  one  another  in  [their] 
enmity,  [trying]  which  of  tliem  shall  inflict  the  greater  mis- 
chief on  his  fellow.  For  they  have  broken  away  from  the 
bounds  of  truth,  and  transgress  all  honest  laws,  because  they 
are  bent  on  fulfilling  their  selfish  desires  (for,  whensoever 
a  man  is  eagerly  set  on  [obtaining]  that  which  he  desires, 
how  is  it  possible  that  he  should  fitly  do  that  which  it  behoves 
him  [to  do]?);  and  they  acknowledge  no  restraint,^  and  but 
seldom  stretch  out  their  hands  towards  truth  and  goodness, 
but  in  their  manner  of  life  behave  like  the  deaf*  and  the 
blind.  Moreover,  the  wicked  rejoice,  and  the  righteous  are 
disquieted.  lie  that  has,  denies  [that  he  has]  ;  and  he  that 
has  not,  struggles  to  acquire.  The  poor  seek  [help],  and  the 
rich  hide  [their  wealth],  and  every  man  laughs  at  his  fellow. 
Those  that  are  drunken  are  stupefied,  and  those  that  have 
recovered  themselves  are  ashamed.^  Some  weep,  and  some 
sing ;  and  some  laugh,  and  others  are  a  prey  to  care.  They 
rejoice  in  things  evil,  and  a  man  that  speaks  the  truth  they 
despise. 

Should  a  man,  then,  be  surprised  when  the  world  is  seeking 
to  wither  him  with  [its]  scorn,  seeing  that  they  [and  he]  have 
not  one  [and  the  same]  manner  of  life?  These  are  the  things 
for  which  they  care.  One  of  them  is  looking  [forward  to 
the  time]  when  in  battle  he  shall  obtain  the  renown  of  vic- 
tory ;  yet  the  valiant  perceive  not  by  how  many  foolish 
objects  of  desire  a  man  is  led  captive  in  the  world.  But 
would  that  for  a  little  while  self-repentance  visited  them ! 

^  No  verb  is  found  in  the  lexicons  to  which  n  .  c^'-'A  «]  can  be 
referred.  It  may  perhaps  be  Eshtaphel  of  a  verb  ]^1I3,  cognate  with 
,.£1D,  "to  be  bent." 

2  For  ]rDj-b  read  "|rD-^0.  s  Or  "  moderation." 

■*  Cureton :  "  diiinb."'     The  word  l.»r>-*  ^'-'^^  both  senses. 
^  Or  "penitent." 


112  SYRIAC  DOCUMENTS. 

For,  while  victorious  by  their  bravery,  they  are  overcome  by 
the  power  of  covetousness.  For  I  have  made  trial  of  men, 
and  with  this  result :  that  the  one  thing  on  which  they  are 
intent,  is  abundance  of  riches.  Therefore  also  it  is  that  they 
have  no  settled  purpose ;  but,  through  the  instability  of  their 
minds,  a  man  is  of  a  sudden  cast  down  [from  his  elation  of 
spirit]  to  be  swallowed  up  with  sadness.  They  look  not  at  the 
vast  wealth  of  eternity,  [nor  consider]  that  every  visitation  of 
trouble  is  conducting  us  all  alike  to  the  same  [final]  period. 
For  they  are  devoted  to  the  majesty  of  the  belly,  [that]  huge 
blot  [on  the  character]  of  the  vicious. 

Moreover,  [as  regards]  this  [letter]  which  it  has  come  into 
my  mind  to  write  to  thee,  it  is  not  enough  to  read  it,  but  the 
best  thing  is  that  it  be  put  in  practice.^  For  I  know  for 
myself,  that  when  thou  shalt  have  made  experiment  of  this 
mode  of  life,  it  will  be  very  pleasant  to  thee,  and  thou  wilt 
be  free  from  sore  vexation ;  because  it  is  [only]  on  account 
of  children  that  we  tolerate  riches.^ 

Put,  therefore,  sadness  away  from  thee,  O  [most]  beloved 
of  mankind, — a  thing  which  never  in  anywise  benefits  [a 
man]  ;  and  drive  care  away  from  thee,  which  brings  with 
it  no  advantage  whatsoever.  For  we  have  no  resource  or 
skill  [that  can  avail  us — nothing]  but  a  great  mind  [able] 
to  cope  with  the  disasters  and  to  endure  the  tribulations 
which  we  are  always  receiving  at  the  hands  of  the  times. 
For  at  these  things  does  it  behove  us  to  look,  and  not  [only] 
at  those  which  are  fraught  with  rejoicing  and  good  repute. 

Devote  thyself  to  wisdom,  the  fount  of  all  things  good,  the 
treasure  that  faileth  not.  There  shalt  thou  lay  thy  head, 
and  be  at  ease.  For  this  shall  be  to  thee  father  and  mother, 
and  a  good  companion  for  thy  life. 

^  So  Dr.  Payne  Smith,  -who  is  inclined  to  take  (J\D  J>Oj..QSd  in  the 
sense,  "  it  goes  before,  it  is  best,  with  respect  to  it."  Cureton  translates, 
"it  should  also  proceed  to  practice,"  joining  JOOU  with  the  participle 
just  mentioned ;  whereas'  Dr.  Smith  connects  it  with  (,nSO),  thus  : 
"  but  that  it  should  be  [put]  in  practice  is  best  with  respect  to  it." 

2  This  appears  to  show  that  the  life  of  learned  seclusion  which  he  has 
been  recommending  is  one  of  celibacy — monasticism. 


A  LETTER  OF  MARA.  113 

Enter  into  closest  intimacy  with  fortitude  and  patience, 
those  [virtues]  wliich  are  abh?  [successfully]  to  encounter  the 
tribulations  that  befall  feeble  men.  For  so  great  is  their 
stren<;th,  that  they  are  adequate  to  sustain  hunger,  and  [can] 
endure  thirst,  and  mitigate  every  trouble.  AVith  toil,  more- 
over, yea  even  Avith  dissolution,  they  make  right  meriy. 

To  these  things  give  diligent  attention,  and  thou  shalt  lead 
an  untroubled  life,  and  I  also  shall  have  comfort,^  and  thou 
shalt  be  called  "  the  delight  of  his  parents." 

For  in  that  time  of  yore,  when  our  city  was  standing  in 
her  greatness,  thou  mayest  be  aware  that  against  many  per- 
sons [among  us]  abominable  words  were  uttered  ;  but  for 
ourselves,^  we  acknowledged  long  ago  that  we  received  love, 
no  less  than  honour,  to  the  fullest  extent  from  the  multitude 
of  her  people :  it  was  the  state  of  the  times  [only]  that  for- 
bade [our]  completing  those  things  which  we  had  resolved  on 
doing.^  And  here  also  in  the  prison-house  we  give  thanks 
to  God  that  we  have  received  the  love  of  many  :  for  we  are 
striving  to  our  utmost  to  maintain  a  life  of  sobriety  and 
cheerfulness  ;  '^  and,  if  any  one  drive  us  by  force,  he  will 
[but]  be  bearing  public  testimony  against  himself,  that  he 
is  estrano-ed  from  all  thimrs  iiood,  and  he  will  receive  dis- 
grace  and  shame  from  the  foul  mark  of  shame  [that  is  upon 
him].  For  we  have  shown  our  truth — [that  truth]  which  in 
our  [now]  ruined  kingdom  we  possessed  not.*     But,  if  the 

1  Or,  "  and  thou  shalt  be  to  me  a  comfort,"  as  Cureton. 

2  That  is,  "myself." 

3  Such  appears  to  be  the  sense  of  this  obscure  passage.  The  literal 
rendering  is,  "  We  acknowledgeil  of  old  that  we  received  equal  love  and 
honour  to  the  fullest  extent  from  her  multitude"  (or,  from  her  great- 
ness) ;  "  but  the  time  forbade  [our]  completing  those  things  which  were 
[already]  accomplished  in  our  mind."  ^Vhat  things  he  refers  to  (for  his 
words  seem  to  have  a  particular  reference)  is  not  clear.  The  word  ren- 
dered "  greatness,"  or  "  multitude,"  is  in  reality  two  words  in  pointed 
Mss.     Here  it  does  not  apjiear,  except  from  the  sense,  which  is  intended. 

*  Lit.,  "  We  are  putting  ourself  to  the  proof  to  [sec  how  far  we  can] 
stand  in  wisdom,"  etc. 

5  "  This  is  a  very  hopeless  passage.  .  .  .  Perhaps  the  codex  has 
_3_»>j5a£D,  'the  kingdom  of  our  ruin,'  i.e.  the  ruined  country  in  which 

H 


114  SYRIAC  DOCUMENTS. 

Eomans  shall  permit  us  to  go  [back]  to  our  own  country, 
[as  called  upon]  by  justice  and  righteousness  [to  do],  they 
will  be  acting  like  humane  men,  and  will  earn  the  name 
of  good  and  righteous,  and  at  the  same  time  [will  have]  a 
peaceful  country  in  which  to  dwell :  for  they  will  exhibit 
their  greatness  when  they  shall  leave  us  free  men,  [and]  we 
shall  be  obedient  to  the  sovereign  power  which  the  time  has 
allotted  to  us.  But  let  them  not,  like  tyrants,  drive  us  as 
[though  we  were]  slaves.  Yet,  if  it  has  been  [already]  de- 
termined what  shall  be  done,  we  shall  receive  nothing  more 
[dreadful]  than  the  peaceful  death  which  is  in  store  for  us. 

But  thou,  my  little  sou,  if  thou  resolve  diligently  to 
acquaint  thyself  with  these  things,  first  of  all  put  a  check 
on  appetite,  and  set  limits  to  that  in  which  thou  art  [indulg- 
ing]. Seek  the  power  to  refrain  from  being  angry;  and, 
instead  of  [yielding  to]  outbursts  of  passion,  listen  to  [the 
promptings  of]  kindness. 

For  myself,  what  I  am  henceforth  solicitous  about  is  this 
— [that],  so  far  as  I  have  recollections  [of  the  past],  I  may 
leave  behind  me  a  book  [containing  them],  and  with  a  pru- 
dent mind  finish  the  journey  which  I  am  appointed  [to  take], 
and  depart  without  suffering  out  of  the  sad  afflictions  of  the 
world.  For  my  prayer  is,  that  I  may  receive  [my]  dismissal ; 
and  [by]  what  kind  of  death  concerns  me  not.  But,  if  any 
one  should  be  troubled  or  anxious  [about  this],  I  have  no 
counsel  to  give  him  :  for  yonder,  in  the  dwelling-place  of  all 
the  world,  will  he  find  us  before  him. 

One  of  his  friends  asked  Mara,  son  of  Serapion,  when  in 
bonds  at  his  side :  "  Nay,  by  thy  life,  Mara,  tell  me  what 
[cause]  of  laughter  thou  hast  seen,  that  thou  laughest."  "  I 
am  laughing,"  said  Mara,  "  at  Time  •}  inasmuch  as,  although 
he  has  not  borrowed  any  evil  from  me,  he  is  paying  me  back." 

[Here]  ends  the  letter  of  Mara,  son  of  Serapion. 

•we  used  to  dwell.     For  possibly  it  refers  to  what  he  has  said  before 
about  the  ruined  greatness  of  his  city,   captured  by  the  Romans.     I 
suppose  Mara  was  a  Persian." — Dk.  Payne  SiiiTH. 
1  Or,  "the  time." 


SELECTIONS    EEOM    THE    PROPHETIC 

SCRIPTURES. 


TRANSLATED  BY 


EEV.   WILLIxlM   AVILSON,   M.A. 


115 


SELECTIONS  FROM  THE  PROPHETIC 

SCRIPTURES. 


HOSE  around  Sedrach,  Misak,  and  Abednago 
in  the  furnace  of  fire,  say  as  they  praise  God, 
"  Bless,  ye  heavens,  the  Lord ;  praise  and  exalt 
Him  for  ever ; "  then,  ''  Bless,  ye  angels,  the 
Lord  ;  "  then,  "  Bless  the  Lord,  all  ye  waters  that  are  above 
heaven."  So  the  Scriptures  assign  the  heavens  and  the 
waters  to  the  class  of  pure  powers  [spirits],  as  is  shown  in 
Genesis.  Suitably,  then,  inasmuch  as  "power"  is  used  with 
a  variety  of  meaning,  Daniel  adds,  "  Let  every  power  bless 
the  Lord  ;  "  then,  further,  "  Bless  the  Lord,  sun  and  moon  ;" 
and,  "  Bless  the  Lord,  ye  stars  of  heaven.  Bless  the  Lord, 
all  ye  that  worship  [Him]  ;  praise  and  confess  the  God  of 
gods,  for  His  mercy  is  for  ever."  It  is  written  in  Daniel, 
on  the  occasion  of  the  three  children  praising  in  the  furnace. 

II.  "  Blessed  art  Thou,  who  lookest  on  the  abysses  as  Thou 
sittest  on  the  cherubim,"  says  Daniel,  in  agreement  with 
Enoch,  who  said,  "  And  I  saw  all  sorts  of  matter."  For  the 
abyss,  which  is  in  its  essence  boundless,  is  bounded  by  the 
power  of  God.  These  material  essences  then,  from  which 
the  separate  genera  and  their  species  are  produced,  are  called 
abysses  ;  since  you  would  not  call  the  water  alone  the  abyss, 
although  matter  is  allegorically  called  water,  the  abyss. 

III.  "  In  the  beo-inninfr  God  made  the  heaven  and  the 
earth"  (Gen.  i.  1),  both  terrestrial  and  celestial  things.  And 
that  this  is  true,  the  Lord  said  to  Osee,  "  Go,  take  to  thy- 
self a  wife  of  fornication,  and  children  of  fornication :  be- 
cause the  land  committincj  fornication,  shall  commit  fornica- 
tion,  [departing]  from  the  Lord  "  (Hos.  i.  2).     For  it  is  not 

117 


118  SELECTIONS  FROM 

the  element  [of  earth]  that  he  speaks  of,  but  those  that  dwell 
in  the  element,  those  who  have  an  earthly  disposition. 

IV.  And  that  the  Son  is  the  beginning^  [or  head],  Hosea 
teaches  clearly:  "And  it  shall  be,  that  in  the  place  in  which  it 
was  said  to  them,  Ye  are  not  my  people,  they  shall  be  called 
the  children  of  the  living  God :  and  the  children  of  Judah 
and  the  children  of  Israel  shall  be  gathered  to  the  same  place, 
and  they  shall  place  over  them  one  head,^  and  they  shall  come 
up  out  of  the  land  ;  for  great  is  the  day  of  Jezreel "  (Hos.  i. 
10,  11).  For  whom  one  believes,  him  He  chooses.  But  one 
believes  the  Son,  who  is  the  head  ;  wherefore  also  he  said  in 
addition :  "But  I  will  have  mercy  on  the  sons  of  Judah,  and 
will  save  them  by  the  Lord  their  God  "  (Hos.  i.  7).  Now 
the  Saviour  who  saves  is  the  Son  of  God.  He  is  then  the 
head.^ 

V.  The  Spirit  by  Osee  says,  "I  am  your  Instructor" 
(Hos.  V.  2);  "Blow  ye*  the  trumpet  upon  the  hills  of  the 
Lord ;  sound  upon  the  high  places  "  (Hos.  v.  8).  And  is  not 
baptism  itself,  which  is  the  sign  of  regeneration,  an  escape 
from  matter,  by  the  teaching  of  the  Saviour,  a  great  impetuous 
stream,  ever  rushing  on  and  bearing  us  along  ?  The  Lord 
accordingly,  leading  us  out  of  disorder,  illumines  us  by  bring- 
ing us  into  the  light,  which  is  shadowless  and  is  material 
no  lontrer. 

VI.  This  river  and  sea  of  matter  two  prophets^  cut 
asunder  and  divided  by  the  power  of  the  Lord,  the  matter 
being  bounded,  through  both  divisions  of  the  water.  Famous 
leaders  both,  by  whom  the  signs  were  believed,  they  complied 
with  the  will  of  God,  so  that  the  righteous  man  may  pro- 
ceed from  matter,  having  journeyed  through  it  first.  On 
the  one  of  these  commanders  also  was  imposed  the  name  of 
our  Saviour/' 

VII.  Now,  regeneration  is  by  water  and  spirit,  as  was  all 
creation:    "For  the   Spirit  of  God   moved  on  the  abyss" 

*  "  Blow  ye  the  cornet  in  Gibeah,  and  the  trumpet  in  Ramah." — A.  Y. 
5  Moses  who  divided  the  sea,  and  Joshua  who  divided  the  Jordan. 

*  Joshua — Jesus. 


THE  rnOPIlETIC  SCRIPTURES.  119 

(Gen.  i.  2).  And  for  this  reason  the  Saviour  was  baptized, 
thouo;h  not  Himself  neediiin;  to  be  so,  in  order  that  He 
mirrht  consecrate  the  whole  water  for  those  who  were  beincj 
regenerated.  Thus  it  is  not  the  body  only,  but  the  soul, 
that  we  cleanse.  It  is  accordingly  a  sign  of  the  sanctifying 
of  our  invisible  part,  and  of  the  straining  off  from  the  new 
and  spiritual  creation  of  the  unclean  spirits  that  have  got 
mixed  up  with  the  soul. 

VIH.  "  The  water  above  the  heaven."  Since  baptism  is 
performed  by  water  and  the  Spirit  as  a  protection  against 
the  twofold  fire, — that  which  lays  hold  of  what  is  visible, 
and  that  which  lays  hold  of  what  is  invisible ;  and  of  neces- 
sity, there  being  an  immaterial  element  of  water  and  a 
material,  is  it  a  protection  against  the  twofold  ^  fire.  And 
the  earthly  water  cleanses  the  body  ;  but  the  heavenly  water, 
by  reason  of  its  being  immaterial  and  invisible,  is  an  emblem 
of  the  Holy  Spirit,  who  is  the  purifier  of  what  is  invisible, 
as  the  water  of  the  Spirit,  as  the  other  of  the  body. 

IX.  God,  out  of  goodness,  hath  mingled  fear  with  good- 
ness. For  what  is  beneficial  for  each  one,  that  Pie  also 
supplies,  as  a  physician  to  a  sick  man,  as  a  father  to  liis  in- 
subordinate child :  "  For  he  that  spareth  his  rod  hateth  his 
son  "  (Prov.  xiii.  24).  And  the  Lord  and  His  apostles  walked 
in  the  midst  of  fear  and  labours.  When,  then,  the  aftlic- 
tion  is  sent  in  the  person  of  a  righteous  man,"  it  is  either  from 
the  Lord  rebuking  him  for  a  sin  committed  before,  or  guard- 
ing him  on  account  of  the  future,  or  not  preventing  by  the 
exercise  of  His  power  an  assault  from  without,^ — for  some 
good  end  to  him  and  to  those  near,  for  the  sake  of  example. 

X.  Now  those  that  dwell  in  a  corrupt  body,  like  those  who 
sail  in  an  old  ship,  do  not  lie  on  their  back,  but  are  ever 
praying,  stretching  their  hands  to  God. 

XI.  The  ancients  were  exceedingly  distressed,  unless  they 
had   always  some   suffering  in   the   body.      For  they   were 

^  S/5rXo'»)j — substantive.  2  '^^^y  ^^„  '^rtarcv  au/icuTai  r. 

'  The  sense  is  hazy,  but  about  as  clear  as  tliat  to  be  obtained  by  sub- 
stituting coujecturally  for  Trjootr/SoAjji/  (assault),  z-p6;  /SoXjjj/,  or  ix<,3o>ijjv,  or 


120  SELECTIONS  FROM 

afraid,  that  if  they  received  not  in  this  world  the  punishment 
of  the  sins  which,  in  numbers  through  ignorance,  accom- 
pany those  tliat  are  in  the  flesh,  they  would  in  the  other 
world  suffer  the  penalty  all  at  once.  So  that  they  preferred 
curative  treatment  here.  What  is  to  be  dreaded  is,  then,  not 
external  disease,  but  sins,  for  which  disease  [comes],  and  dis- 
ease of  the  soul,  not  of  the  body :  "  For  all  flesh  is  grass  " 
(Isa.  xl.  6),  and  corporeal  and  external  good  things  are  tem- 
porary ;  "but  the  things  which  are  unseen  are  eternal" 
(2  Cor.  iv.  18). 

XII.  As  to  knowledge,  some  elements  of  it  we  already 
possess ;  others,  by  what  we  do  possess,  we  firmly  hope  [to 
attain].  For  neither  have  we  attained  all,  nor  do  we  lack 
all.  But  we  have  received,  as  it  were,  an  earnest  of  the  eter- 
nal blessings,  and  of  the  ancestral  riches.  The  provisions 
for  the  Lord's  way  are  the  Lord's  beatitudes.  For  He  said : 
"  Seek,"  and  anxiously  seek,  "  the  kingdom  of  God,  and  all 
these  things  shall  be  added  to  you :  for  the  Father  knoweth 
what  things  ye  have  need  of  "  (Matt.  vi.  33,  32).  Thus  He 
limits  not  only  our  occupations,  but  our  cares.  For  He  says  : 
"  Ye  cannot,  by  taking  thought,  add  aught  to  your  stature" 
(Matt.  vi.  27;  Luke  xii.  25).  For  God  knows  well  what  it 
is  good  for  us  to  have  and  what  to  want.  He  wishes,  there- 
fore, that  we,  emptying  ourselves  of  worldly  cares,  should  be 
filled  with  that  which  is  directed  towards  God.  "For  we 
groan,  desiring  to  be  clothed  upon  with  that  which  is  incor- 
ruptible, before  putting  off  corruption."  For  when  faith  is 
shed  abroad,  unbelief  is  nonplussed.  Similarly  also  with 
knowledge  and  righteousness.  We  must  therefore  not  only 
empty  the  soul,  but  fill  it  with  God.  For  no  longer  is  there 
evil  in  it,  since  that  has  been  made  to  cease  ;  nor  yet  is  there 
good,  since  it  has  not  yet  received  good.  But  what  is  neither 
good  nor  evil  is  nothing.  "For  to  the  swept  and  empty 
house  return  "  (Matt.  xii.  44),  if  none  of  the  blessings  of 
salvation  has  been  put  in,  the  unclean  spirit  that  dwelt  there 
before,  taking  with  him  seven  other  unclean  spirits.  Where- 
fore, after  emptying  the  soul  of  what  is  evil,  we  must  fill  with 
the  good  God  that  which  is  His  chosen  dwelling-place.     For 


THE  PROPHETIC  SCRIPTURES.  121 

when  the  empty  rooms  are  filled,  then  follows  the  seal,  that 
the  sanctuary  may  be  guarded  for  God. 

XIII.  "  By  two  and  three  witnesses  every  word  is  estab- 
lished" (Deut.  xvii.  6).  By  Father,  and  Son,  and  Holy  Spirit, 
by  whose  witness  and  help  the  prescribed  commandments 
ought  to  be  kept. 

XIV.  Fasting,  according  to  the  signification  of  the  word, 
is  abstinence  from  food.  Now  food  makes  us  neither  more 
righteous  nor  less.  But  mystically  it  shows  that,  as  life  is 
maintained  in  individuals  by  sustenance,  and  want  of  sus- 
tenance is  the  token  of  death ;  so  also  ought  we  to  fast  from 
worldly  things,  that  we  may  die  to  the  world,  and  after  that, 
by  partaking  of  divine  sustenance,  live  to  God.  Especially 
does  fasting  empty  the  soul  of  matter,  and  make  it,  along 
with  the  body,  pure  and  light  for  the  divine  words.  Worldly 
food  is,  then,  the  former  life  and  sins ;  but  the  divine  food  is 
faith,  hope,  love,  patience,  knowledge,  peace,  temperance. 
For  "blessed  are  they  that  hunger  and  thirst  after"  God's 
"  righteousness ;  for  they  shall  be  filled"  (Matt.  v.  6).  The 
soul,  but  not  the  body,  it  is  which  is  susceptible  of  this  craving. 

XV.  The  Saviour  showed  to  the  believing  apostles  prayer 
to  be  stronger  than  faith  in  the  case  of  a  demoniac,  whom 
they  could  not  cleanse,  when  He  said,  Such  things  are 
accomplished  by  prayer.  He  who  has  believed  has  obtained 
forgiveness  of  sins  from  the  Lord ;  but  he  who  has  attained 
knowledge,  inasmuch  as  he  no  longer  sins,  obtains  from  him- 
self the  foriiiveness  of  the  rest. 

XVI.  For  as  cures,  and  prophecies,  and  signs  are  per- 
formed by  the  agency  of  men,  God  working  in  them,  so  also 
is  Gnostic  teaching.  For  God  shows  His  power  through  men. 
And  the  prophecy  rightly  says,  "  I  will  send  to  them  a  man 
who  will  save  them"  (Isa.  xix.  20).  Accordingly  He  sends 
forth  at  one  time  prophets,  at  another  apostles,  to  be  saviours 
of  men.  Thus  God  does  good  by  the  agency  of  men.  For 
it  is  not  that  God  can  do  some  things,  and  cannot  do  others : 
He  is  never  powerless  in  anything.  No  more  are  some  things 
done  with,  and  some  things  against  His  will;  and  some  things 
by  Him,  and  some  things  by  another.    But  He  even  brought 


122  SELECTIONS  FROM 

us  into  being  by  means  of  men,  and  trained  us  by  means  of 
men. 

XVII.  God  made  us,  having  previously  no  existence. 
For  if  we  had  a  previous  existence,  we  must  have  known 
where  we  were,  and  how  and  why  we  came  hither.  But  if 
we  had  no  pre-existence,  then  God  is  the  sole  author  of  our 
creation.  As,  then,  He  made  us  who  had  no  existence, 
so  also,  now  that  we  are  made.  He  saves  us  by  His  own 
grace,  if  we  show  ourselves  worthy  and  susceptible ;  if  not, 
He^  will  let  us  pass  to  our  proper  end.  For  He  is  Lord  both 
of  the  living  and  the  dead. 

XVIII.  But  see  the  power  of  God,  not  only  in  the  case 
of  men,  in  bringing  to  existence  out  of  non-existence,  and 
making  them  when  brought  into  being  grow  up  according 
to  the  progress  of  the  time  of  life,  but  also  in  saving  those 
who  believe,  in  a  way  suitable  to  each  individual.  And  now 
He  changes  both  hours,  and  times,  and  fruits,  and  elements. 
For  this  is  the  one  God,  who  has  measured  both  the  beginning 
and  the  end  of  events  suitably  to  each  one. 

XIX.  Advancing  from  faith  and  fear  to  knowledge,  man 
knows  how  to  say  Lord,  Lord ;  but  not  as  His  slave,  he  has 
learned  to  say.  Our  Father.  Having  set  free  the  spirit  of 
bondage,  which  produces  fear,  and  advanced  by  love  to  ado}> 
tion,  he  now  reverences  from  love  Him  whom  he  feared 
before.  For  he  no  longer  abstains  from  what  he  ought  to 
abstain  from  out  of  fear,  but  out  of  love  clings  to  the  com- 
mandments. "  The  Spirit  itself,"  it  is  said,  "  beareth  witness 
when  we  cry,  Abba,  Father"  (Rom.  viii.  15;  Gal.  iv.  6). 

XX.  Now  the  Lord  with  His  precious  blood  redeems  us, 
freeing  us  from  our  old  bitter  masters,  that  is,  our  sins,  on 
account  of  which  the  spiritual  [powers]  of  wickedness  ruled 
over  us.  Accordingly  He  leads  us  into  the  liberty  of  the 
Father, — sons  that  are  co-heirs  and  friends.  "  For,"  says  the 
Lord,  "  they  that  do  the  will  of  my  Father  are  my  brethren 

^  The  reading  is,  h  fiii  xup-ziait  Trpo;  t6  oUshv  ts'Xo;  ;  and  the  Latia 
translator  renders,  "  si  non  segnes  simus  ad  finem  propriurn."  It  seems 
better,  with  Sylburgius,  to  take  it  (/.ii  as  equivalent  to  ii  oe  ^-/j,  and  to 
put  a  comma  after  y.'/i,  so  as  to  render  as  above. 


THE  rnOFIIETIC  SCRIPTURES.  123 

and  fellow-heirs"  (Matt.  xii.  50).  *'  Call  no  man,  therefore, 
father  to  yourselves  on  earth"  (Matt,  xxiii.  9).  For  it  is 
masters  that  arc  on  earth.  But  in  heaven  is  the  Father,  of 
whom  is  the  whole  family,  both  in  heaven  and  on  earth  (Eph. 
iii.  15).  For  love  rules  willing  [hearts],  but  fear  the  un- 
willing. One  kind  of  fear  is  base ;  but  the  other,  leading  us 
as  a  pedagogue  to  good,  brings  us  to  Christ,  and  is  saving. 

XXI.  Now  if  one  has  a  conception  of  God,  it  by  no 
means  corresponds  with  His  worthiness.  For  what  can  the 
worthiness  of  God  be?  But  let  him,  as  far  as  is  possible, 
conceive  of  a  great  and  incomprehensible  and  most  beautiful 
light;  inaccessible,  comprehending  all  good  power,  all  comely 
virtue ;  caring  for  all,  compassionate,  passionless,  good ; 
knowing  all  things,  foreknowing  all  things,  pure,  sweet, 
shining,  stainless. 

XXII.  Since  the  movement  of  the  soul  is  self-originated, 
the  grace  of  God  demands  from  it  what  the  soul  possesses, 
willingness  as  its  contribution  to  salvation.  For  the  soul 
wishes  to  be  its  own  good ;  which  the  Lord,  [however],  gives 
it.  For  it  is  not  devoid  of  sensation  so  as  to  be  carried  along 
like  a  body.  Having  is  the  result  of  taking,  and  taking  of 
willing  and  desiring ;  and  keeping  hold  of  what  one  has  re- 
ceived, of  the  exercise  of  care  and  of  ability.  Wherefore  God 
has  endowed  the  soul  with  free  choice,  that  He  may  show  it 
its  duty,  and  that  it  choosing,  may  receive  and  retain. 

XXIII.  As  through  the  body  the  Lord  spake  and  healed, 
so  also  formerly  by  the  prophets,  and  now  by  the  apostles 
and  teachers.  For  the  church  is  the  minister  of  the  Lord's 
power.  Thence  He  then  assumed  humanity,^  that  by  it 
He  might  minister  to  the  Father's  will.  And  at  all  times, 
the  God  who  loves  humanity "  invests  Himself  with  man  for 
the  salvation  of  men, — in  former  times  with  the  propliets, 
and  now  with  the  church.  For  it  is  fitting;  that  like  should 
minister  to  like,  in  order  to  a  like  salvation. 

XXIV.  For  we  were  of  the  earth.  .  .  .  Cocsar  is  the 
prince,  for  the  time  being,  whose  earthly  image  is  the  old 
man,  to  which  he  has  returned.     To  him,  then,  we  are  to 


124  SELECTIONS  FROM 

render  the  earthly  things,  which  we  bore  in  the  image  of  the 
earthly,  and  the  things  of  God  to  God.  For  each  one  of  the 
passions  is  on  us  as  a  letter,  and  stamp,  and  sign.  Now  the 
Lord  marks  us  with  another  stamp,  and  with  other  names  and 
letters,  faith  instead  of  unbelief,  and  so  forth.  Thus  we  are 
translated  from  what  is  material  to  what  is  spiritual,  "  having 
borne  the  image  of  the  heavenly"  (1  Cor.  xv.  49). 

XXV.  John  says :  "  I  indeed  baptize  you  with  water,  but 
there  cometli  after  me  He  that  baptizeth  with  the  Spirit 
and  fire"  (Matt.  iii.  11).  But  He  baptized  no  one  with  fire. 
But  some,  as  Heraclius  says,  marked  with  fire  the  ears  of 
those  who  were  sealed  ;  understanding  so  the  apostolic  saying, 
"  For  His  fan  is  in  His  hand,  to  purge  His  floor :  and  He 
will  gather  the  wheat  into  the  garner ;  but  the  chaff  He  will 
burn  with  fire  unquenchable."  ^  There  is  joined,  then,  the 
expression  "by  fire"  to  that  "  by  the  Spirit;"  since  Pie  sepa- 
rates the  wheat  from  the  chaff,  that  is,  from  the  material 
husk,  by  the  Spirit ;  and  the  chaff  is  separated,  being  fanned 
by  the  wind  :'  so  also  the  Spirit  possesses  a  power  of  separating 
material  forces.  Since,  then,  some  things  are  produced  from 
what  is  unproduced  and  indestructible, — that  is,  the  germs  of 
life, — the  wheat  also  is  stored,  and  the  material  part,  as  long 
as  it  is  conjoined  with  the  superior  part,  remains;  when 
separated  from  it,  it  is  destroyed ;  for  it  had  its  existence  in 
another  thing.  This  separating  element,  then,  is  the  Spirit, 
and  the  destroying  element  is  the  fire :  and  material  fire  is 
to  be  understood.  But  since  that  which  is  saved  is  like  wheat, 
and  that  which  grows  in  the  soul  like  chaff,  and  the  one  is 
incorporeal,  and  that  which  is  separated  is  material ;  to  the 
incorporeal  He  opposes  spirit,  which  is  rarefied  and  pure — 
almost  more  so  than  mind ;  and  to  the  material  [He  opposes] 
fire,  not  as  being  evil  or  bad,  but  as  strong  and  capable  of 
cleansing  away  evil.  For  fire  is  conceived  as  a  good  force  and 
powerful,  destructive  of  what  is  baser,  and  conservative  of 
what  is  better.  Wherefore  this  fire  is  by  the  prophets  called 
wise. 

XXVI.  Thus  also,  then,  when   God  is  called  "  a  con- 
^  Matt.  iii.  12.  ^  Or  spirit — TrviviA.u.Tog. 


THE  PROPHETIC  SCPJPTUPES.  125 

suminfT  fire,"  it  is  because  a  name  and  sii^n,  not  of  wicked- 
ness, but  of  power,  is  to  be  selected.  For  as  fire  is  the  most 
potent  of  tlie  elements,  and  masters  all  things ;  so  also  God 
is  all-powerful  and  almighty,  who  is  able  to  hold,  to  create, 
to  make,  to  nourish,  to  make  grow,  to  save,  having  power  of 
body  and  soul.  As,  then,  fire  is  superior  to  the  elements,  so 
is  the  Almighty  Ruler  to  gods,  and  powers,  and  principalities. 
The  power  of  fire  is  twofold  :  one  ])Ower  conduces  to  the 
production  and  maturing  of  fruits  and  of  animals,  of  which 
the  sun  is  the  image  ;  and  the  other  to  consumption  and 
destruction,  as  terrestrial  fire.  When,  then,  God  is  called  a 
consuming  fire,  [He  is  called]  a  mighty  and  resistless  power, 
to  which  nothing  is  impossible,  but  which  is  able  to  destroy. 

Respecting  such  a  power,  also,  the  Saviour  says,  "  I  came 
to  send  fire  upon  the  earth"  (Luke  xii.  49),  indicating  a 
power  to  purify  what  is  holy,  but  destructive,  as  they  say,  of 
what  is  material ;  and,  as  we  should  say,  disciplinary.  Now 
fear  pertains  to  fire,  and  diffusion  to  light. 

XXVII.  Now  the  more  ancient  men  ^  did  not  write,  as 
they  neithei*  wished  to  encroach  on  the  time  devoted  to  atten- 
tion bestowed  on  what  they  handed  down,  in  the  way  of 
teaching,  by  the  additional  attention  bestowed  on  writing, 
nor  spent  the  time  for  considering  what  was  to  be  said  on 
writing.  And,  perhaps  convinced  that  the  function  of  com- 
position and  the  department  of  teaching  did  not  belong  to  the 
same  cast  of  mind,  they  gave  way  to  those  who  had  a  natural 
turn  for  it.  For  in  the  case  of  a  speaker,  the  stream  of  speech 
flows  unchecked  and  impetuous,  and  you  may  catch  it  up 
hastily.  But  that  which  is  always  tested  by  readers,  meeting 
with  strict"  examination,  is  thought  worthy  of  the  utmost 
pains,  and  is,  so  to  speak,  the  written  confirmation  of  [oral] 
instruction,  and  of  the  voice  so  wafted  along  to  posterity  by 
written  composition.  For  that  which  was  committed  in  trust 
to  the  elders,  speaking  in  writing,  uses  the  writers  help  to 
hand  itself  down  to  those  who  are  to  read  it.     As,  then,  the 

^  Trpia/itiTipoi. 

2  It  seems  better,  with  Sylb.,  to  read  daptfiol;,  qualifying  -iirikoiu;  (as 
above),  than  uKpifiu;,  adv.  qualifying  fictaxvi^of^n/ov^  tested. 


126  SELECTIONS  FROM 

magnet,  repelling  other  matter,  attracts  iron  alone  by  reason  of 
affinity  ;  so  also  booksj  though  many  read  them,  attract  those 
alone  who  are  capable  of  comprehending  them.  For  the  word 
of  truth  is  to  some  "  foolishness"  (1  Cor.  i.  18),  and  to  others 
a  "stumbling-block"  {ib,);  but  to  a  few  "  wisdom"  {ib.).  So 
also  is  the  power  of  God  found  to  be.  But  far  from  the 
Gnostic  be  envy.  For  it  is  for  this  reason  also  that  he  asks 
whether  it  be  worse  to  give  to  the  unworthy,  or  not  commit 
to  the  worthy ;  and  runs  the  risk,  from  his  abundant  love  of 
communicating,  not  only  to  every  one  who  is  qualified,  but 
sometimes  also  to  one  unworthy,  who  asks  importunately ; 
not  on  account  of  his  entreaty  (for  he  loves  not  glory),  but 
on  account  of  the  persistency  of  the  petitioner  who  bends  his 
mind  towards  faith  with  copious  entreaty. 

XXVIII.  There  are  those  calling  themselves  Gnostics  who 
are  envious  of  those  in  their  own  house  more  than  strangers. 
And,  as  the  sea  is  open  to  all,  but  one  swums,  another  sails,  and 
a  third  catches  fish ;  and  as  the  land  is  common,  but  one  walks, 
another  ploughs,  another  hunts, — somebody  else  searches  the 
mines,  and  another  builds  a  house  :  so  also,  when  the  Scrip- 
ture is  read,  one  is  helped  to  faith,  another  to  morality,  and 
a  third  is  freed  from  superstition  by  the  knowledge  of  things. 
The  athlete,  who  knows  the  Olympic  stadium,  strips  for  train- 
ing, contends,  and  becomes  victor,  tripping  up  his  antagonists 
who  contend  against  his  scientific  method,  and  fighting  out 
the  contest.  For  scientific  knowledge  {^v(t)(Ti<i)  is  necessary 
both  for  the  training  of  the  soul  and  for  gravity  of  conduct ; 
making  the  faithful  more  active  and  keen  observers  of  things. 
For  as  there  is  no  believing  without  elementary  instruction, 
so  neither  is  there  comprehension  without  science  {'yvcoa-a). 

XXIX.  For  what  is  useful  and  necessary  to  salvation, 
such  as  [the  knowledge  of]  the  Father,  and  Son,  and  Holy 
Spirit,  and  also  of  our  own  soul,  are  wholly  requisite ;  and 
it  is  at  once  beneficial  and  necessary  to  attain  to  the  scien- 
tific account  of  them.  And  to  those  who  have  assumed 
the  lead  in  doing  good,  much  experience  is  advantageous ;  so 
that  none  of  the  things  which  appear  to  be  known  necessarily 
and  eruditely  by  others  may  escape  their  notice.    The  exposi- 


THE  PROPHETIC  SCRIPTURES.  127 

tlon,  too,  of  heterodox  teaching  affords  another  exercise  of 
tlie  inquiring  soul,  and  keeps  the  disciple  from  being  seduced 
from  the  truth,  by  his  having  already  had  practice  before- 
hand in  sounding  all  round  on  warlike  instruments  of  music. 

XXX.  The  life  of  the  Gnostic  rule,  (as  they  say  that 
Crete  was  barren  of  deadly  animals,)  is  pure  from  every  evil 
deed,  and  thought,  and  word ;  not  only  hating  no  one,  but 
beyond  envy  and  hatred,  and  all  evil-speaking  and  slander. 

XXXI.  In  length  of  days,  it  is  not  on  account  of  his 
having  lived  long  that  the  man  is  to  be  regarded  happy,  to 
whose  lot  it  has  also  fallen,  through  his  having  lived,  to  be 
worthy  of  living  for  ever.  He  has  pained  no  one,  except  in 
instructing  by  the  word  the  wounded  in  heart,  as  it  were  by 
a  salutary  honey,  which  is  at  once  sweet  and  pungent.  So 
that,  above  all,  the  Gnostic  preserves  the  decorous  along  with 
that  which  is  in  accordance  with  reason.  For  passion  being 
cut  away  and  stript  off  from  the  whole  soul,  he  henceforth 
consorts  and  lives  with  what  is  noblest,  which  has  now  become 
pure,  and  emancipated  to  adoption. 

XXXII.  Pythagoras  thought  that  he  who  gave  things 
their  names,  ought  to  be  regarded  not  only  the  most  intelli- 
gent, but  the  oldest  of  the  wise  men.  We  must,  then,  search 
the  Scriptures  accurately,  since  they  are  admitted  to  be 
expressed  in  parables,  and  from  the  names  hunt  out  the 
thoughts  which  the  Holy  Spirit,  propounding  respecting 
things,  teaches  by  imprinting  His  mind,  so  to  speak,  on  the 
e:ipressions ;  that  the  names  used  with  various  meanings, 
being  made  the  subject  of  accurate  investigation,  may  be 
explained,  and  that  that  which  is  hidden  under  many  integu- 
ments may,  being  handled  and  learned,  come  to  light  and 
gleam  forth.  For  so  also  lead  turns  white  as  you  rub  it; 
white  lead  being  produced  from  black.  So  also  scientific 
knowledge  (gnosis),  shedding  its  light  and  brightness  on 
things,  shows  itself  to  be  in  truth  the  divine  wisdom,  the 
pure  light,  which  illumines  the  men  whose  eyeball  is  clear, 
unto  the  sure  vision  and  comprehension  of  truth. 

XXXIII.  Lighting,  then,  our  torch  at  the  source  of  that 
light,  by  the  passionate  desire  which  has  it  for  its  object,  and 


128  SELECTIONS  FROM 

striving  as  much  as  possible  to  be  assimilated  to  it,  we  become 
men  ((^wre?)  full  of  light  (^turo?),  Israelites  indeed.  For 
He  called  those  friends  and  brethren  who  by  desire  and  pur- 
suit aimed  after  likeness  to  the  Divinity. 

XXXIV.  Pure  places  and  meadows  liave  received  voices 
and  visions  of  holy  phantasms.  But  every  man  who  has 
been  perfectly  purified,  shall  be  thought  worthy  of  divine 
teaching  and  of  power. 

XXXV.  Now  I  know  that  the  mysteries  of  science 
(gnosis)  are  a  laughing-stock  to  many,  especially  when  not 
patched  up  with  sophistical  figurative  language.  And  the 
few  are  at  first  startled  at  them ;  as  when  light  is  suddenly 
brought  into  a  convivial  party  in  the  dark.  Subsequently,  on 
getting  used  and  accustomed,  and  trained  to  reasoning,  as  if 
gladdened  and  exulting  for  delight,  they  [praise]  the  Lord. . .  . 
For  as  pleasure  has  for  its  essence  release  from  pain ;  so  also 
has  knowledge  the  removal  of  ii]!;norance.  For  as  those  that 
are  most  asleep  think  they  are  most  awake,  being  under  the 
power  of  dream-visions  very  vivid  and  fixed ;  so  those  that 
are  most  ignorant  think  that  they  know  most.  But  blessed 
are  they  who  rouse  themselves  from  this  sleep  and  derange- 
ment, and  raise  their  eyes  to  the  light  and  the  truth. 

XXXVI.  It  is,  therefore,  equally  requisite  for  him  who 
wishes  to  have  a  pupil  who  is  docile,  and  has  blended  faith 
with  aspiration,  to  exercise  himself  and  constantly  to  study  by 
himself,  investigating  the  truth  of  his  speculations;  and  when 
he  thinks  himself  right,  to  descend  to  questions  regarding 
things  contiguous.  For  the  young  birds  make  attempts  to 
flv  in  the  nest,  exercising  their  wings. 

XXXVII.  For  Gnostic  virtue  everywhere  makes  man 
good,  and  meek,  and  harmless,^  and  painless,  and  blessed, 
and  ready  to  associate  in  the  best  way  with  all  that  is  divine, 
in  the  best  way  with  men,  at  once  a  contemplative  and  active 
divine  image,  and  turns  him  into  a  lover  of  what  is  good  by 
love.     For  what  is  good  (to  koXov),  as  there  it  is  contem- 

^  For  a,3A«/3£f  in  the  text,  we  must,  translating  thus,  read  e6/3A«/3^. 
If  we  translate,  as  we  may,  "  Gnostic  virtue  is  a  thing  everywhere  good, 
and  meek,"  etc.,  no  change  is  required  in  the  reading. 


THE  PROPHETIC  SCRIPTURES.  129 

plated  and  comprehended  by  wisdom,  is  here  by  self-control 
and  righteousness  carried  into  effect  through  faith  :  practising 
in  the  flesh  an  angelic  ministry ;  hallowing  the  soul  in  the 
body,  as  in  a  place  clear  and  stainless. 

XXXVIII.  Against  Tatian,  who  says  that  the  words, 
*'  Let  there  be  light"  (Gen.  i.  3),  are  supplicatory.  If,  then, 
He  is  supplicating  the  supreme  God,  how  does  He  say,  "  I 
am  God,  and  beside  me  there  is  none  else"  (Isa.  xliv.  6)  ?  We 
have  said  that  there  are  punishments  for  blasphemies,  for 
nonsense,  for  outrageous  expressions ;  which  are  punished 
and  chastised  by  reason. 

XXXIX.  And  he  said,  too,  that  on  account  of  their  hair 
and  finery,  women  are  punished  by  the  Powder  that  is  set 
over  these  matters ;  which  also  gave  to  Samson  strength  in 
his  hair ;  which  punishes  the  women  who  allure  to  fornica- 
tion throuo;h  the  adornment  of  their  hair. 

XL.  As  by  the  effluence  of  good,  people  are  made  good, 
in  like  manner  are  they  made  bad.  Good  is  the  judgment 
of  God,  and  the  discrimination  of  the  believing  from  the 
unbelieving,  and  the  judgment  beforehand,  so  as  not  to  fall 
into  greater  judgment — this  judgment  being  correction. 

XLI.  Scripture  says  that  infants  which  are  exposed  are 
delivered  to  a  guardian  angel,  and  that  by  him  they  are 
trained  and  reared.  "  And  they  shall  be,"  it  says,  "  as  the 
faithful  in  this  world  of  a  hundred  years  of  age."  AVherefore 
also  Peter,  in  the  Eevelation,  says :  "  And  a  flash  of  fire, 
leaping  from  those  infants,  and  striking  the  eyes  of  the 
women."  For  the  just  shines  forth  as  a  spark  in  a  reed, 
and  will  judge  the  nations  (Wisd.  iii.  7). 

XLII.  "  AVith  the  holy  Thou  wilt  be  holy"  (Ps.  xviii.  2G). 
"  According  to  thy  praise  is  thy  name  glorified ;"  God  being 
glorified  through  our  knowledge,  and  through  the  inheritance. 
Thus  also  it  is  said,  "  The  Lord  liveth,"  and  "  The  Lord  hath 
risen"  (Luke  xxiv.  34). 

XLIII.  "  A  people  whom  I  knew  not  hath  served  me'' 
(Ps.  xviii.  43) ; — by  covenant  I  knew  them  not,  alien  sons, 
who  desired  what  pertained  to  another. 

XLIV.  "  Magnifying  the  salvations  of  His  king "  (Ps. 

I 


130  SELECTIONS  FROM 

xviii.  50).  All  the  faithful  are  called  kings,  brought  to 
royalty  through  inheritance. 

XLV.  Long-suffering  is  sweetness  above  honey ;  not  be- 
cause it  is  long-suffering,  but  in  consequence  of  the  fruit  of 
long-suffering.  Since,  then,  the  man  of  self-control  is  devoid 
of  passion,  inasmuch  as  he  restrains  the  passions,  not  without 
toil ;  but  when  habit  is  formed,  he  is  no  longer  a  man  of 
self-control,  the  man  having  come  under  the  influence  of 
one  habit  and  of  the  Holy  Spirit. 

XL VI.  The  passions  that  are  in  the  soul  are  called  spirits, 
— not  spirits  of  power,  since  in  that  case  the  man  under  the 
influence  of  passion  would  be  a  legion  of  demons ;  but  [they 
are  so  called]  in  consequence  of  the  impulse  they  communi- 
cate. For  the  soul  itself,  through  modifications,  taking  on 
this  and  that  other  sort  of  qualities  of  wickedness,  is  said  to 
receive  spirits. 

XLVIL  The  Word  does  not  bid  us  renounce  property  ;^ 
but  to  manage  property  without  inordinate  affection  ;  and  on 
anything  happening,  not  to  be  vexed  or  grieved  ;  and  not  to 
desire  to  acquire.  Divine  Providence  bids  keep  away  from 
possession  accompanied  with  passion,  and  from  all  inordinate 
affection,  and  [from  this]  turns  back  those  still  remaining^ 
in  the  flesh. 

XL VIII.  For  instance,  Peter  says  in  the  Apocalypse, 
that  abortive  infants  shall  share  the  better  fate;^  that  these 
are  committed  to  a  guardian  angel,  so  that,  on  receiving 
knowledge,  they  may  obtain  the  better  abode,  having  had  the 
same  experiences  which  they  would  have  had  had  they  been 
in  the  body.  But  the  others  shall  obtain  salvation  merely,  as 
being  injured  and  pitied,  and  remain  without  punishment, 
receiving  this  reward. 

XLIX.  The  milk  of  women,  flowing  from  the  breasts 
and  thickening,  says  Peter  in  the  Apocalypse,  will  produce 

^  KT'/jtrsoi^^  instead  of  KTiaio);,  as  in  the  text,  and  KTviatv  for  x.rlai»  in 
the  next  clause. 

2  'AvccaTpe(pu  Ixi  fiovov;  Toiig  sv  crupxi.  For  which,  as  slightly  preferable, 
Sylburg.  proposes  en  fiii/ovTx;  iv  aupx.!^  as  above. 

2  Adopting  the  reading  f^olpxs,  instead  of  that  in  the  text,  -Tnlpot;. 


THE  PROPHETIC  SCPJPTURES.  131 

minute  beasts,  that  prey  on  flesh,  and  running  back  into 
them  will  consume  them :  teaching  that  punisliments  arise 
for  sins.  He  says  that  they  are  produced  from  sins ;  as  it 
was  for  their  sins  that  the  people  were  sold.  And  for  their 
want  of  faith  in  Christ,  as  the  apostle  says,  they  were  bitten 
by  serpents. 

L.  An  ancient  said  that  the  embryo  is  a  living  thing ;  for 
that  the  soul  entering  into  the  womb  after  it  has  been  by 
cleansing  prepared  for  conception,  and  introduced  by  one  of 
the  angels  who  preside  over  generation,  and  who  knows  the 
time  for  conception,  moves  the  woman  to  intercourse  ;  and 
that,  on  the  seed  being  deposited,  the  spirit,  which  is  in  the 
seed,  is,  so  to  speak,  appropriated,  and  is  thus  assumed  into 
conjunction  in  the  process  of  formation.  He  cited  as  a  proof 
to  all,  how,  when  the  angels  give  glad  tidings  to  the  barren, 
they  introduce  souls  before  conception.  And  in  the  Gospel 
"  the  babe  leapt"  (Luke  i.  43)  as  a  living  thing.  And  the 
barren  are  barren  for  this  reason,  that  the  soul,  which  unites 
for  the  deposit  of  the  seed,  is  not  introduced  so  as  to  secure 
conception  and  generation. 

LI.  "  The  heavens  declare  the  glory  of  God"  (Ps.  xix.  1). 
The  heavens  are  taken  in  various  meanings,  both  those  defined 
by  space  and  revolution,  and  those  by  covenant, — the  imme- 
diate operation  of  the  first-created  angels.  For  the  covenants 
caused  a  more  especial  appearance  of  angels, — that^  in  the  case 
of  Adam,  that  in  the  case  of  Noah,  that  in  the  case  of  Abra- 
ham, that  in  the  case  of  Closes.  For,  moved  by  the  Lord,  the 
first-created  angels  exercised  their  influence  on  the  angels 
attached  to  the  prophets,  considering  the  covenants  the  glory 
of  God.  Furthermore,  the  things  done  on  earth  by  anf^els 
were  done  by  the  first-created  angels  to  the  glory  of  God. 

LIT.  It  is  the  Lord  that  is  principally  denominated  the 
Heavens,  and  then  the  First-created  ;  and  after  these  also  the 
holy  men  before  the  Law,  as  the  patriarchs,  and  Moses,  and 
the  prophets ;  then  also  the  apostles.  "  And  the  firmament 
showeth  His  handiwork."  He  applies  the  term  "  firmament" 
(crTepi(jjfj,a)  to  God,  the  passionless  and  immoveable,  as  also 

'  i.e.  the  covenant. 


132  SELECTIONS  FROM 

elsewhere  the  same  David  says,  "  I  will  love  Thee,  O  Lord, 
my  strength  (aTepicofxa)  and  my  refuge"  (Ps.  xviii.  1). 
Accordingly,  the  firmament  itself  shows  forth  the  work  of 
His  hands, — that  is,  shows  and  manifests  the  work  of  His 
ancrels.  For  He  shows  forth  and  manifests  those  whom  He 
hath  made. 

Lin.  "  Day  unto  day  uttereth  speech."  As  the  heavens 
have  various  meanings,  so  also  has  day.  Now  speech  is  the 
Lord ;  and  He  is  also  frequently  called  day.  "  And  night 
unto  night  showeth  forth  knowledge."  The  devil  knew  that 
the  Lord  was  to  come.  But  he  did  not  believe  that  He  was 
God ;  wherefore  also  he  tempted  Him,  in  order  to  know  if  He 
were  powerful.  It  is  said,  "  he  left^  Him,  and  departed  from 
Him  for  a  season  ; "  that  is,  he  postponed  the  discovery  till 
the  resurrection.  For  he  knew  that  He  who  was  to  rise  was 
the  Lord.  Likewise  also  the  demons ;  since  also  they  suspected 
that  Solomon  was  the  Lord,  and  they  knew  that  he  was  not 
so,  on  his  sinning.  "  Night  to  night."  All  the  demons  knew 
that  He  who  rose  after  the  passion  was  the  Lord.  And 
already  Enoch  had  said,  that  the  angels  who  transgressed 
taught  men  astronomy  and  divination,  and  the  rest  of  the  arts. 

LIV.  "  There  are  no  speeches  or  words  whose  voices  are 
not  heard,"  neither  of  days  nor  nights.  "  Their  sound  is  gone 
forth  unto  all  the  earth."  He  has  transferred  the  discourse 
to  the  saints  alone,  whom  he  calls  both  heavens  and  days. 

LV.  The  stars,  spiritual  bodies,  that  have  communications 
with  the  angels  set  over  them,  and  are  governed  by  them, 
are  not  the  cause  of  the  production  of  things,  but  are  signs 
of  what  is  taking  place,  and  will  take  place,  and  have  taken 
place  in  the  case  of  atmospheric  changes,  of  fruitfulness  and 
barrenness,  of  pestilence  and  fevers,  and  in  the  case  of  men. 
The  stars  do  not  in  the  least  degree  exert  influences,  but 
indicate  what  is,  and  will  be,  and  has  been. 

LVI.  "And  in  the  sun  hath  He  set  His  tabernacle."  There 
is  a  transposition  here.  For  it  is  of  the  second  coming  that 
the  discourse  is.     So,  then,  we  must  read  what  is  transposed 

^  For  ix'j,  which  is  the  reading  of  the  text,  Sylburgius'  suggestion  of 
ii'ei  or  ii'ecsi  has  been  adopted. 


THE  rnOPJlETIC  SCPJPTURES.  133 

in  its  due  sequence :  ''  And  he,  as  a  bridegroom  issuing  from 
liis  chamber,  will  rejoice  as  a  giant  to  run  his  way.  From 
heaven's  end  is  his  going  forth  ;  and  there  is  no  one  who 
shall  hide  himself  from  his  heat;"  and  then,  "He  hath  set 
His  tabernacle  in  the  sun." 

Some  say  that  He  deposited  the  Lord's  body  in  the  sun, 
as  Hermogenes.  And  "  His  tabernacle,"  some  say,  is  His 
body,  others  the  church  of  the  faithful. 

Our  Pantsenus  used  to  say,  that  prophecy  utters  its  expres- 
sions indefinitely  for  the  most  part,  and  uses  the  present  for 
the  future,  and  again  the  present  for  the  past.  Which  is 
also  seen  here.^  For  "  He  hath  set"  is  put  both  for  the  past 
and  the  future.  For  the  future,  because,  on  the  comple- 
tion of  this  period,  which  is  to  run  according  to  its  present^ 
constitution,  the  Lord  will  come  to  restore  the  righteous, 
the  faithful,  in  whom  He  rests,  as  in  a  tent,  to  one  and  the 
same  unity;  for  all  are  one  body,  of  the  same  race,  and  have 
chosen  the  same  faith  and  righteousness.  But  some  as  head, 
somo  as  eyes,  some  as  ears,  some  as  hands,  some  as  breasts, 
some  as  feet,  shall  be  set,  resplendent,  in  the  sun.  "  Shine 
forth  as  the  sun"  (Matt.  xiii.  43),  or  in  the  sun ;  since  an 
angel  high  in  command  is  in  the  sun.  For  he  is  appointed 
ferrule  over  days;  as  the  moon  is  for  ruling  over  night.^ 
Now  angels  are  called  days.  Along  with  the  angels  in^  the 
sun,  it  is  said,  they  shall  have  assigned  to  them  one  abode,  to 
be  for  some  time  and  in  some  respects  the  sun,  as  it  were  the 
head  of  the  body  which  is  one.  And,  besides,  they  also  are 
the  rulers  of  the  days,  as  that  angel  in  the  sun,  for  the 
greater  pui'pose  for  Avhich  he  before  them^  migrated  to  the 
same  place.  And  again  destined  to  ascend  progressively, 
they  reach  the  first  abode,  in  accordance  with  the  past 
"  He  hath  set :"  so  that  the  first-created  anirels  shall  no 

o 

^  Or  rather,  as  Sylb.  points  out,  this  is  a  case  of  the  past  used  for  the 
present,  etc. 

^  Trapovaicc!/,  KXTuarecadv,  the  reading  of  the  text,  is,  as  Sylburg.  remarks, 
plainly  corrupt ;  -T^upoliaxv,  as  above,  is  the  most  obvious  correction. 

2  Gen.  i.  18.  ■*  fiid'  here  clearly  should  be  Kuff  or  £$'. 

^  If  we  may  venture  to  change  u-jtou  into  ui^-uv. 


134  SELECTIONS  FROM 

longer,  according  to  proviclence,  exercise  a  definite  ministry, 
but  may  be  in  repose,  and  devoted  to  the  contemplation  of 
God  alone  ;  while  those  next  to  them  shall  be  promoted  to 
the  post  which  they  have  left;  and  so  those  beneath  them 
similarly. 

LVII.  There  are  then,  according  to  the  apostle,  those  on 
the  summit,^  the  first-created.  And  they  are  thrones,  although 
Powers,  being  the  first-created,  inasmuch  as  God  rests  in 
them,  as  also  in  those  who  believe.  For  each  one,  according 
to  his  own  stage  of  advancement,  possesses  the  knowledge  of 
God  in  a  way  special  to  himself ;  and  in  this  knowledge  God 
reposes,  those  who  possess  knowledge  being  made  immortal  by 
knowledge.  And  is  not  "  He  set  Plis  tabernacle  in  the  sun  " 
to  be  understood  thus?  God  "  set  in  the  sun,"  that  is,  in  the 
God  who  is  beside  Him,  as  in  the  Gospel,  Eli,  Eli,"  instead 
of  my  God,  my  God.  And  what  is  "  above  all  rule,  and 
authority,  and  power,  and  every  name  that  is  named,"  are 
those  from  among  men  that  are  made  perfect  as  angels  and 
archangels,  [so  as  to  rise]  to  the  nature  of  the  angels  first- 
created.  For  those  who  are  changed  from  men  to  angels  are 
instructed  for  a  thousand  years  by  the  angels  after  they  are 
brought  to  perfection.  Then  those  who  have  taught  are 
translated  to  archangelic  authority ;  and  those  who  have 
learned  instruct  those  again  who  from  men  are  changed  to 
angels.  Thus  afterwards,  in  the  prescribed  periods,  they 
are  brought  to  the  proper  angelic  state  of  the  body. 

LVIII.  "  The  law  of  God  is  perfect,  converting  souls  " 
(Ps.  xix.  8).  The  Saviour  Himself  is  called  Law  and  Word, 
as  Peter  in  ''  the  Preaching,"  and  the  prophet :  "  Out  of 
Zion  shall  go  forth  the  Law,  and  the  Word  of  the  Lord 
from  Jerusalem"  (Isa.  ii.  3). 

LIX.    "  The    testimony   of   the    Lord   is   sure,    making 

^  'E»  tJ.  ccKpi"  o6xox«T«(Tr«(7£/.  The  last  word  yields  no  suitable  sense, 
and  conjecture  as  to  the  right  reading  is  vain  ;  and  we  have  left  it 
untranslated.  The  Latin  translator  renders  "  qui  in  sumnia  arce  coUocati 
sunt." 

2  "IlA/of  is  (with  marvellous  ignorance  of  the  Hebrew  tongue,  as 
Combefisius  notices)  here  identified  with  Eli,  ifi^. 


THE  PROPHETIC  SCRIPTURES.  135 

children  wise."  The  covenant  of  the  Lord  is  true,  makinor 
wise  children  ;  those  free  from  evil,  both  the  apostles,  and 
then  also  us.  Besides,  the  testimony  of  the  Lord,  according 
to  which  He  rose  again  after  His  passion,  having  been  veri- 
fied by  fact,  led  the  church  to  confirmation  in  faith. 

LX.  "  The  fear  of  the  Lord  is  pure,  enduring  for  ever." 
lie  says  that  those  who  have  been  turned  from  fear  to  faith 
and  righteousness  endure  for  ever. 

"  The  judgments  of  the  Lord  are  true," — sure,  and  in- 
capable of  being  overturned ;  and  giving  rewards  according 
to  what  is  right,  bringing  the  righteous  to  the  unity  of  the 
faith.  For  this  is  shown  in  the  words,  "  justified  for  the 
same."  ^   "  Such  desires  ^  are  above  gold  and  precious  stone." 

LXL  ''  For  also  Thy  servant  keeps  them."  Not  that 
David  alone  is  called  servant ;  but  the  whole  people  saved  is 
called  the  servant  of  God,  in  virtue  of  obedience  to  the  com- 
mand. 

LXn.  "Cleanse  me  from  my  secret  [faults]  ;" — thoughts 
contrary  to  right  reason — defects.  For  He  calls  this  foreifrn 
to  the  righteous  man. 

LXIH.  "  If  they  have  not  dominion  over  me,  then  shall  I 
be  innocent."  If  those  who  persecute  me  as  they  did  the 
Lord,  do  not  have  dominion  over  me,  I  shall  not  be  innocent. 
For  no  one  becomes  a  martyr  unless  he  is  persecuted  ;  nor 
appears  righteous,  unless,  being  wronged,  he  takes  no 
revenge ;  nor  forbeariucj 

^  Ps.  xix.  12,  Septuagint. 

2  ui  ToietvTxt  tTTidu/^icii,  for  which  the  Septuagiut  has  iTriivfirirx,  as 
in  A.  V. 


FRAGMENTS 


OP 


CLEMENS   ALEXANDRINUS. 


TRANSLATED   BY 


EEV.  WILLIAM  WILSON,  M.A. 


137 


FRAGMENTS. 


(I.) 

FROM   THE   LATIN   TRANSLATION    OF 
CASSIODORUS.^ 

I. — COMMENTS   OX   THE   FIRST    EPISTLE   OF   PETER. 

IIAP.  i.  3.—"  Blessed  be  the  God  and  Father  of 
our  Lord  Jesus  Ciirist,  who  by  Ilis  great  mercy 
hath  reiienerated  us."      For  if  God  frenerated  us 
of  matter,  He  afterwards,  by  progress  in  life, 
regenerated  us. 

"  The  Father  of  our  Lord,  by  the  resurrection  of  Jesus 
Christ : "  who,  according  to  your  faith,  rises  again  in  us ; 
as,  on  the  other  hand,  He  dies  in  us,  through  the  operation 
of  our  unbelief.  For  He  said  again,  that  the  soul  never 
returns  a  second  time  to  the  body  in  this  life ;  and  that 
which  has  become  angelic  does  not  become  unriiihteous  or 
evil,  so  as  not  to  have  the  opportunity  of  again  sinning  by 
the  assumption  of  flesh  ;  but  that  in  the  resurrection  the 
soul  ^  returns  to  the  body,  and  both  are  joined  to  one  another 
according    to    their  peculiar  nature,    adapting    themselves, 

^  Fell  notes  that  Cassiodorus  states  that  he  had  in  his  translation 
corrected  what  he  considered  erroneous  in  the  original.  Fell  also  is 
inclined  to  believe  that  these  fragments  are  from  Clement's  lost  work 
'  TTTOTK'rwffs/;,  of  which  he  believes  Aduinbrationes  of  Cassiodorus  (which 
we  have  rendered  "  Comments")  to  be  a  translation. 

2  "  Utramque  "  is  the  reading,  which  is  plainly  corrupt.  We  have  con- 
jectured "  animara."  The  rest  of  the  sentence  is  so  ungrammatical  and 
impracticable  as  it  stands,  that  it  is  only  by  taking  considerable  liberties 
with  it  that  it  is  translatcable  at  all. 

139 


140  FRAGMENTS. 

through  the  composition  of  each,  by  a  kind  of  congruity  like  ^ 
a  buildinfT  of  stones. 

Besides,  Peter  says,  chap.  ii.  5,  "  Ye  also,  as  living  stones, 
are  built  up  a  spiritual  house ; "  meaning  the  place  of  the 
angelic  abode,  guarded  in  heaven.^  ''  For  you,"  he  says, 
"  who  are  kept  by  the  power  of  God,  by  faith  and  contem- 
plation, to  receive  the  end  of  your  faith,  the  salvation  of  your 
souls." 

Hence  it  appears  that  the  soul  is  not  naturally  immortal ; 
but  is  made  immortal  by  the  grace  of  God,  through  faith 
and  righteousness,  and  by  knowledge.  "  Of  which  salva- 
tion," he  says  (ver.  10),  "  the  prophets  have  inquired  and 
searched  diligently,"  and  what  follows.  It  is  declared  by 
this  that  the  prophets  spake  with  wisdom,  and  that  the  Spirit 
of  Christ  was  in  them,  according  to  the  possession  of  Christ, 
and  in  subjection  to  Christ.  For  God  works  through  arch- 
angels and  kindred  angels,  who  are  called  spirits  of  Christ. 

"  Which  are  now,"  he  says  (ver.  12),  "  reported  unto  you 
by  them  that  have  preached  the  gospel  unto  you."  The 
old  things  which  were  done  by  the  prophets  and  escape  the 
observation  of  most,  are  now  revealed  to  you  by  the  evan- 
gelists. "  For  to  you,"  he  says  {ih.)^  "  they  are  manifested  by 
the  Holy  Ghost,  who  was  sent ; "  that  is  the  Paraclete,  of 
whom  the  Lord  said,  "  If  I  go  not  away.  He  will  not  come  " 
(John  xvi.  7).  "  Unto  whom  "  {ih.),  it  is  said,  "  the  angels 
desire  to  look  ;  "  not  the  apostate  angels,  as  most  suspect,  but, 

^  The  text  here  has  "  sicut  sagena  vel"  (like  a  drag-net  or),  which 
we  have  omitted,  being  utterly  incapable  of  divining  any  conceivable 
resemblance  or  analogy  which  a  drag-net  can  afford  for  the  re-union  of 
the  soul  and  body.  "  Sagena"  is  either  a  blunder  for  something  else  which 
we  cannot  conjecture,  or  the  sentence  is  here,  as  elsewhere,  mutilated. 
But  it  is  possible  that  it  may  have  been  the  union  of  the  blessed  to  each 
other,  and  their  conjunction  with  one  another  according  to  their  affinities, 
which  was  the  point  handled  in  the  original  sentences,  of  which  we  have 
only  these  obscure  and  confusing  remains. 

2  "  Coeli,"  plainly  a  mistake  for  "  coelo  "  or  "  ccelis."  There  is  ap- 
parently a  hiatus  here.  "  The  angelic  abode,  guarded  in  heaven,"  most 
probably  is  the  explanation  of  "  an  inheritance  incorruptible  and  unde- 
filed,  reserved  in  heaven." 


FROM  CASSIODORUS.  141 

what  is  a  divine  truth,  angels  who  desire  to  obtain  the  advan- 
tage of  that  perfection. 

"By  precious  blood,"  he  says  (ver.  19),  "as  of  a  lamb 
without  blemish  and  without  spot."  Here  he  touches  on  the 
ancient  Levitical  and  sacerdotal  celebrations ;  but  means  a 
soul  pure  through  righteousness  which  is  offered  to  God. 

"  Verily  foreknown  before  the  foundation  of  the  world" 
(ver.  20).  Inasmuch  as  He  was  foreknown  before  every 
creature,  because  He  was  Christ.  "  But  manifested  in  the 
last  times"  by  the  generation  of  a  body. 

"  Being  born  again,  not  of  corruptible  seed"  (ver.  23). 
The  soul,  then,  which  is  produced  along  with  the  body  is 
corruptible,  as  some  think. 

"But  the  word  of  the  Lord,"  he  says  (ver.  25),  "enduretli 
for  ever  :"  as  well  prophecy  as  divine  doctrine. 

Chap.  ii.  9. — "  But  ye  are  a  chosen  generation,  a  royal 
priesthood."  That  we  are  a  chosen  race  by  the  election  of 
God  is  abundantly  clear.  He  says  royal,  because  we  are 
called  to  sovereignty  and  belong  to  Christ ;  and  priesthood 
on  account  of  the  oblation  which  is  made  by  prayers  and 
instructions,  by  which  are  gained  the  souls  which  are  offered 
to  God. 

"Who,  when  He  was  reviled,"  he  says  (ver.  23),  "reviled 
not;  when  He  suffered,  threatened  not."  The  Lord  acted 
so  in  His  goodness  and  patience.  "  But  committed  Himself 
to  him  that  judged  Him  unrighteously:"^  whether  Himself, 
so  that,  i-egarding  Himself  in  this  way,  there  is  a  trans- 
position." He  indeed  gave  Himself  up  to  those  who  judged 
according  to  an  unjust  law ;  because  He  was  unserviceable 
to  them,  inasmuch  as  He  was  righteous :  or.  He  committed 
to  God  those  who  judged  unrighteously,  and  without  cause 
insisted  on  His  death,  so  that  they  might  be  instructed  by 
suffering  punishment. 

Chap.  iii.  10. — "  For  he  that  will  love  life,  and  see  good 
days ;"  that  is,  who  wishes  to  become  eternal  and  immortal. 
And  He  calls  the  Lord  life,  and  the  days  good,  that  is  holy. 

"  For  the  eyes  of  the  Lord,"  he  says,  "  are  upon  the 
1  Sic.  -  Hyperbatou. 


142  FRAGMENTS. 

riglitGons,  and  His  ears  on  their  prayers  :"  he  means  the 
manifold  inspection  of  the  Holy  Spirit.  '"The  face  of  the 
Lord  is  on  them  that  do  evil"  (ver.  12) ;  that  is,  whether 
judgment,  or  vengeance,  or  manifestation. 

"  But  sanctify  the  Lord  Christ,"  he  says,  "  in  your  hearts  " 
(ver.  15).  For  so  you  have  in  the  Lord's  prayer,  "  Hallowed 
be  Tliy  name"  (Matt.  vi.  9). 

"  For  Christ,"  he  says  (ver.  18),  "hath  once  suffered  for 
our  sins,  the  just  for  the  unjust,  that  He  might  present^  us 
to  God;  being  put  to  death  in  the  flesh,  but  quickened  in  the 
spirit."  He  says  these  things,  reducing  them  to  their  faith. 
That  is,  He  became  alive  in  our  spirits. 

"  Coming,"  he  says  (ver.  20),  "  He  preached  to  those  who 
were  once  unbelieving."  They  saw  not  His  form,  but  they 
heard  His  voice. 

"  When  the  long-suffering  of  God"  (ih.)  holds  out.  God 
is  so  good,  as  to  work  the  result  by  the  teaching  of  salvation. 

"By  the  resurrection,"  it  is  said  (ver.  21),  "of  Jesus 
Christ :"  that,  namely,  which  is  effected  in  us  by  faith. 

"  Angels  being  subjected  to  Him"  (ver.  22),  which  are 
the  first  order ;  and  "  principalities"  being  subject,  who  are 
of  the  second  order;  and  "powers"  being  also  subject,  which 
are  said  to  belong  to  the  third  order. 

"  Who  shall  give  account,"  he  says,  chap.  iv.  5,  "  to  Him 
who  is  ready  to  judge  the  quick  and  the  dead." 

These  are  trained  through  previous  judgments  (ver.  6). 
Therefore  he  adds,  "  For  this  cause  was  the  gospel  preached 
also  to  the  dead" — to  us,  namely,  who  were  at  one  time  un- 
believers. "  That  they  might  be  judged  according  to  men," 
he  says,  ib.,  "  in  the  flesh,  but  live  according  to  God  in  the 
spirit."  Because,  that  is,  they  have  fallen  away  from  faith ; 
whilst  they  are  still  in  the  flesh  they  are  judged  according  to 
preceding  judgments,  that  they  might  repent.  Accordingly, 
he  also  adds,  saying,  "  That  they  might  live  according  to 
God  in  the  spirit."  So  Paul  also ;  for  he,  too,  states  some- 
thing of  this  nature  when  he  says,  "  Whom  I  have  delivered 
to  Satan,  that  he  might  live  in  the  spirit"  (1  Cor.  v.  5) ; 

1  Offerret. 


FROM  CASSIODOnUS.  143 

that  is,  "  as  good  stewards  of  the  manifold  grace  of  God." 
Similarly  also  Paul  says,  "  Variously,  and  in  many  ways,  God 
of  old  spake  to  our  fathers"  (Ileb.  i.  1). 

"  Rejoice,"  it  is  said  (ver.  13),  "  that  ye  are  partakers  in 
the  sufferings  of  Christ :"  that  is,  if  ye  are  righteous,  ye 
suffer  for  riirhteousness'  sake,  as  Christ  suffered  for  rifrhteous- 
ness.  "  Happy  are  ye,  for  the  Spirit  of  God,  who  is  the 
Spirit  of  His  glory  and  virtue,  resteth  on  you."  This  pos- 
sessive "His"  signifies  also  an  angelic  spirit:  inasmuch  as 
the  glory  of  God  those  are,  through  whom,  according  to 
faith  and  righteousness,  He  is  glorified,  to  honourable  glory, 
accordiniT  to  the  advancement  of  the  saints  who  are  brought 
in.  "The  Spirit  of  God  on  us,"  maybe  thus  understood  ; 
that  is,  who  through  faith  comes  on  the  soul,  like  a  graceful- 
ness of  mind  and  beauty  of  soul. 

"  Since,"  it  is  said  (ver.  17),  "  it  is  time  for  judgment 
beginning  at  the  house  of  God."  For  judgment  will  over- 
take these  in  the  appointed  persecutions. 

"  Eut  the  God  of  all  grace,"  he  says  (chap.  v.  10).  "  Of 
all  grace,"  he  says,  because  He  is  good,  and  the  giver  of 
all  good  things. 

"  Marcus,  my  son,  saluteth  you"  (ver.  14).  Mark,  the 
follower  of  Peter,  while  Peter  publicly  preached  the  gospel 
at  Rome  before  some  of  CfBsar's  equites,  and  adduced  many 
testimonies  to  Christ,  in  order  that  thereby  they  might  be 
able  to  commit  to  memory  what  was  spoken,  of  what  was 
spoken  by  Peter,  wrote  entirely  what  is  called  the  Gospel 
according  to  Mark.  As  Luke  also  may  be  recognised^  by 
the  style,  both  to  have  composed  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles, 
and  to  have  translated  Paul's  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews. 

II. — COMMENTS  ON  THE  EPISTLE  OF  JUDE. 

Jude,  who  wrote  the  catholic  epistle,  the  brother  of  the 
sons  of  Joseph,  and  very  religious,  whilst  knowing  the  near 
relationship  of  the  Lord,  yet  did  not  say  that  he  himself  was 

^  The  reading  is  "  agnosceret."  To  yield  any  sense  it  must  have  been 
"agnoscatur"  or  "  aguoscerctur." 


144  FRAGMENTS. 

His  brother.  But  what  said  he  (ver.  1)  ?  "  Jude,  a  servant  of 
Jesus  Christ," — of  Him  as  Lord;  but  "  the  brother  of  James." 
For  this  is  true  ;  he  was  His  brother,  (the  son)  ^  of  Joseph. 
"  For  (ver.  4)  certain  men  have  entered  unawares,  ungodly 
men,  who  had  been  of  old  ordained  and  predestined  to  the 
judgment  of  our  God  ; "  not  that  they  might  become  impious, 
but  that,  being  now  impious,  they  were  ordained  to  judgment. 
"  For  the  Lord  God,"  he  says  (ver.  5),  "  who  once  deHvered  a 
people  out  of  Egypt,  afterward  destroyed  them  that  believed 
not;"  that  is,  that  He  might  train  them  through  punishment. 
For  they  were  indeed  punished,  and  they  perished  on  account 
of  those  that  are  saved,  until  they  turn  to  the  Lord.  "  But 
the  angels,"  he  says  (ver.  6),  "  that  kept  not  their  own  pre- 
eminence," that,  namely,  which  they  received  through  ad- 
vancement, "  but  left  their  own  habitation,"  meaning,  that  is, 
the  heaven  and  the  stars,  became,  and  are  called  apostates. 
"He  hath  reserved"  (he  says,  ih.)  "to  the  judgment  of 
the  great  day,  in  chains,  under  darkness."  He  means  the 
locality  near  the  earth,"  that  is,  the  dark  air.  Now  he  called 
"  chains"  the  loss  of  the  honour  in  which  they  had  stood,  and 
the  lust  of  feeble  things ;  since,  bound  by  their  own  lust,  they 
cannot  be  converted.  "  As  Sodom  and  Gomorrha,"  he  says 
(ver.  7).  .  .  .  By  which  the  Lord  signifies  that  pardon  had 
been  granted;^  and  that  on  being  disciplined  they  had  re- 
pented. "  Similarly  ^  to  the  same,"  he  says  (ver.  8),  "  also 
those  dreamers," — that  is,  who  dream  in  their  imagination 
lusts  and  wicked  desires,  regarding  as  good  not  that  which  is 
truly  good,  and  superior  to  all  good, — "  defile  the  flesh,  despise 
dominion,  and  speak  evil  of  majesty,"  that  is,  the  only  Lord,^ 
who  is  truly  our  Lord,  Jesus  Christ,  and  alone  worthy  of 
praise.     They  "  speak  evil  of  majesty,"  that  is,  of  the  angels. 

^  "  Son  "  supplied.  2  Terris. 

•''  "  Quibus  significat  Dominus  remissius  esse,"  the  reading  here,  defies 
translation  and  emendation.  We  suppose  a  hiatus  here,  and  change  "  re- 
missius" into  "remissum"  to  get  the  above  sense.  The  statement  can- 
not apply  to  Sodom  and  Gomorrha. 

*  Similiter  iisdem. 

^  Dominus — Dominium,  referring  to  the  clause  "  despise  dominion." 


FROM  CASSIODORUS.  145 

"  When  Michael,  the  archangel  (ver.  9),  disputing  with 
the  devil,  debated  about  the  body  of  Moses."  Here  he  con- 
firms the  assumption  of  Moses.  He  is  here  called  Michael, 
who  through  an  angel  near  to  us  debated  with  the  devil. 

"But  these,"  he  says  (ver.  10),  "  speak  evil  of  those  things 
which  they  know  not ;  but  what  they  know  naturally,  as 
brute  beasts,  in  these  things  they  corrupt  themselves."  He 
means  that  they  eat,  and  drink,  and  indulge  in  uncleanness, 
and  says  that  they  do  other  things  that  are  common  to  them 
with  animals,  devoid  of  reason. 

"  Woe  unto  them  !"  he  says  (ver.  11),  "  for  they  liave 
gone  in  the  way  of  Cain."  For'so  also  we  lie  under  Adam's 
sin  through  similarity  of  sin.  "  Clouds,"  he  says  (ver.  12), 
"  without  water ;  who  do  not  possess  in  themselves  the 
divine  and  fruitful  word."  Wherefore,  he  says,  "  men  of 
this  kind  are  carried  about  both  by  winds  and  violent 
blasts."^  "  Trees,"  he  says,  "of  autumn,  without  fruit," — 
unbelievers,  that  is,  who  bear  no  fruit  of  fidelity.  "  Twice 
dead,"  he  says  :  once,  namely,  when  they  sinned  by  trans- 
gressing, and  a  second  time  when  delivered  up  to  punish- 
ment, according  to  the  predestined  judgments  of  God  ;  in- 
asmuch as  it  is  to  be  reckoned  death,  even  when  each  one 
does  not  forthwith  deserve  the  inheritance.  "  Waves,"  he 
says  (ver.  13),  "  of  a  raging  sea."  By  these  words  he 
signifies  the  life  of  the  Gentiles,  whose  end  is  abominable 
ambition."  "  Wandering  stars," — that  is,  he  means  those 
who  err  and  are  apostates  are  of  that  kind  of  stars  which  fell 
from  the  seats  of  the  angels, — "  to  whom,"  for  their  apostasv, 
"  the  blackness  of  darkness  is  reserved  for  ever.  Enoch 
also,  the  seventh  from  Adam,"  he  says  (ver.  14),  "  pro- 
phesied of  these."     In  these  words  he  verifies  the  prophecy. 

"  Those,"  he  says  (ver.  19),  "separating"  the  faithful  from 
the  unfaithful,  being  convicted  according  to  their  own  unbelief. 

^  Spiritibns. 

*  The  reading  "  vitam  Gentilem  significat  quorum  arabitionis  abonii- 
nabilis  est  finis,"  is  manifestly  corrupt.  "  The  end  of  whose  ambition  is 
abominable  "  would  be  obtained  by  a  slighter  change  than  what  is  given 
above. 

K 


146  FRAGMENTS. 

And  again  those  separating  from  the  flesh.^  He  says, "  AnimaP 
not  having  the  spirit ;"  that  is,  the  spirit  which  is  by  faith, 
which  supervenes  through  the  practice  of  righteousness, 

"But  ye,  beloved,"  he  says  (ver.  20),  "  building  up  your- 
selves on  your  most  holy  faith,  in  the  Holy  Spirit."  "  But 
some,"  he  says  (ver.  21),  "save,  plucking  them  from  the 
fire"  (ver.  22)  ;  "  but  of  some  have  compassion  in  fear,"  that 
is,  teach  those  who  fall  into  the  fire  to  free  themselves. 
"  Hating,"  he  says  (ver.  23),  "  that  spotted  garment,  which  is 
carnal :  "  that  of  the  soul,  namely  ;  the  spotted  garment  is  a 
spirit  polluted  by  carnal  lusts.^ 

"Now  to  Him,"  he  says  (ver.  24),  "who  is  able  to  keep 
you  without  stumbling,  and  present  you  faultless  before  the 
presence  of  His  glory  in  joy."  In  the  presence  of  His  glory  : 
he  means  in  the  presence  of  the  angels,  to  be  presented  fault- 
less, having  become  angels.*  When  Daniel  speaks  of  the  people 
and  comes  into  the  presence  of  the  Lord,  he  does  not  say  this, 
because  he  saw  God  :  for  it  is  impossible  that  any  one  whose 
heart  is  not  pure  should  see  God ;  but  he  says  this,  that  every- 
thing that  the  people  did  was  in  the  sight  of  God,  and  was 
manifest  to  Him;  that  is,  that  nothing  is  hid  from  the  Lord. 

Now,  in  the  Gospel  according  to  Mark,  the  Lord  being 
interrogated  by  the  chief  of  the  priests  if  He  was  the  Christ, 
the  son  of  the  blessed  God,  answering,  said,  "I  am  ;^  and  ye 
shall  see  the  Son  of  man  sitting  at  the  right  hand  of  power."  ^ 
But  powers^  mean  the  holy  angels.  Further,  when  Pie 
says  "  at  the  right  hand  of  God,"  He  means  the  self-same 
[beings],  by  reason  of  the  equality  and  likeness  of  the  angelic 

^  "  Discernentes  a  carnibus," — a  sentence  which  has  got  either  dis- 
placed or  corrupted,  or  both. 

-  Animales. 

"  By  a  slight  change  of  punctuation,  and  by  substituting  "maculata" 
for  "macula,"  we  get  the  sense  as  above.  "Animse  videlicet  tunica 
macula  est,"  is  the  reading  of  the  text. 

*  We  have  here  with  some  hesitation  altered  the  punctuation.  In  the 
text,  "  To  be  presented"  begins  a  new  sentence. 

^  Mark  xiv.  62.  There  is  blundering  here  as  to  the  differences  be- 
tween the  evangelists'  accounts,  as  a  comparison  of  them  sliows. 

^  Virtutis.  ^  Virtiites. 


FROM  CASSIODOnUS.  117 

and  holy  powers,  ^Yhich  are  called  by  the  name  of  God.  He 
says,  therefore,  that  He  sits  at  the  right  hand ;  that  is,  that 
He  rests  in  pre-eminent  honour.  In  the  other  Gospels,  how- 
ever. He  is  said  not  to  have  replied  to  the  high  priest,  on  his 
asking  if  He  was  the  Son  of  God.  But  what  said  He  ? 
'•You  say."  ^  Answering  sufficiently  well.  For  had  He  said. 
It  is  as  you  understand,  he  would  have  said  what  was  not  true, 
not  confessing  Himself  to  be  the  Son  of  God  ;  [for]  they  did 
not  entertain  this  opinion  of  Him  ;  but  by  saying  "  You 
say,"^  He  spake  truly.  For  what  they  had  no  knowledf^e  of, 
but  expressed  in  words,  that  He  confessed  to  be  true. 

III. — COMMENTS  ON  THE  FIRST  EPISTLE  OF  JOHN. 

Chap.  i.  1.  "That  which  was  from  the  beginning;  which 
we  have  seen  with  our  eyes ;  which  we  have  heard." 

Following  the  Gospel  according  to  John,  and  in  accord- 
ance with  it,  this  Epistle  also  contains  the  spiritual  principle. 

What  therefore  he  says,  "  from  the  beginning,"  the  Pres- 
byter explained  to  this  effect,  that  the  beginning  of  genera- 
tion is  not  separated  from  the  beginning  of  the  Creator.  For 
when  he  says,  "That  which  was  from  the  beginning,"  he 
touches  upon  the  generation  without  beginning  of  the  Son, 
who  is  co-existent  with  the  Father.  There  was,  then,  a  Word 
importing  an  unbeginning  eternity ;  as  also  the  Word  itself, 
that  is,  the  Son  of  God,  who  being,  by  equality  of  substance, 
one  with  the  Father,  is  eternal  and  uncreate.  That  He  was 
always  the  Word,  is  signified  by  saying,  "  In  the  beginning 
was  the  Word."  But  by  the  expression,  "  we  have  seen 
with  our  eyes,"  he  signifies  the  Lord's  presence  in  the  flesh , 
"  and  our  hands  have  handled,"  he  says,  "  of  the  Word  of 
life."  He  means  not  only  His  flesh,  but  the  virtues  of  the 
Son,  like  the  sunbeam  which  penetrates  to  the  lowest  places, 
— this  sunbeam  coming  in  the  flesh  became  palpable  to  the 
disciples.     It  is  accordingly  related  in  traditions,  that  John, 

^  Matt.  xxvi.  64: :  "  Thou  hast  said :  nevertheless,  I  say  unto  you, 
Hereafter  ye  shall  see  the  Son  of  man  sitting  on  the  right  hand  of  power, 
and  coming  in  the  clouds  of  heaven." 

-  i.e.  It  is  as  you  say. 


148  FRAGMENTS. 

touching  the  outward  body  itself,  sent  his  hand  deep  down 
into  it,  and  that  the  sohdity  of  the  flesh  offered  no  obstacle, 
but  gave  way  to  the  hand  of  the  disciple. 

"  And  our  hands  have  handled  of  the  Word  of  life ; " 
that  is,  He  who  came  in  the  flesh  became  capable  of  being 
touched.     As  also, 

Ver.  2.  "  Tlie  life  was  manifested."  For  in  the  Gospel 
he  thus  speaks :  '•  And  what  was  made,  in  Him  was  life, 
and  the  life  was  the  light  of  men"  (John  i.  3,  4). 

"And  we  show  unto  you  that  eternal  life,  which  was  with 
the  Father,  and  was  manifested  unto  you." 

He  signifies  by  the  appellation  of  Father,  that  the  Son 
also  existed  always,  without  beginning. 

Ver.  5.  "For  God,"  he  says/' is  light." 

He  does  not  express  the  divine  essence,  but  wishing  to 
declare  the  majesty  of  God,  he  has  applied  to  the  Divinity 
what  is  best  and  most  excellent  in  the  view  of  men.  Thus 
also  Paul,  when  he  speaks  of  "light  inaccessible"  (1  Tim. 
vi.  16).  But  John  himself  also  in  this  same  Epistle  says, 
"  God  is  love  "  (1  John  iv.  16)  :  pointing  out  the  excellencies 
of  God,  that  He  is  kind  and  merciful ;  and  because  He  is 
light,  makes  men  righteous,  according  to  the  advancement 
of  the  soul,  through  chai'ity.  God,  then,  who  is  ineffable 
in  respect  of  His  substance,  is  light. 

"  And  in  Him  is  no  darkness  at  all," — that  is,  no  passion,  no 
keeping  up  of  evil  respecting  any  one,  [He]  destroys  no  one, 
but  gives  salvation  to  all.  Light  moreover  signifies,  either 
the  precepts  of  the  Law,  or  faith,  or  doctrine.  Darkness  is 
the  opposite  of  these  things.  Not  as  if  there  were  another 
way ;  since  there  is  only  one  way  according  to  the  divine 
precepts.  For  the  work  of  God  is  unity.  Duahty  and  all 
else  that  exists,  except  unity,  arises  from  perversity  of  life. 

Ver.  7.  "  And  the  blood  of  Jesus  Christ  His  Son,"  he 
says,  "cleanses  us."  For  the  doctrine  of  the  Lord,  which 
is  very  powerful,  is  called  His  blood. 

Ver.  10.  "  If  we  say  that  we  have  not  sinned,  we  make 
Him  a  liar,  and  His  word  is  not  in  us."  His  doctrine,  that  is, 
or  word  is  truth. 


FROM  CASSlODOnUS.  119 

Chap.  ii.  1.  "And  if  any  man  sin,"  he  says,  "we  have  an 
advocate^  with  the  Father,  Jesus  Christ."  For  so  the  Lord 
is  an  advocate  with  the  Father  for  us.  So  also  is  there  an 
advocate,  whom,  after  His  assumption,  He  vouchsafed  to 
send.  For  these  primitive  and  first-created  virtues  are  un- 
changeable as  to  substance,  and  alon^r  with  subordinate 
anffels  and  archangels,  whose  names  they  share,  effect 
divine  operations.  Thus  also  Moses  names  the  virtue  of 
the  angel  Michael,  by  an  angel  near  to  himself  and  of 
lowest  grade.  The  like  also  we  find  in  the  holy  prophets  ; 
but  to  Moses  an  angel  appeared  near  and  at  hand.  Moses 
heard  him  and  spoke  to  him,  manifestly,  face  to  face.  On 
the  other  prophets,  through  the  agency  of  angels,  an  im- 
pression was  made,  as  of  beings  hearing  and  seeing. 

On  this  account  also,  they  alone  heard,  and  they  alone 
saw ;  as  also  is  seen  in  the  case  of  Samuel  (1  Sam.  iii.  3). 
Elisaeus  also  alone  heard  the  voice  by  which  he  w^as  called 
(1  Kings  xix.).  If  the  voice  had  been  open  and  common, 
it  would  have  been  heard  by  all.  In  this  instance  it  was 
heard  by  him  alone,  in  whom  the  impression  made  by  the 
ancjel  worked. 

Ver.  2.  "  And  not  only  for  our  sins," — that  is,  for  those 
of  the  faithful, — is  the  Lord  the  propitiator,  does  he  say, 
"  but  also  for  the  whole  world."  He,  indeed,  saves  all ;  but 
some  [He  saves],  converting  tliem  by  punishments ;  others, 
however,  who  follow  voluntarily  [He  saves]  with  dignity  of 
honour  ;  so  "  that  every  knee  should  bow  to  Him,  of  things 
in  heaven,  and  things  on  earth,  and  things  under  the  earth  " 
(Phil.  ii.  10)  ;  that  is,  angels,  men,  and  souls  that  before  His 
advent  have  departed  from  this  temporal  life. 

Ver.  3.  "And  by  this  we  know  that  we  know  Him,  if 
we  keep  His  commandments."  For  the  Gnostic^  [he  who 
knows]  also  does  the  works  which  pertain  to  the  province  of 
virtue.  But  he  who  performs  the  works  is  not  necessarily 
also  a  Gnostic.  For  a  man  may  be  a  doer  of  right  works, 
and  yet  not  a  knower  of  the  mysteries  of  science.  Finally, 
knowing  that  some  works  are  performed  from  fear  of  punish- 
1  Consolatorem.  *  "  lutellector"  in  Latin  translation. 


150  FRAGMENTS. 

ment,  and  some  on  account  of  the  promise  of  reward,  lie 
shows  the  perfection  of  the  man  gifted  with  knowledge,  who 
fulfils  his  works  by  love.     Further,  he  adds,  and  says  : 

Ver.  5.  "  But  whoso  keepeth  His  word,  in  him  verily  is 
the  love  of  God  perfected  :  hereby  know  we  that  we  are  in 
Him," — by  faith  and  love. 

Ver.  7.  "  I  write  no  new  commandment  unto  you,  but 
an  old  commandment,  which  ye  had  from  the  beginning," — 
through  the  Law,  that  is,  and  the  prophets  ;  where  it  is  said, 
God  is  one.  Accordingly,  also,  he  infers,  "For  the  old 
commandment  is  the  word  which  ve  have  heard." 

Again,  however,  he  says  : 

Ver.  8.  "  This  is  the  commandment ;  for  the  darkness " 
of  perversion,  that  is,  "  has  passed  away,  and,  lo,  the  true  light 
hath  already  shone," — that  is,  through  faith,  through  know- 
ledge, through  the  Covenant  working  in  men,  through  pre- 
pared judgments. 

Ver.  9.  "  He  that  saith  he  is  in  the  light," — in  the  light, 
he  means  in  the  truth,  — "  and  hateth,"  he  says,  "  his 
brother."  By  his  brother,  he  means  not  only  his  neighbour, 
but  also  the  Lord.  For  unbelievers  hate  Him  and  do  not 
keep  His  commandments.     Therefore  also  he  infers  : 

Ver.  10.  "  He  that  loveth  his  brother  abideth  in  the  light ; 
and  there  is  none  occasion  of  stumblino;  in  him." 

Vers.  12-14.  He  then  indicates  the  stages  of  advancement 
and  progress  of  souls  that  are  still  located  in  the  flesh ;  and 
calls  those  whose  sins  have  been  forgiven,  for  the  Lord's 
name's  sake,  "  little  children,"  for  many  believe  on  account 
of  the  name  only.  He  styles  "  fathers  "  the  perfect,  "  who 
have  known  what  was  from  the  beginning,"  and  received  with 
understanding, — the  Son,  that  is,  of  whom  he  said  above, 
"  that  which  was  from  the  beginning." 

"  I  write,"  says  he,  "  to  you,  young  men,  because  ye  have 
overcome  the  wicked  one."  Young  men  strong  in  despising 
pleasures.  "  The  wicked  one  "  points  out  the  eminence  of  the 
devil.  "  The  children,"  moreover,  know  the  Father  ;  having 
fled  from  idols  and  gathered  together  to  the  one  God. 

Ver.  13.  "  For  the  world,"  he  says,  "  is  in  the  wicked  one." 


FROM  CASSIODOnUS.  1.01 

Is  not  the  world,  and  all  that  is  in  the  world,  called  God's 
creation  and  very  good  ?     Yes.     But, 

Ver.  16.  "The  lust  of  the  flesh,  the  lust  of  the  eyes,  and 
the  ambition  of  the  world,"  which  arise  from  the  perversion 
of  life,  "  are  not  of  the  Father,  but  of  the  world,"  and  of  you. 

Ver.  17.  "  Therefore  also  the  world  shall  pass  away,  and 
the  lust  thereof ;  but  he  that  docth  the  will  of  God"  and 
His  commandments  "  abideth  for  ever." 

Ver.  19.  "They  went  out  from  us;  but  they  were  not  of 
us" — neither  the  apostate  angels,  nor  men  falling  away; — 
"  but  that  they  may  be  manifested  that  they  are  not  of  us." 
With  sufficient  clearness  he  distinguishes  the  class  of  the  elect 
and  that  of  the  lost,  and  that  which  remaining  in  faith  "  has 
nn  unction  from  the  Holy  One,"  which  comes  through  faith. 
He  that  abideth  not  in  faith. 

Ver.  22.  "A  liar"  and  "an  antichrist,  who  denieth  that 
Jesus  is  the  Christ."  For  Jesus,  Saviour  and  Redeemer,  is 
also  Christ  the  King. 

Ver.  23.  "  He  who  denies  the  Son,"  by  ignoring  Him, 
"  has  not  the  Father,  nor  does  he  know  Him."  But  he  who 
knoweth  the  Son  and  the  Father,  knows  according  to  know- 
ledge, and  when  the  Lord  shall  be  manifested  at  His  second 
advent,  shall  have  confidence  and  not  be  confounded.  Which 
confusion  is  heavy  punishment. 

Ver.  29.  "  Every  one,"  he  says,  "  who  doeth  righteousness 
is  born  of  God ; "  being  regenerated,  that  is,  according  to 
faith. 

Chap.  iii.  1.  "  For  the  world  knoweth  us  not,  as  it  knew 
Him  not."  He  means  by  the  world  those  who  live  a  worldly 
life  in  pleasures. 

Ver.  2.  "  Beloved,"  says  he,  "  now  are  we  the  sons  of  God," 
not  by  natural  affection,  but  because  we  have  God  as  our 
Father.  For  it  is  the  greater  love  that,  seeing  we  have  no 
relationship  to  God,  He  nevertheless  loves  us  and  calls  us 
His  sons.  "  And  it  hath  not  yet  appeared  what  we  shall  be  ;" 
that  is,  to  what  kind  of  glory  we  shall  attain.  "  For  if  He 
shall  be  manifested," — that  is,  if  we  are  made  perfect, — "  we 
shall  be  like  Him,"  as  reposing  and  justified,  pure  in  virtue, 


152  FRAGMENTS. 

"  so  that  we  may  see  Him"  (His  countenance)  "  as  He  is," 
by  comprehension. 

Ver.  8.  "  He  that  doeth  unrighteousness  is  of  the  devil," 
that  is,  of  the  devil  as  his  father,  following  and  choosing  the 
same  things.  "  The  devil  sinneth  from  the  beginning,"  he 
says.  From  the  beginning  from  which  he  began  to  sin,  in- 
corrigibly persevering  in  sinning. 

Ver.  9.  He  says,  "  Whosoever  is  born  of  God  does  not 
commit  sin,  for  His  seed  remaineth  in  him ;"  that  is.  His 
word  in  him  who  is  born  again  through  faith. 

Ver.  10.  "  Thus  we  know  the  children  of  God,  as  likewise 
the  children  of  the  devil,"  who  choose  things  like  the  devil ; 
for  so  also  they  are  said  to  be  of  the  wicked  one. 

Ver.  15.  "  Every  one  who  hateth  his  brother  is  a  mur- 
derer." For  in  him  through  unbelief  Christ  dies.  Rightly, 
therefore,  he  continues,  "And  ye  know  that  no  murderer 
and  unbeliever  hath  eternal  life  abiding  in  him."  For  the 
living  Christ^  abides  in  the  believing  soul. 

Ver.  16.  "For  He  Himself  laid  down  His  life  for  us;" 
that  is,  for  those  who  believe ;  that  is,  for  the  apostles.  If 
then  He  laid  down  His  life  for  the  apostles,  he  means  His 
apostles  themselves :  as  if  he  said.  We,  I  say,  the  apostles,  for 
whom  He  laid  down  His  life,  "  ought  to  lay  down  our  lives 
for  the  brethren;"  for  the  salvation  of  their  neighbours  was 
the  glory  of  the  apostles. 

Ver.  20.  He  says,  "  For  God  is  greater  than  our  heart ;" 
that  is,  the  virtue  of  God  [is  greater]  than  conscience,  which 
will  follow  the  soul.  Wherefore  he  continues,  and  says, 
"  and  knoweth  all  things." 

Ver.  21.  "Beloved,  if  our  heart  condemn  us  not,  it  will 
have  confidence  befoi-e  God." 

Ver.  24.  "  And  hereby  we  know  that  He  dwelleth  in  us 
by  His  Spirit,  which  He  hath  given  us;"  that  is,  by  super- 
intendence and  foresight  of  future  events. 

Chap.  iv.  18.  He  says,  "Perfect  love  casteth  out  fear." 
For  the  perfection  of  a  believing  man  is  love. 

1  The  text  reads  "  Christi,"  which  yields  no  suitable  sense,  and  for 
which  we  have  substituted  "  Christus." 


FROM  CASSIODORUS.  153 

Chap.  V.  0.  He  says,  "  This  is  He  who  came  by  water  and 
blood ; "  and  again, — 

Ver.  7.  "  For  there  are  three  that  bear  witness,  the  Spirit,"' 
which  is  life,  "  and  the  water,"  which  is  regeneration  and 
faith,  "  and  the  blood,"  which  is  knowledge  ;  "  and  these 
three  are  one."  For  in  the  Saviour  are  those  saving  virtues, 
and  life  itself  exists  in  His  own  Son. 

Ver.  14.  "  And  this  is  the  confidence  which  we  have  to- 
wards Him,  that  if  we  ask  anything  according  to  His  will, 
He  will  hear  us."  He  does  not  say  absolutely  what  we  shall 
ask,  but  what  we  ought  to  ask. 

Ver.  19.  "And  the  whole  world  lieth  in  the  wicked  one;" 
not  the  creation,  but  worldly  men,  and  those  who  live  accord- 
inij  to  their  lusts. 

Ver.  20.  "  And  the  Son  of  God  hath  come  and  given  us 
understanding,"  which  comes  to  us,  that  is,  by  faith,  and  is 
also  called  the  Holy  Spirit. 

IV. — COMMENTS  ON  THE  SECOND  EPISTLE  OF  JOHN. 

The  second  Epistle  of  John,  wdiich  is  written  to  Virgins, 
is  very  simple.  It  was  written  to  a  Babylonian  lady,  by 
name  Electa,  and  indicates  the  election  of  the  holy  church. 
He  establishes  in  this  Epistle  that  the  following  out  of  the 
faith  is  not  without  charity,  and  so  that  no  one  divide  Jesus 
Christ ;  but  only  to  believe  that  Jesus  Christ  has  come  in 
the  flesh.  For  he  who  has  the  Son  by  apprehension  in  his 
intellect  knows  also  the  Father,  and  grasps  with  his  mind  in- 
telligibly the  greatness  of  His  power  working  without  begin- 
ning of  time. 

Ver.  10.  He  says,  "If  any  come  unto  you  and  bring  not 
this  doctrine,  receive  him  not  into  your  house,  neither  bid 
him  God  speed ;  for  he  that  biddeth  him  God  speed  is  par- 
taker of  his  evil  deeds."  He  forbids  us  to  salute  such,  and 
to  receive  them  to  our  hospitality.  For  this  is  not  harsh  in 
the  case  of  a  man  of  this  sort.  But  he  admonishes  theni 
neither  to  confer  nor  dispute  with  such  as  are  not  able  to 
handle  divine  things  with  intelligence,  lest  through  them  they 


154  FRAGMENTS. 

be  seduced  from  the  doctrine  of  truth,  influenced  by  plausi- 
ble reasons.  Now,  I  think  that  we  are  not  even  to  pray 
with  such,  because  in  the  prayer  which  is  made  at  home, 
after  rising  from  prayer,  the  salutation  of  joy  is  also  the 
token  of  peace. 


(II.) 
FEOM  NICETAS  BISHOP  OF  HEEACLEA'S  CATENA. 

I. JOB  I.  21. 

But  Job's  words  may  be  more  elegantly  understood  thus : 
"Naked"  of  evil  and  sin  was  I  formed  from  the  earth  at 
the  becinninc,  as  if  from  a  "  mother's  womb :  naked  to  the 
earth  shall  I  also  depart ;"  naked,^  not  of  possessions,  for 
that  were  a  trivial  and  common  thing,  but  of  evil  and  sin,  and 
of  the  unsightly  shape  which  follows  those  who  have  led  bad 
lives.  Obviously,  all  of  us  human  beings  are  born  naked, 
and  again  are  buried  naked,  swathed  only  in  grave-clothes. 
For  God  hath  provided  for  us  another  life,  and  made  the 
present  life  the  way  for  the  course  which  leads  to  it ;  appoint- 
ing the  supplies  derived  from  what  we  possess  merely  as  pro- 
visions for  the  way  ;  and  on  our  quitting  this  way,  the  wealth, 
consisting  of  the  things  which  we  possessed,  journeys  no 
farther  with  us.  For  not  a  single  thing  that  we  possess  is 
properly  our  own :  of  one  possession  alone,  that  is  godliness, 
are  we  properly  owners.  Of  this,  death,  when  it  overtakes 
us,  will  not  rob  us ;  but  from  all  else  it  will  eject  us,  though 
against  our  will.  For  it  is  for  the  support  of  life  that  we  all 
have  received  what  we  possess ;  and  after  enjoying  merely  the 
use  of  it,  each  one  departs,  obtaining  from  life  a  brief  remem- 
brance. For  this  is  the  end  of  all  prosperity ;  this  is  the  con- 
clusion of  the  good  things  of  this  life.  Well,  then,  does  the 
infant,  on  opening  its  eyes,  after  issuing  from  the  womb,  im- 

^  This  down  to  "lives"  is  quoted,  Miscellanies,  book  iv.  ch.  xxv.  p.  214, 
vol.  ii.  Ante-Nicene  Library. 


FROM  NIC  ETAS.  155 

mediately  begin  witli  crylno-,  not  with  laughter.  For  it  weeps, 
as  if  bewailing  life,  at  whose  hands  from  the  outset  it  tastes  of 
deadly  gifts.  For  immediately  on  being  born  its  hands  and 
feet  are  swaddled ;  and  swathed  in  bonds  it  takes  the  breast. 
O  introduction  to  life,  precursor  of  death  !  The  child  has  but 
just  entered  on  life,  and  straightway  there  is  put  upon  it  the 
raiment  of  the  dead  :  for  nature  reminds  those  that  are  born 
of  their  end.  Wherefore  also  the  child,  on  being  born,  wails, 
as  if  crying  plaintively  to  its  mother.  Why,  O  mother, 
didst  thou  bring  me  forth  to  this  life,  in  which  prolongation 
of  life  is  progress  to  death?  Why  hast  thou  brought  me 
into  this  troubled  world,  in  which,  on  being  born,  swaddling 
bands  are  my  first  experience  ?  Why  hast  thou  delivered 
me  to  such  a  life  as  this,  in  which  both  a  pitiable  youth 
wastes  away  before  old  age,  and  old  age  is  shunned  as  under 
the  doom  of  death?  Dreadful,  O  mother,  is  the  course  of 
life,  which  has  death  as  the  goal  of  the  runner.  Bitter  is  the 
road  of  life  we  travel,  with  the  grave  as  the  wayfarer's  inn. 
Perilous  the  sea  of  life  we  sail ;  for  it  has  Hades  as  a  pirate 
to  attack  us.  Man  alone  is  born  in  all  respects  naked,  with- 
out a  weapon  or  clothing  born  with  him  ;  not  as  being  inferior 
to  the  other  animals,  but  that  nakedness  and  your  bringing 
nothing  with  you  may  produce  thought ;  and  that  thought 
may  bring  out  dexterity,  expel  sloth,  introduce  the  arts  for 
the  supply  of  our  needs,  and  beget  variety  of  contrivances. 
For,  naked,  man  is  full  of  contrivances,  being  pricked  on  by 
his  necessity,  as  by  a  goad,  how  to  escape  rains,  liow  to  elude 
cold,  how  to  fence  off  blows,  how  to  till  the  earth,  how  to 
terrify  wild  beasts,  how  to  subdue  the  more  powerful  of  them. 
AVetted  with  rain,  he  contrived  a  roof ;  having  suffered  from 
cold,  he  invented  clothing;  being  struck,  he  constructed  a 
breastplate;  bleeding  his  hands  with  the  thorns  in  tilhng 
the  ground,  he  availed  himself  of  the  help  of  tools;  in  his 
naked  state  liable  to  become  a  prey  to  wild  beasts,  he  dis- 
covered from  his  fear  an  art  which  frightened  what  frightened 
him.  Nakedness  begat  one  accomplishment  after  another  ; 
so  that  even  his  nakedness  was  a  gift  and  a  master-favour. 
Accordingly,  Job  also  being  made  naked  of  wealth,  posses- 


156  FRAGMENTS. 

sions,  of  the  blessing  of  children,  of  a  numerous  offspring,  and 
having  lost  everything  in  a  short  time,  uttered  this  grateful 
exclamation :  "  Naked  came  I  out  of  the  womb,  naked  also 
shall  I  depart  thither ;" — to  God,  that  is,  and  to  that  blessed 
lot  and  rest. 

II. FROM  THE   SAME. 

Job  xxiv.  7.  Calmness  is  a  thing  which,  of  all  other 
things,  is  most  to  be  prized.  As  an  example  of  this,  the 
word  proposes  to  us  the  blessed  Job.  For  it  is  said  of  him, 
"  What  man  is  like  Job,  who  drinketh  up  scorning  like 
water?"  For  truly  enviable,  and,  in  my  judgment,  worthy 
of  all  admiration,  a  man  is,  if  he  has  attained  to  such  a 
degree  of  long-suffering  as  to  be  able  with  ease  to  grapple 
with  the  pain,  truly  keen,  and  not  easily  conquered  by  every- 
body, which  arises  from  being  wronged. 

III. FROM   NICETAS'    CATENA   ON   MATTHEW. 

Matt.  v.  42.  Alms  are  to  be  given,  but  with  judgment,  and 
to  the  deserving,  that  we  may  obtain  a  recompense  from  the 
Most  High.  But  woe  to  those  who  have  and  who  take  under 
false  pretences,  or  who  are  able  to  help  themselves  and  want 
to  take  from  others.  For  he  who  has,  and,  to  carry  out  false 
pretences  or  out  of  laziness,  takes,  shall  be  condemned. 

IV. FROM   THE   SAME. 

Matt.  xiii.  31,  32.  The  word  which  proclaims  the  king- 
dom of  heaven  is  sharp  and  pungent  as  mustard,  and  re- 
presses bile,  that  is,  anger,  and  checks  inflammation,  that  is, 
pride ;  and  from  this  word  the  soul's  true  health  and  eternal 
soundness^  flow.  To  such  increased  size  did  the  growth  of 
the  word  come,  that  the  tree  which  sprang  from  it  (that  is, 
the  Church  of  Christ  established  over  the  whole  earth)  filled 
the  world,  so  that  the  fowls  of  the  air — that  is,  divine 
angels  and  lofty  souls — dwelt  in  its  branches. 


FROM  THE  CATENA  ON  LUKE.  157 


V. FROM   THE   SAME. 

Matt.  xii.  46.  A  pearl,  and  tliat  pellucid  and  of  purest  ray, 
is  Jesus,  whom  of  the  lightning  flash  of  Divinity  the  Virgin 
bore.  For  as  the  pearl,  produced  in  flesh  and  the  oyster- 
shell  and  moisture,  appears  to  be  a  body  moist  and  transpa- 
rent, full  of  light  and  spirit ;  so  also  God  the  Word,  incar- 
nate, is  intellectual  light,^  sending  Plis  rays,  through  a  body 
luminous  and  moist. 


(III.) 

FEOM  THE  CATEXA  ON  LUKE,  EDITED  BY 

COiiDEIilUS. 

Luke  iii.  22.  God  here  assumed  the  "  likeness  "  not  of  a 
man,  but  "  of  a  dove,"  because  He  wished,  by  a  new  appari- 
tion of  the  Spirit  in  the  likeness  of  a  dove,  to  declare  His 
simplicity  and  majesty. 

Luke  xvi.  17.  Perhaps  by  the  iota  and  tittle  His  right- 
eousness cries,  "  If  ye  come  right  unto  me,  I  will  also  come 
right  to  you ;  but  if  crooked,  I  also  will  come  crooked, 
saith  the  Lord  of  hosts  ;"  intimating  that  the  ways  of  sinners 
are  intricate  and  croolced.  For  the  way  right  and  agree- 
able to  nature  which  is  intimated  by  the  iota  of  Jesus,  is  His 
goodness,  which  constantly  directs  those  who  believe  from 
hearing.  "  There  shall  not,  therefore,  pass  from  the  law 
one  iota  or  one  tittle,"  neither  from  the  riiiht  and  irood  the 
mutual  promises,  nor  from  the  crooked  and  unjust  the 
punishment  assigned  to  them.  "  For  the  Lord  doeth  good 
to  the  good,  but  those  who  turn  aside  into  crooked  ways 
God  will  lead  with  the  workers  of  iniquity  "  (Ps.  cxxv.  4). 
^  (fuTog  here  Las  probably  taken  the  place  of  (puTimov. 


158  FRAGMENTS. 

(IV.) 
FEOM  THE  BOOKS  OF  THE  HYPOTYPOSES. 

FROM   BOOK   III. — IN   (ECUMENIUS    ON   1   COR.   XI.    10, 

"  Because  of  the  angels."  By  the  angels  he  means  right- 
eous and  virtuous  men.  Let  her  be  veiled  then,  that  she  may 
not  lead  them  to  stumble  into  fornication.  For  the  real 
angels  in  heaven  see  her  though  veiled. 

BOOK   IV. — IN   THE   SAME    ON   2   COR.   V.    16. 

"  And  if  we  have  known  Christ  after  the  flesh."  As 
"  after  the  flesh  "  in  our  case  is  being  in  the  midst  of  sins, 
and  being  out  of  them  is  "  not  after  the  flesh ;  "  so  also 
"  after  the  flesh  "  in  the  case  of  Christ  was  His  subjection 
to  natural  affections,  and  His  not  being  subject  to  them  is  to 
be  "  not  after  the  flesh."  But,  he  says,  as  He  was  released, 
so  also  are  we. 

BOOK   IV. — IN   THE   SAME   ON   2   COR.   VI.    11. 

"  Our  heart  is  enlarged,"  to  teach  you  all  things.  But  ye 
are  straitened  in  your  own  bowels,  that  is,  in  love  to  God,  in 
which  ye  ought  to  love  me. 

FROM  BOOK  V. IN  THE  SAME  ON  GAL.  V.  24. 

"  And  they  that  are  Christ's  [have  crucified]  the  flesh." 
And  why  mention  one  aspect  of  virtue  after  another  ?  For 
there  are  some  who  have  crucified  themselves  as  far  as  the 
passions  are  concerned,  and  the  passions  as  far  as  respects 
themselves.  According  to  this  interpretation  the  "  and  "  is 
not  superfluous.  "And  they  that  are  Christ's" — that  is, 
striving  after  Him — "  have  crucified  their  own  flesh." 


o 


FROM  THE  IIYPOTYPOSES.  159 

FROir   BOOK   V. — IN  MOSCHUS'   SPIRITUAL  MEADOW, 

CUAP.    17C. 

Yes,  truly,  the  apostles  were  baptized,  as  Clement  the 
Stromatist  relates  in  the  fifth  book  of  the  Hypoty poses.  For, 
in  explaining  the  apostolic  statement,  "  I  thank  God  that 
I  baptized  none  of  you,"  he  says,  Christ  is  said  to  have 
baptized  Peter  alone,  and  Peter  Andrew,  and  Andrew  John, 
and  they  James  and  the  rest. 

FROM  BOOK   VI. — IN   EUSEBIUS'   ECCLESIASTICAL 
HISTORY,   II.   1. 

Now  Clement,  writing  in  the  sixth  book  of  the  Hypoty- 
poses,  makes  this  statement.  For  he  says  that  Peter  and 
James  and  John,  after  the  Saviour's  ascension,  though  pre- 
eminently honoured  by  the  Lord,  did  not  contend  for  glory, 
but  made  James  the  Just,  bishop  of  Jerusalem. 

FROM   THE   SAME. — IN   EUSEBIUS'   ECCLESIASTICAL 
HISTORY,    II.   15. 

So,  then,  through  the  visit  of  the  divine  word  to  them,  the 
power  of  Simon  was  extinguished,  and  immediately  was  de- 
stroyed along  with  the  man  himself.  And  such  a  ray  of 
godliness  shone  forth  on  the  minds  of  Peter's  hearers,  that 
they  were  not  satisfied  with  the  once  hearing  or  with  the 
unwritten  teaching  of  the  divine  proclamation,  but  with  all 
manner  of  entreaties  importuned  Mark,  to  whom  the  Gospel 
is  ascribed,  he  being  the  companion  of  Peter,  that  he  would 
leave  in  writing  a  record  of  the  teaching  which  had  been 
delivered  to  them  verbally ;  and  did  not  let  the  man  alone 
till  they  prevailed  upon  him ;  and  so  to  them  we  owe  the 
scripture  called  the  "  Gospel  by  ^I;u'k."  On  learning  what 
had  been  done,  through  the  revelation  of  the  Spirit,  it  is  said 
that  the  apostle  was  delighted  with  the  enthusiasm  of  the 
men,  and  sanctioned  the  composition  for  reading  in  the 
churches.  Clemens  gives  the  narrative  in  the  sixth  book  of 
the  Hypotyposes. 


160  FRAGMENTS. 

FEOM   THE   SAME. — IN   EUSEBIUS,   IBID. 

Then,  also,  as  the  divine  Scripture  says,  Herod,  on  the 
execution  of  James,  seeing  that  what  was  done  pleased  the 
Jews,  laid  hands  also  on  Peter;  and  having  put  him  in 
chains,  would  have  presently  put  him  to  death,  had  not  an 
angel  in  a  divine  vision  appeared  to  him  by  night,  and 
wondrously  releasing  him  from  his  bonds,  sent  him  away  to 
the  ministry  of  preaching. 

FROM   THE   SAME. — IN   EUSEBIUS'   ECCLESIASTICAL 
HISTORY,  VI.  14. 

And  in  the  Hypotyposes,  in  a  word,  he  has  made  abbre- 
viated narratives  of  the  whole  testamentary  Scripture ;  and 
has  not  passed  over  the  disputed  books, — I  mean  Jude  and 
the  rest  of  the  Catholic  Epistles  and  Barnabas,  and  what 
is  called  the  Kevelation  of  Peter.  And  he  says  that  the 
Epistle  to  the  Hebrews  is  Paul's,  and  was  written  to  the 
Hebrews  in  the  Hebrew  language ;  but  that  Luke,  having 
carefully  translated  it,  gave  it  to  the  Greeks,  and  hence  the 
same  colouring  in  the  expression  is  discoverable  in  this 
epistle  and  the  Acts  ;  and  that  the  name  "  Paul  an  apostle  " 
was  very  properly  not  prefixed,  for,  he  says,  that  writing  to 
the  Hebrews,  who  were  prejudiced  against  him  and  suspected, 
he  with  great  wisdom  did  not  repel  them  in  the  beginning  by 
putting  down  his  name. 

FROM   BOOK  VII. 

1  Tim.  ii.  G.  "In  his  times;"  that  is,  when  men  were  in 
a  condition  of  fitness  for  faith. 

1  Tim.  iii.  16.  "  Was  seen  of  angels."  O  mystery ! 
The  angels  saw  Christ  while  He  was  with  us,  not  having 
seen  Him  before.     Not  as  by  men. 

1  Tim.  V.  8.  "  And  especially  those  of  his  own  house." 
He  provides  for  his  own  and  those  of  his  own  house,  who 
not  only  provides  for  his  relatives,  but  also  for  himself,  by 
extirpating  the  passions. 


FROM  THE  HYFOTYFOSES.  161 

1  Tim.  V.  10.  "If  she  have  washed  the  feet  of  saints;" 
that  is,  if  she  lias  performed  without  shame  tlie  meanest 
offices  for  the  saints. 

1  Tim.  V.  21.  "Without  prejudice;"^  that  is,  without 
falHng  under  the  doom  and  punishment  of  disobedience 
through  making  any  false  step. 

1  Tim.  vi.  13.  "  Who  witnessed  before  Pontius  Pilate." 
For  He  testified  by  what  he  did  that  He  was  Christ  the  Son 
of  God. 

2  Tim.ii.  2.  "By  many  witnesses;"'  that  is,  the  law  and 
the  prophets.  For  there  the  apostle  made  witnesses  of  his 
own  preaching. 


BOOK   VII. — IN  EUSEBIUS    ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY,  II.  1. 

To  James  the  Just,  and  John  and  Peter,  the  Lord  after 
His  resurrection  imparted  knowledge  {ri]v  r^vwaiv).  These 
imparted  it  to  the  rest  of  the  apostles,  and  the  rest  of  the 
apostles  to  the  Seventy,  of  whom  Barnabas  was  one. 


IN  THE   SAME,  II.  2. 

And  of  this  James,  Clement  also  relates  an  anecdote 
worthy  of  remembrance  in  the  seventh  book  of  the  Ilypo- 
typoses,  from  a  tradition  of  his  predecessors.  He  says  that 
the  man  who  brought  him  to  trial,  on  seeing  him  bear  his 
testimony,  was  moved,  and  confessed  that  he  was  a  Christian 
himself.  Accordingly,  he  says,  they  were  both  led  away 
together,  and  on  the  way  the  other  asked  James  to  forgive 
him.  And  he,  considering  a  little,  said,  "  Peace  be  to  thee," 
and  kissed  him.     And  so  both  were  beheaded  together. 


SAME,  VI.  M. 

And  now,  as  the  blessed  Presbyter  used  to  say,  since  the 
Lord,  as  the  Apostle   of   the  Almighty,  was   sent  to  the 

^  'TTpoKpifistros,  "without  preferring  one  before  another." — A.  V. 
2  oix.    A.  V.  "tefore." 

li 


1C2  FRAGMENTS. 

Hebrews,  Paul,  as  having  been  sent  to  the  Gentiles,  did  not 
subscribe  himself  apostle  of  the  Hebrews,  out  of  modesty 
and  reverence  for  the  Lord,  and  because,  being  the  herald 
and  apostle  of  the  Gentiles,  his  writing  to  the  Hebrews  was 
something  over  and  above  [his  assigned  function]. 

SAME. 

Again,  in  the  same  books  Clement  has  set  down  a  tradition 
which  he  had  received  from  the  elders  before  him,  in  regard 
to  the  order  of  the  Gospels,  to  the  following  effect.  He  says 
that  the  Gospels  containing  the  genealogies  were  written  first, 
and  that  the  Gospel  according  to  Mark  was  composed  under 
the  followino;  circumstances  : 

Peter  having  preached  the  word  publicly  at  Rome,  and  by 
the  Spirit  proclaimed  the  gospel,  those  who  were  pjresent, 
who  were  numerous,  entreated  Mark,  inasmuch  as  he  had 
attended  him  from  an  early  period,  and  remembered  what 
had  been  said,  to  write  down  what  had  been  spoken.  On  his 
composing  the  Gospel,  he  handed  it  to  those  who  had  made 
the  request  to  him ;  which  coming  to  Peter's  knowledge,  he 
neither  hindered  nor  encouraged.  But  John,  the  last  of  all, 
seeing  that  what  was  corporeal  was  set  forth  in  the  Gospels, 
on  the  entreaty  of  his  intimate  friends,  and  inspired  by  the 
Spirit,  composed  a  spiritual  Gospel. 


(V.) 
FEOM  THE  BOOK  ON  PKOVIDENCE. 

IN  S.  MAXIMUS,  VOL.  II.  114  • 


Being  is  in  God.  God  is  divine  being,  eternal  and  with- 
out beginning,  incorporeal  and  illimitable,  and  the  cause  of 
what  exists.  Being  is  that  which  wholly  subsists.  Nature 
is  the  truth  of  things,  or  the  inner  reality  of  them.     Accord- 


FROM  THE  BOOK  "  ON  THE  SOUL:'  1C3 

ing  to  others,  it  is  the  production  of  what  has  come  to  exist- 
ence; and  according  to  others,  again,  it  is  the  providence 
of  God,  causing  the  being,  and  the  manner  of  being,  in  the 
things  which  are  produced. 

IN  THE  SAME,  P.  152. 

Willing  is  a  natural  power,  which  desires  what  is  in 
accordance  with  nature.  Willing  is  a  natural  appetency, 
corresponding  with  the  nature  of  the  rational  creature. 
Willing  is  a  natural  spontaneous  movement  of  the  self- 
determining  mind,  or  the  mind  voluntarily  moved  about 
anything.  Spontaneity  is  the  mind  moved  naturally,  or  an 
intellectual  self-determining  movement  of  the  soul. 


(VI.) 
FEOM  THE  BOOK  "  ON  THE  SOUL." 

FOUND   IN  MAXIMUS,    SERMON   53,    "  ON   THE   SOUL,"  P.  156, 
AND   ANTONIUS   MELISSA. 

Souls  that  breathe  free  of  all  things,  possess  life,  and 
though  separated  from  the  body,  and  found  possessed  of  a 
lonfjinjT  for  it,  are  borne  immortal  to  the  bosom  of  God :  as 
in  the  winter  season  the  vapours  of  the  earth  attracted  by 
the  sun's  rays  rise  to  him. 

FOUND  IN  THE  RAROCC  MS.  143,  FOL.  181,  V.   1,  CHAPTER 
"ON  CARE  FOR  THE  SOUL." 

All  souls  are  immortal,  even  those  of  the  wicked,  for  whom 
it  were  better  that  they  were  not  deathless.  For,  punished 
with  the  endless  vengeance  of  quenchless  fire,  and  not 
dying,  it  is  impossible  for  them  to  have  a  period  put  to 
their  misery. 


164  FRAGMENTS. 

(VII.) 
FEAGMENT  FEOM  THE  BOOK  "  ON  SLANDER." 

IN  ANTONIUS   MELISSA,  B.  II.  SERM.  69,  ON   "  SLANDERERS 

AND  INSULT."  ^ 

Never  be  afraid  of  the  slanderer  who  addresses  you.  But 
rather  say,  Stop,  brother ;  I  daily  commit  more  grievous 
errors,  and  how  can  I  judge  him?  For  you  will  gain  two 
things,  healing  with  one  plaster  both  yourself  and  your 
neighbour.  He  shows  what  is  really  evil.  Whence,  by  these 
arguments,  God  has  contrived  to  make  each  one's  disposition 
manifest. 


MAXIMUS,    SERMON   59,  P.    669 ;   JOHN   OF  DAMASCUS,   B.   II.  ; 
ANTONIUS   MELISSA,  B.  I.  SERM.  64,  AND  B.  II.  SERM.  87. 

It  is  not  abstaining  from  deeds  that  justifies  the  believer, 
but  purity  and  sincerity  of  thoughts. 


(VIII.) 
OTHER  FRAGMENTS  FROM  ANTONIUS  MELISSA. 

BOOK  I.  SERMON  17,  "  ON  CONFESSION." 

Repentance  then  becomes  capable  of  wiping  out  every  sin, 
when  on  the  occurrence  of  the  soul's  fault  it  admits  no  delay, 
and  does  not  let  the  impulse  pass  on  to  a  long  space  of  time. 
For  it  is  in  this  way  that  evil  will  be  unable  to  leave  a  trace 
in  us,  being  plucked  away  at  the  moment  of  its  assault  like 
a  newly  planted  plant. 

As  the  creatures  called  crabs  are  easy  to  catch,  from  their 
going  sometimes  forward  and  sometimes  backward ;  so  also 

^  The  evidence  on  -which  this  is  ascribed  to  Clement  is  very  slender. 


FROM  ANTONIUS  MELISSA.  165 

the  soul,  which  at  one  time  is  laughing,  at  another  weeping, 
and  at  another  giving  way  to  luxury,  can  do  no  good. 

He  who  is  sometimes  grieving,  and  is  sometimes  enjoying 
himself  and  lau2;hinnr  is  like  a  man  stoning  the  do£f  of 
voluptuousness  with  bread,  who  chases  it  in  appearance,  but 
in  fact  invites  it  to  remain  near  him. 

BOOK  I.  SERMON  51,  ON  TEAISE. 

Some  flatterers  were  congratulating  a  wise  man.     He  said 
to  them.  If  you  stop  praising  me,  I  think  myself  something 
great  after  your  departure ;  but  if  you  do  not  stop  praising 
me,  I  guess  my  own  impurity. 
.    Feigned  praise  is  worth  less  than  true  censure. 


BOOK  TI.  SERMON  46,  ON  THE  LAZY  AND  INDOLENT. 

To  the  weak  and  infirm,  what  is  moderate  appears  exces- 
sive. 


BOOK  II.  SERMON  55,  ON  TOtJR  NEIGHBOUR — THAT  YOU  ARE 
TO  BEAR  HIS  BURDENS,  ETC. 

The  reproof  that  is  given  with  knowledge  is  very  faithful. 
Sometimes  also  the  knowledfre  of  those  who  are  condemned 
is  found  to  be  the  most  perfect  demonstration. 


BOOK  II.  SERMON  71,  ON  THE  PROUD,  AND  THOSE 
DESIROUS  OF  VAINGLORY. 

To  the  man  who  exalts  and  magnifies  himself  is  attached 
the  quick  transition  and  the  fall  to  low  estate,  as  the  divine 
word  teaches. 


BOOK  II.  SERMON  87. 

Pure  speech  and  a  spotless  life  arc  the  throne  and  true 
temple  of  God. 


166  FRAGMENTS. 

(IX.) 
FEAGMENT  OF  THE  TREATISE  ON"  MAERIAGE. 

MAXIMUS,  SERMON   III.    P.    538,  ON  MODESTY  AND  CHASTITY. 
— JOHN  OF  DAMASCUS,  BOOK  III. — PARALLEL  CHAP.  27. 

It  is  not  only  fornication,  but  also  the  giving  in  marriage 
prematurely,  that  is  called  fornication  ;  when,  so  to  speak,  one 
not  of  ripe  age  is  given  to  a  husband,  either  of  her  o^n 
accord  or  by  her  parents. 


(X.) 
FRAGMENTS  OF  OTHER  LOST  BOOKS. 


MAXIMUS,  SERMON   2. — JOHN   OF   DAMASCUS,  II.   CHAP.  70. — 
ANTONIUS  MELISSA,  BOOK  I.  SERMON  52. 

Flattery  is  the  bane  of  friendship.  Most  men  are  accus- 
tomed to  pay  court  to  the  good  fortune  of  princes,  rather 
than  to  the  princes  themselves. 


MAXIMUS,    SERMON   13,  P.  571. — ANTONIUS   MELISSA,  SERMON 
32,  P.  45,  AND  SERMON  33,  P.  57. 

The  lovers  of  frugality  shun  luxury  as  the  bane  of  soul 
and  body.  The  possession  and  use  of  necessaries  has  nothing 
injurious  in  quality,  but  it  has  in  quantity  above  measure. 
Scarcity  of  food  is  a  necessary  benefit. 

MAXIMUS,  SERMON  52,  P    654. — ANTONIUS  MELISSA, 
BOOK  I.  SERMON  54. 

The  vivid  remembrance  of  death  is  a  check  upon  diet; 
and  when  the  diet  is  lessened,  the  passions  are  diminished 
along  with  it. 


GREEK  FRAGMENTS  IN  OXFORD  EDITION.     167 

MAXIMUS,  SERMON  55,  P.  661. 

Above  all,  Christians  are  not  allowed  to  correct  with  violence 
the  delinquencies  of  sins.  For  it  is  not  those  that  abstain 
from  wickedness  from  compulsion,  but  those  that  abstain  from 
choice,  that  God  crowns.  It  is  impossible  for  a  man  to  be 
steadily  good  except  by  his  own  choice.  For  he  that  is  made 
good  by  compulsion  of  another  is  not  good ;  for  he  is  not 
what  he  is  by  his  own  choice.  For  it  is  the  freedom  of  each 
one  that  makes  true  goodness  and  reveals  real  wickedness. 
Whence  through  these  dispositions  God  contrived  to  make 
His  own  disposition  manifest. 


(XL) 

Fr.AG3kIENTS  FOUND  m  GREEK  ONLY  IN  THE 
OXFOED  EDITION. 

FROM  THE  LOST  WORK  "  ON  THE  PASSOVER." 

Quoted  in  the  Paschal  Chronicle. 

Accordingly,  in  the  years  gone  by,  Jesus  went  to  eat  the 
passover  sacrificed  by  the  Jews,  keeping  the  feast.  But 
when  He  liad  preached,  He  who  was  the  Passover,  the  Lamb 
of  God,  led  as  a  sheep  to  the  slaughter,  presently  taught  His 
disciples  the  mystery  of  the  type  on  the  thirteenth  day,  on 
which  also  they  inquired,  "  Where  wilt  Thou  that  we  prepare 
for  Thee  to  eat  the  passover?"  (Matt.  xxvi.  17.)  It  was  on 
this  day,  then,  that  both  the  consecration  of  the  unleavened 
bread  and  the  preparation  for  the  feast  took  place.  Whence 
John  naturally  describes  the  disciples  as  already  previously 
prepared  to  have  their  feet  washed  by  the  Lord.  And  on  the 
following  day  our  Saviour  suffered.  He  who  was  the  Pass- 
over,— propitiously  sacrificed  by  the  Jews. 

THE  SAME. 

Suitably,  therefore,  to  the  fourteenth  day,  on  which  lie 


1G8  FRAGMENTS. 

also  suffered,  in  the  morning,  the  chief  priests  and  the 
scribe?,  who  brought  Him  to  Pilate,  did  not  enter  the 
Prietorium,  that  they  might  not  be  defiled,-  but  might  freely 
eat  the  passover  in  the  evening.  With  this  precise  deter- 
mination of  the  days  both  the  whole  Scriptures  agree,  and 
the  Gospels  harmonize.  The  resurrection  also  attests  it.  He 
certainly  rose  on  the  third  day,  which  fell  on  the  first  day  of 
the  weeks  of  harvest,  on  which  the  law  prescribed  that  the 
priest  should  offer  up  the  sheaf. 

PAKABLE  OF  THE  PRODIGAL  SON,  LUKE  XL,  IN  MACARIUS 
CHPvYSOCEPHALUS'  ORATION  ON  LUKE  XL,  ,  TOWARDS 
THE  CLOSE. 

What  choral  dance  and  high  festival  is  held  in  heaven, 
if  there  is  one  that  has  become  an  exile  and  a  fumtive  from 
the  life  led  under  the  Father,  knowing  not  that  those  who 
put  themselves  far  from  Him  shall  perish  ;  if  he  has  squan- 
dered the  gift,  and  substance,  and  inheritance  of  the  Father ; 
if  there  is  one  whose  faith  has  failed,  and  whose  hope  is 
spent,  by  rushing  along  with  the  Gentiles  into  the  same 
profligacy  of  debauchery ;  and  then,  famished  and  destitute, 
and  not  even  filled  with  what  the  swine  eat,  has  arisen  and 
come  to  his  Father ! ! 

But  the  kind  Father  waits  not  till  the  son  comes  to  Him. 
For  perchance  he  would  never  be  able  or  venture  to  approach, 
did  he  not  find  Him  gracious.  Wherefore,  when  he  merely 
wishing,  when  he  straightway  made  a  beginning,  when  he 
took  the  first  step,  while  he  was  yet  a  great  way  off,  He 
[the  Father]  was  moved  witli  compassion,  and  ran,  and  fell 
upon  his  neck  and  kissed  him.  And  then  the  son,  taking 
courage,  confessed  what  he  had  done. 

Wherefore  the  Father  bestows  on  him  the  glory  and  honour 
that  was  due  and  meet,  putting  on  him  the  best  robe,  the 
robe  of  immortality ;  and  a  ring,  a  royal  signet  and  divine 
seal, — impress  of  consecration,  signature  of  glory,  pledge  of 
testimony  (for  it  is  said,  "  He  hath  set  to  his  seal  that  God  is 
true,"  John  iii.   33)  ;   and  shoes,  not  those  perishable  ones 


GREEK  FRAGMENTS  IN  OXFORD  EDITION.     109 

which  he  that  hath  set  his  foot  on  holy  ground  is  bidden 
take  off,  nor  such  as  he  who  is  sent  to  preach  the  kingdom 
of  heaven  is  forbidden  to  put  on,  but  such  as  wear  not,  and 
are  suited  for  the  journey  to  heaven,  becoming  and  adorning 
the  heavenly  path,  such  as  unwashed  feet  never  put  on,  but 
those  which  are  washed  by  our  Teacher  and  Lord. 

Many,  truly,  are  the  shoes  of  the  sinful  soul,  by  which  it 
is  bound  and  cramped.  For  each  man  is  cramped  by  the 
cords  of  his  own  sins.  Accordingly,  Abraham  swears  to  the 
kinfT  of  Sodom,  "  I  will  not  take  of  all  that  is  thine,  from 
a  thread  to  a  shoe-latchet "  (Gen.  xiv.  23).  On  account  of 
these  being  defiled  and  polluted  on  the  earth,  every  kind  of 
wrong  and  selfishness  engrosses  life.  As  the  Lord  reproves 
Israel  by  Amos,  saying,  "  For  three  iniquities  of  Israel,  yea, 
for  four,  I  will  not  turn  him  back ;  because  they  have  given 
away  the  righteous  for  silver,  and  the  needy  for  a  pair  of 
shoes,  which  tread  upon  the  dust  of  the  ground"  (Amos  ii.  6). 

2.  Now  the  shoes  which  the  Father  bids  the  servant  give 
to  the  repentant  son  who  has  betaken  himself  to  Him,  do  not 
impede  or  drag  to  the  earth  (for  the  earthly  tabernacle 
weighs  down  the  anxious  mind) ;  but  they  are  buoyant,  and 
ascending,  and  waft  to  heaven,  and  serve  as  such  a  ladder 
and  chariot  as  he  requires  who  has  turned  his  mind  towards 
the  Father.  For,  beautiful  after  being  first  beautifully  adorned 
with  all  these  things  without,  he  enters  into  the  gladness 
within.  For  "Bring  out"  was  said  by  Him  who  had  first 
said,  "  While  he  was  yet  a  great  way  off,  he  ran  and  fell 
upon  his  neck."  For  it  is  here^  that  all  the  preparation  for 
entrance  to  the  marriase  to  which  Ave  are  invited  must  be 
accomplished.  He,  then,  who  has  been  made  ready  to  enter 
will  say,  "  This  my  joy  is  fulfilled  "  (John  iii.  29).  But  the 
unlovely  and  unsightly  man  will  hear,  "  Friend,  how  camest 
thou  in  here,  without  having  a  wedding  garment?"  (Matt, 
xxii.  12.)  And  the  fat  and  unctuous  food, — the  delicacies 
abundant  and  sufficing  of  the  blessed, — the  fatted  calf  is 
killed  ;  which  is  also  again  spoken  of  as  a  lamb  (not  literally) ; 

^  We  have  ventured  to  substitute  IvroLvdu  instead  of  ivniSiv.  Ho  is 
showing  that  the  preparation  must  be  made  before  we  go  in. 


170  FRAGMENTS. 

that  no  one  may  suppose  it  small ;  but  it  is  the  great  and 
greatest.  For  not  small  is  "  the  Lamb  of  God  who  taketh 
away  the  sin  of  the  world"  (John  i.  29),  who  "was  led  as  a 
sheep  to  the  slaughter,"  the  sacrifice  full  of  marrow,  all  whose 
fat,  according  to  the  sacred  law,  was  the  Lord's.  For  He 
was  wholly  devoted  and  consecrated  to  the  Lord ;  so  well 
grown,  and  to  such  excessive  size,  as  to  reach  and  extend 
over  all,  and  to  fill  those  who  eat  Him  and  feed  upon  Him. 
For  He  is  both  flesh  and  bread,  and  has  given  Himself  as 
both  to  us  to  be  eaten. 

To  the  sons,  then,  who  come  to  Him,  the  Father  gives  the 
calf,  and  it  is  slain  and  eaten.  But  those  who  do  not  come 
to  Him  He  pursues  and  disinherits,  and  is  found  to  be  a 
most  powerful  bull.  Here,  by  reason  of  His  size  and  prowess, 
it  is  said  of  Him,  "His  glory  is  as  that  of  an  unicorn" 
(Num.  xxiii.  22).  And  the  prophet  Habakkuk  sees  Him 
bearing  horns,  and  celebrates  His  defensive  attitude — "horns 
in  His  hands"  (Hab.  iii.  4).  Wherefore  the  sign  shows 
His  power  and  authority, — horns  that  pierce  on  both  sides, 
or  rather,  on  all  sides,  and  through  everything.  And  those 
who  eat  are  so  strengthened,  and  retain  such  strength  from 
the  life-giving  food  in  them,  that  they  themselves  are  stronger 
than  their  enemies,  and  are  all  but  armed  with  the  horns  of 
a  bull ;  as  it  is  said,  "  In  thee  shall  we  butt  our  enemies " 
(Ps.  xliv.  5). 

3.  Gladness  there  is,  and  music,  and  dances ;  although  the 
elder  son,  who  had  ever  been  with  and  ever  obedient  to  the 
Father,  takes  it  ill,  when  he  who  never  had  himself  been 
dissipated  or  profligate  sees  the  guilty  one  made  happy. 

Accordingly  the  Father  calls  him,  saying,  "  Son,  thou  art 
ever  with  me."  And  what  greater  joy  and  feast  and  festivity 
can  be  than  being  continually  with  God,  standing  by  His 
side  and  serving  Him  ?  "  And  all  that  is  mine  is  thine." 
And  blessed  is  the  lieir  of  God,  for  whom  the  Father  holds 
possession, — the  faithful,  to  whom  the  whole  world  of  posses- 
sions belongs. 

"  It  was  meet  that  we  should  be  glad,  and  rejoice ;  for  thy 
brother  was  dead,  and  is  alive  again."     Kind  Father,  who 


GREEK  FRAGMENTS  IN  OXFORD  EDITION.      171 

givest  all  things  life,  and  raisest  the  dead.  "  And  was 
lost,  and  is  found."  And  "  blessed  is  the  man  M'hom  Thou 
hast  chosen  and  accepted"  (Ps.  Ixiv.  4),  and  Nvhom  having 
sought.  Thou  dost  find.  "  Blessed  are  those  whose  iniquities 
are  foi'given,  whose  sins  are  covered"  (Ps.  xxxii.  1).  It  is 
for  man  to  repent  of  sins ;  but  let  this  be  accompanied  with 
a  chanrre  that  will  not  be  checked.  For  he  who  does  not 
act  so  shall  be  put  to  shame,  because  he  has  acted  not  with 
his  whole  heart,  but  in  haste. 

And  it  is  ours  to  flee  to  God.  And  let  us  endeavour  after 
this  ceaselessly  and  energetically.  For  He  says,  "  Come 
unto  me,  all  ye  that  labour  and  are  heavy  laden,  and  I  will 
give  you  rest "  (Matt.  xi.  28).  And  prayer  and  confession 
with  humility  are  voluntary  acts.  Wherefore  it  is  enjoined, 
"  First  tell  thy  sins,  that  thou  mayest  be  justified "  (Isa. 
xliii.  26).  "What  afterwards  we  shall  obtain,  and  what  we 
shall  be,  it  is  not  for  us  to  judge. 

4.  Such  is  the  strict  meaning  of  the  parable.^ 
The  repentant  son  came  to  the  pitying  Father,  never  hoping 
for  these  things, — the  best  robe,  and  the  ring,  and  the  shoes, 
— or  to  taste  the  fatted  calf,  or  to  share  in  gladness,  or  enjoy 
music  and  dances ;  but  he  would  have  been  contented  with 
obtainino;  what  in  his  own  estimation  he  deemed  himself 
worth.  "  Make  me,"  he  had  made  up  his  mind  to  say,  "  as 
one  of  thy  hired  servants."  But  when  he  saw  the  Father's 
welcome  meeting  him,  he  did  not  say  this,  but  said  what  he 
had  in  his  mind  to  say  first,  "Father,  I  have  sinned  against 
Heaven,  and  before  thee."  And  so  both  his  humility  and  his 
accusation  became  the  cause  of  justification  and  glory.  For 
the  righteous  man  condemns  himself  in  his  first  words.  So 
also  the  publican  departed  justified  rather  than  the  Pharisee. 
The  son,  then,  knew  not  either  what  he  was  to  obtain,  or  how 
to  take  or  use  or  put  on  himself  the  things  given  him  ;  since  he 
did  not  take  the  robe  himself,  and  put  it  on.  But  it  is  said, 
"  Put  it  on  him."     He  did  not  himself  put  the  ring  on  his 

^  Here  Grabe  notes  that  what  follows  is  a  new  exposition  of  the 
parable,  and  is  by  another  and  a  later  hand,  as  is  shown  by  the  refuta- 
tion of  Novatus  towards  the  end. 


172  FRAGMENTS. 

iincer,  but  those  who  were  bidden  "Put  a  rinn;  on  his  hand." 
Nor  did  he  put  the  shoes  on  himself,  but  it  was  they  who 
heard,  "  and  shoes  on  his  feet." 

And  these  things  were  perhaps  incredible  to  him  and  to 
others,  and  unexpected  before  they  took  place ;  but  gladly 
received  and  praised  were  the  gifts  with  which  he  was  pre- 
sented. 

5.  The  parable  exhibits  this  thought,  that  the  exercise  of 
the  faculty  of  reason  has  been  accorded  to  each  man.  Where- 
fore the  prodigal  is  introduced,  demanding  from  his  father 
his  portion,  that  is,  of  the  state  of  mind,  endowed  by  reason. 
For  the  possession  of  reason  is  granted  to  all,  in  order  to  the 
pursuit  of  what  is  good,  and  the  avoidance  of  what  is  bad. 
But  many  who  are  furnished  by  God  with  this  make  a  bad 
use  of  the  knowledge  that  has  been  given  them,  and  land  in 
the  profligacy  of  evil  practices,  and  wickedly  waste  the  sub- 
stance of  reason, — the  eye  on  disgraceful  sights,  the  tongue  on 
blasphemous  words,  the  smell  on  foetid  licentious  excesses  of 
pleasures,  the  mouth  on  swinish  gluttony,  the  hands  on  thefts, 
the  feet  on  running  into  plots,  the  thoughts  on  impious 
counsels,  the  inclinations  on  indulgence  on  the  love  of  ease, 
the  mind  on  brutish  pastime.  They  preserve  nothing  of  the 
substance  of  reason  unsquandered.  Such  an  one,  therefore, 
Christ  represents  in  the  parable,  —  as  a  rational  creature, 
with  his  reason  darkened,  and  asking  from  the  Divine  Being 
what  is  suitable  to  reason ;  then  as  obtaining  from  God,  and 
making  a  wicked  use  of  what  had  been  given,  and  especially 
of  the  benefits  of  baptism,  which  had  been  vouchsafed  to 
him ;  whence  also  lie  calls  him  a  prodigal ;  and  then,  after 
the  dissipation  of  what  had  been  given  him,  and  again  his 
restoration  by  repentance,  [tie  represents]  the  love  of  God 
shown  to  him. 

6.  For  He  says,  "  Bring  hither  the  fatted  calf,  kill  it,  and 
let  us  eat  and  be  merry  ;  for  this  my  son  " — a  name  of  nearest 
relationship,  and  significative  of  what  is  given  to  the  faithful 
— "was  dead  and  lost," — an  expression  of  extremest  aliena- 
tion ;  for  what  is  more  alien  to  the  living  than  the  lost  and 
dead  ?     For  neither  can  be  possessed  any  more.     But  having 


GREEK  FRAGMENTS  IN  OXFORD  EDITION.      173 

from  the  nearest  relationship  fallen  to  extremest  alienation, 
again  by  repentance  he  returned  to  near  relationship.  For 
it  is  said,  "  Put  on  him  the  best  robe,"  -svhich  was  his  the 
moment  he  obtained  baptism.  I  mean  the  glory  of  baptism, 
the  remission  of  sins,  and  the  communication  of  the  other 
blessings,  which  he  obtained  immediately  he  had  touched 
the  font. 

"  And  put  a  ring  on  his  hand."  Here  is  the  mystery  of 
the  Trinity;  which  is  the  seal  impressed  on  those  who  believe. 

"  And  put  shoes  on  his  feet,"  for  "  the  preparation  of  the 
gospel  of  peace  "  (Eph.  vi.  15),  and  the  whole  course  that 
leads  to  good  actions. 

7.  But  whom  Christ  finds  lost,  after  sin  committed  since 
baptism,  those  Novatus,  enemy  of  God,  resigns  to  destruction. 
Do  not  let  us  then  reckon  any  fault  if  we  repent ;  guard- 
ing against  falling,  let  us,  if  we  have  fallen,  retrace  our 
steps.  And  while  dreading  to  offend,  let  us,  after  offend- 
ing, avoid  despair,  and  be  eager  to  be  confirmed ;  and  on 
sinl-.ing,  let  us  haste  to  rise  up  again.  Let  us  obey  the  Lord, 
who  calls  to  us,  "  Come  unto  me,  all  ye  that  labour,  and  I 
will  give  you  rest "  (Matt.  xi.  28).  Let  us  employ  the  gift 
of  reason  for  actions  of  prudence.  Let  us  learn  now  absti- 
nence from  what  is  wicked,  that  we  may  not  be  forced  to 
learn  in  the  future.  Let  us  employ  life  as  a  training  school 
for  what  is  good ;  and  let  us  be  roused  to  the  hatred  of  sin. 
Let  us  bear  about  a  deep  love  for  the  Creator  ;  let  us  cleave 
to  Him  with  our  whole  heart  ;  let  us  not  wickedly  waste  the 
substance  of  reason,  like  the  prodigal.  Let  us  obtain  the 
joy  laid  up,  in  which  Paul  exulting,  exclaimed,  "  Who  shall 
separate  us  from  the  love  of  Christ?"  (Rom.  viii.  35.)  To 
Him  belongs  glory  and  honour,  with  the  Father  and  the  Holy 
Spirit,  world  without  end.     Amen. 


IN  MACARIUS  CHRYSOCErnALrs'  ORAT.  VIII.  ON  MATT.  VIII., 
AND   BOOK   VII.    ON   LUKE   XIII. 

Therefore  God  docs  not  here  take  the  semblance  of  man, 
but  of  a  dove,  because  He  wished  to  show  the  simplicity  and 


174  FRAGMENTS. 

gentleness  of  the  new  manifestation  of  the  Spirit  by  tlie 
likeness  of  the  dove.  For  the  law  was  stern,  and  punished 
with  tlie  sword  ;  but  grace  is  joyous,  and  trains  by  the  word 
of  meekness.  Hence  the  Lord  also  says  to  the  apostles, 
who  said  that  He  should  punish  with  fire  those  who  would 
not  receive  Him,  after  the  manner  of  Elias  :  "  Ye  know  not 
what  manner  of  spirit  ye  are  of  "  (Luke  ix.  55). 

FE03I    THE   SAME. — BOOK  XIII.   CHAP.   IX. 

Possibly  by  the  "  iota  and  the  tittle "  His  righteousness 
exclaims,  "  If  ye  come  right  to  me,  I  also  will  come  right  to 
you  ;  if  ye  walk  crooked,  I  also  will  walk  crooked,  saith  the 
Lord  of  hosts  "  (Lev.  xxvi.  24),  alluding  to  the  offences  of 
sinners  under  the  name  of  crooked  ways.  For  the  straight 
way,  and  that  according  to  nature,  which  is  pointed  out  by 
the  iota  of  Jesus,  is  His  goodness,  which  is  immoveable 
towards  those  who  have  obediently  believed.  There  shall 
not  then  pass  away  from  the  law  neither  the  iota  nor  the  tittle  ; 
that  is,  neither  the  promise  that  applies  to  the  straight  in 
the  way,  nor  the  punishment  threatened  against  those  that 
diverge.  For  the  Lord  is  good  to  the  straight  in  the  way  ; 
but  "  those  that  turn  aside  after  their  crooked  ways  He  shall 
lead  forth  with  those  that  work  iniquity "  (Ps.  cxxv.  5). 
"  And  with  the  innocent  He  is  innocent,  and  with  the  fro- 
ward  He  is  fro  ward  "  (Ps.  xviii.  27)  ;  and  to  the  crooked  He 
sends  crooked  ways. 

His  own  luminous  image  God  impressed  as  with  a  seal,  even 
the  greatest, — on  man  made  in  His  likeness,  that  he  might 
be  ruler  and  lord  over  all  things,  and  that  all  things  might 
serve  him.  Wherefore  God  judges  man  to  be  wholly  His, 
and  His  own  image.  He  is  invisible  ;  but  His  image,  man, 
is  visible.  Whatever  one,  then,  does  to  man,  whether  good 
or  bad,  is  referred  to  Himself.  Wherefore  from  Him  judg- 
ment shall  proceed,  appointing  to  all  according  to  desert; 
for  He  will  avenge  His  own  image. 


FEAGMENTS  NOT  IN  OXFORD  EDITION.       175 


(XII.) 

FRAGMENTS  NOT  GIVEN  IN  THE  OXFOED 

EDITION. 

IN  ANASTASIUS  SINAITA,  QUEST.  90. 

As  it  Is  possible  even  now  for  man  to  form  men,  accord- 
ing to  the  ori2:inal  formation  of  Adam,  lie  no  lonirer  now 
creates,  on  account  of  His  having  granted  once  for  all  to  man 
the  power  of  generating  men,  saying  to  our  nature,  "  In- 
crease, and  multiply,  and  replenish  the  earth"  (Gen.  i.  28). 
So  also,  by  His  omnipotent  and  omniscient  power,  lie 
arranged  that  the  dissolution  and  death  of  our  bodies  should 
be  effected  by  a  natural  sequence  and  order,  through  the 
change  of  their  elements,  in  accordance  with  His  divine 
knowledge  and  comprehension. 

JO.VNNES  VECCUS,  PATRIARCH  OF  CONSTANTINOPLE,  ON  THE 
PROCESSION  OF  THE  SPIRIT.  IN  LEO  ALLATIUS,  VOL. 
I.  P.  248. 

Further,  Clement  the  Stromatist,  in  the  various  definitions 
which  he  framed,  that  they  might  guide  the  man  desirous  of 
studying  theology  in  every  dogma  of  religion,  defining  what 
spirit  is,  and  how  it  is  called  spirit,  says :  "  Spirit  is  a  sub- 
stance, subtle,  immaterial,  and  which  issues  forth  without 
form." 


from  the  unpublished  disputation  against  ico- 
noclasts, of  nicephorus  of  constantinople  ; 
edited  in  greek  and  latin  by  le  nourry  in  his 
apparatus  to  the  library  of  the  fathers,  vol. 
i.  p.  1334  a.b.  from  clement  the  presbyter  of 
Alexandria's  book  against  judaizers. 

Solomon    the  son  of   David,  in   the  books    styled  "  The 
Eeigns  of   the  Kings,"  comprehending  not  only  that   the 


176  FRAGMENTS. 

structure  of  tlie  true  temple  was  celestial  and  spiritual,  but 
had  also  a  reference  to  the  flesh,  which  He  who  was  both  the 
son  and  Lord  of  David  was  to  build  up,  both  for  His  own 
presence,  where,  as  a  living  image.  He  resolved  to  make  His 
shrine,  and  for  the  church  that  was  to  rise  up  through  the 
union  of  faith,  says  expressly,  "  Will  God  in  very  deed  dwell 
with  men  on  the  earth?"  (1  Kings  viii.  27.) 

He  dwells  on  the  earth  clothed  in  flesh,  and  His  abode 
with  men  is  effected  by  the  conjunction  and  harmony  which 
obtains  among  the  righteous,  and  which  build  and  rear  a 
new  temple.  For  the  righteous  are  the  earth,  being  still 
encompassed  with  the  earth ;  and  earth,  too,  in  comparison 
with  the  greatness  of  the  Lord.  Thus  also  the  blessed  Peter 
hesitates  not  to  say,  "  Ye  also,  as  living  stones,  are  built  up, 
a  spiritual  house,  a  holy  temple,  to  offer  up  spiritual  sacri- 
fices, acceptable  to  God  by  Jesus  Christ"  (1  Pet.  ii.  5). 

And  with  reference  to  the  body,  which  by  circumscription 
He  consecrated  as  a  hallowed  place  for  Himself  upon  earth, 
He  said,  "  Destroy  this  temple,  and  in  three  days  I  will  raise 
it  up  again.  The  Jews  therefore  said,  In  forty-six  years 
was  this  temple  built,  and  wilt  thou  raise  it  up  in  three  days? 
But  He  spake  of  the  temple  of  His  body"  (John  ii.  19-21). 

FEOM  MS.  MARKED  2431  IN  THE  LIBRARY  OF  THE  MOST  CHRIS- 
TIAN KING. — IBID.  P.  1336  A.  FROM  THE  VERY  HOLY 
AND  BLESSED  CLEMENT,  PRESBYTER  OF  ALEXANDRIA, 
THE  STROMATIST's  BOOK  ON  PROVIDENCE. 

What  is  God  ?  "  God,"  as  the  Lord  saith,  "  is  a  Spirit." 
Now  spirit  is  properly  substance,  incorporeal,  and  uncircum- 
scribed.  And  that  is  incorporeal  which  does  not  consist 
of  a  body,  or  whose  existence  is  not  according  to  breadth, 
length,  and  depth.    And  that  is  uncircumscribed^  which  has 

1  With  an  exclamation  of  surprise  at  the  Latin  translator  giving  a 
translation  which  is  utterly  unintelligible,  Capperonn  amends  the  text, 
substituting  ov  tottos  ovoui  ru,  etc.,  for  ov  toTros  oiioiig  tottos  to,  etc.,  and 
translates  accordingly.  The  emendation  is  adopted,  with  the  exception 
of  the  T«,  instead  of  which  to  is  retained. 


FRAGMENTS  NOT  IN  OXFORD  EDITION.       177 

no  place,  \\\\\c\\  is  wholly  in  all,  and  in  each  entire,  and  the 
same  in  itself. 

FROM  THE  SAME  MS. — IBID.  1335  D. 

$u(ri9  (nature)  is  so  called  from  to  TrecpuKepac  (to  be  born). 
The  first  substance  is  everything  which  subsists  by  itself,  as 
a  stone  is  called  a  substance.  The  second  is  a  substance 
capable  of  increase,  as  a  plant  grows  and  decays.  The  third 
is  animated  and  sentient  substance,  as  animal,  horse.  The 
fourth  is  animate,  sentient,  rational  substance,  as  man. 
Wherefore  each  one  of  us  is  made  as  consisting  of  all,  having 
an  immaterial  soul  and  a  mind,  which  is  the  image  of  God. 

IN  JOHN  OF  DAMASCUS — PARALLEL. — VOL.  II.  R.  307. 

The  fear  of  God,  who  is  impassable,  is  free  of  perturbation. 
For  it  is  not  God  that  one  dreads,  but  the  falling  away  from 
God.  He  who  dreads  this,  dreads  falling  into  what  is  evil, 
and  dreads  what  is  evil.  And  he  that  fears  a  fall  wishes 
himself  to  be  immortal  and  passionless. 

THE  SA:ME,  p.  341. 

Let  there  be  a  law  asjainst  those  who  dare  to  look  at  things 
sacred  and  divine  irreverently,  and  in  a  way  unworthy  of 
God,  to  inflict  on  them  the  punishment  of  blindness. 

THE  SAME,  p.  G57. 

Universally,  the  Christian  is  friendly  to  solitude,  and  quiet, 
and  tranquillity,  and  peace. 

FROM  THE  CATENA  ON   THE  PENTATEUCH,  PUBLISHED  IN 
LATIN  BY  FRANCIS  ZEPIIYRUS,  P.  116. 

That  mystic  name  which  is  called  the  Tetra£rrammaton, 
by  which  alone  they  who  had  access  to  the  Holy  of  Holies 
were  protected,  is  pronounced  Jehovah,  which  means,  ''  Who 
is,  and  who  shall  be."     The  candlestick  which  stood  at  the 


178  .  FRAGMENTS. 

south  of  the  altar  signified  the  seven  planets,  whicli  seem  to 
us  to  revolve  around  the  meridian/  on  either  side  of  which 
rise  three  branches  ;  since  the  sun  also,  like  the  lamp,  bal- 
anced in  the  midst  of  the  planets  by  divine  wisdom,  illumines 
by  its  light  those  above  and  below.  On  the  other  side  of 
the  altar  Avas  situated  the  table  on  which  the  loaves  were 
displayed,  because  from  that  quarter  of  the  heaven  vital  and 
nourishincT  breezes  blow. 

FROM  J.  A.  Cramer's  catena  GRiECORUM  patrum  in  nov. 

TEST.       OXFORD  1810,   VOL.  III. 

On  Acts  vii.  24,  25.  The  mystics  say  that  it  was  by  his 
word  alone  that  Moses  slew  the  Egyptian  ;  as  certainly  after- 
wards it  is  related  in  the  Acts  that  [Peter]  slew  with  his 
word  those  who  kept  back  part  of  the  price  of  the  land,  and 
lied. 

THE  SAME,  VOL.  IV.  P.  '291. 

On  Rom.  viii.  38.  "  Or  life,  that  of  our  present  exist- 
ence," and  "death," — that  caused  by  the  assault  of  persecu- 
tors, and  "  angels,  and  principalities,  and  powers,"  apostate 
spirits. 

P.  369,  CHAP.  X.  3. 

And  having  neither  known  nor  done  the  requirement  of 
the  law,  what  they  conceived,  that  they  also  thought  that 
the  law  required.     And  they  did  not  believe  the  law,  as  pro- 
phesying, but  the  bare  word ;  and  followed  it  from  fear, 
but  not  with  their  disposition  and  in  faith. 

VOL.  VI.  p.  385. 

On  2  Cor.  V.  IG.  "  And  if  we  have  known  Christ  after 
the  flesh." 

And  so  far,  he  says,  no  one  any  longer  lives  after  the 
flesh.     For  that  is  not  life,  but  death.     For  Christ  also,  that 

^  See  Miscellanies,  Book  v.  chap.  vi.  p.  241,  Ante-Nicene  Library, 
which  is  plainly  the  source  from  which  this  extract  is  taken. 


FRAGMENTS  NOT  IN  OXFORD  EDITION.       179 

He  might  show  this,^  ceased  to  live  after  tlie  flesli.  How? 
Not  by  putting  off  the  body  !  Far  be  it !  For  with  it  as 
His  own  He  sliall  come,  the  Judge  of  all.  But  by  divesting 
Himself  of  physical  affections,  such  as  hunger,  and  thirst, 
and  sleep,  and  weariness.  For  now  He  has  a  body  incapable 
of  suffering  and  of  injury. 

As  "  after  the  flesli "  in  our  case  is  beinii  in  the  midst  of 
sins,  and  being  out  of  them  to  be  "  not  after  the  flesh  ; "  so 
also  after  the  flesh,  in  the  case  of  Christ,  was  His  subjection 
to  natural  affections,  and  not  to  be  subject  to  them  was  not 
to  be  "  after  the  flesh."  '•  But,"  he  says,  "  as  He  was  re- 
leased, so  also  are  we."  ^  Let  there  be  no  longer,  he  says, 
subjection  to  the  influences  of  the  flesh.  Thus  Clement,  the 
fourth  book  of  the  IJiipotyposes. 

FROM  THE  SAME,  P.  391. 

On  2  Cor.  vi.  11.  "  Our  heart  is  enlarged." 
For  as  heat  is  wont  to  expand,  so  also  love.  For  love  is 
a  thing  of  warmth.  As  if  he  would  say,  I  love  you  not  only 
with  mouth,  but  with  heart,  and  have  you  all  within.  "Where- 
fore he  says :  "  Ye  are  not  straitened  in  us,  since  desire 
itself  expands  the  soul."  "  Our  heart  is  enlarged"  to  teach 
you  all  things ;  "  but  ye  are  straitened  in  your  own  bowels," 
that  is,  in  love  to  God,  in  which  you  ought  to  love  me. 
Thus  Clement,  in  the  fourth  book  of  the  Hjjpotyposes. 

FROM  VOL,  VII.  r.  286. 

Heb.  i.  1.  "  At  sundry  times  and  divers  manners." 
Since  the  Lord,  being  the  Apostle  of  the  Almighty,  was 
sent  to  the  Hebrews,  it  was  out  of  modesty  that  Paul  did  not 

1  We  omit  iV/,  which  the  text  has  after  'hii^yi,  which  seems  to  indicate 
the  omission  of  a  clause,  but  as  it  stands  is  superfluous.  The  Latin 
translator  retains  it ;  and  according  to  his  rendering,  the  translation 
would  be,  "showed  that  He  ceased." 

-  This  extract,  down  to  "  are  we,"  has  abcady  been  given  among  the 
extracts  from  the  Hypoli/poses,  p.  158. 


180  FRAGMENTS. 

subscribe  himself  apostle  of  the  Plebrews,  from  reverence  for 
the  Lordj  and  because  he  -was  the  herald  and  apostle  of  the 
Gentiles,  and  wrote  the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews  in  addition 
[to  his  proper  work].-^ 


The  same  work  contains  a  passage  from  The  Instructor, 
book  i.  chap.  vi.  (Ante-Nicene  Library,  Clem.  Alex.  vol.  i.) 
The  passage  is  that  beginning,  "  For  the  blood  is  found  to  be," 
etc.,  p.  140,  down  to  "  potent  charms  of  affection,"  p.  146. 

Portions,  however,  are  omitted.  There  are  a  good  many 
various  readings ;  but  although  the  passnge  in  question,  as 
found  in  Cramer's  work,  is  printed  in  full  in  Migne's  edition, 
on  the  alleged  ground  of  the  considerable  variation  from  the 
text  of  Clement,  the  variation  is  not  such  as  to  make  a  trans- 
lation of  the  passage  as  found  in  Cramer  of  any  special 
interest  or  value. 

We  have  noted  the  following  readino;s : 

f^Lverai,  in  p.  141,  where,  the  verb  being  omitted,  we  have 
inserted  is :  There  is  an  obstruction,  etc. 

avpt'yja'i,  tubes,  instead  of  cr7]payr^/a<i  (hollows),  hollows  of 
the  breasts. 

r</£iTvia^ovaMV,  for  lyeirvtovacov,  neighbouring  (arteries). 

eVtX7;-v^et,  for  ifX7r€pi\i]'\}reL,  interruption  (such  as  this). 

aTTOKXrjpcoa-i'i  occurs  as  in  the  text,  for  which  the  emenda- 
tion u7To\7]pr]crc'i,  as  specified  in  the  note,  has  been  adopted. 

r/Tt9  earl,  omitted  here,  which  is  "  sweet  through  grace," 
is  supplied. 

P.  142. 
<-/u\a,  milk,  instead  of  fidvva,  manna,  (that  food)  manna, 

P.  143. 

"^pT]  Se  KaTavoycrac  rrjv  (pvaiv  (but  it  is  necessary  to  con- 
sider nature),  for  oi>  /carayei/oT^/core?,  t.  (p.,  through  want  of 
consideration  of  nature. 

^  This  extract,  almost  verbatim,  has  been  already  given  from  Eusebius, 
among  the  extracts  from  the  IhjpoUjpoacs^   p.  161. 


VARIOUS  READINGS  IN  CLEMENT.  181 

KajaKKeiojxevq,  agreeing  with  food,  for  KaTaKXeio/xcfoy, 
agreeing  with  lieat  (enclosed  within). 

^Lverat,  for  ryap  (which  is  untranslated),  (the  blood)  is  (a 
preparation)  for  milk. 

r.  144. 

Toivvv  Tov  \6jov  is  supplied,  and  €ik6to)<;  omitted  in  the 
clause,  Paul  using  appropriate  figurative  language. 

P.  145. 

ttXt/i'  is  supplied  before  aXKa  to  iv  avjij,  and  the  blood  in 
it,  etc.,  is  omitted. 

P.  146. 

"For  Diogenes  Apolloniates  will  have  it"  is  omitted. 
TrdvTT],  rendered  "  in  all  respects,"  is  connected  with  the 
preceding  sentence. 

P.  M7. 

ori,  Toivuv,  for  '/2?  8'.     And  that  (milk  is  produced). 

TTjvLKavTu  for  TqvLKaZe  in  the  clause,  "  and  the  grass  and 
meadows  are  juicy  and  moist,"  not  translated. 

irpoeip-qixivw,  above  mentioned  (milk),  omitted. 

Tpvcf)!"]^  for  T/30^)}'?,  (sweet)  nutriment. 

Tc5  omitted  before  <y\vKei,  sweet  (wine),  and  KaduTrep, 
"  as,  when  sufferintr." 

TO  \t.77apoi>  for  Tip  XcTrapcp,  and  aptSijXo)^  for  apiB/jXov^  in 
the  sentence  :  "  Further,  many  use  the  fat  of  milk,  called 
butter,  for  the  lamp,  plainly,"  etc. 


INDEXES. 


I.— INDEX  OF  TEXTS  OF  SCRIPTURE. 


OLD  TESTAMENT.     1 

PAGE 

PAGE 

Genesis. 

xl.  6,  . 

120 

xii.  49, 

125 

PAGE 

xliv.  0, 

129 

XV.  11,  etc.,        168, 

etc. 

i.  1,    .        .        . 

117 

xvi.  17, 

157 

i.  2,    . 

118 

HOSEA. 

xxiv.  34,     . 

130 

i.  3,    .         .         . 

129 

i.  2,    . 

117 

xiv.  23, 

169 

i.  7,    . 

118 

John. 

i.  10,  11,     . 

lis 

i.  29,  . 

170 

Leviticus. 

V.  2,   . 

118 

iii.  3,  . 

168 

xxvi.  24,     . 

174 

v.  8,   .         .         . 

lis 

iii.  29, 
xvi.  7, 

169 
140 

Numbers. 

Amos. 

xxiii.  22,    . 

170 

ii.  6,   . 

169 

Acts. 

Deuteronomy. 
xvii.  16,      . 

121 

Habakku 

K. 

vii,  24,  25, 

178 

iii.  4, 

170 

Romans. 

1  Kixas. 

viii.  15, 

122 

viii.  27, 

176 

APOCRYP] 

HA. 

viii.  35, 

173 

Wisdom. 

viii.  38, 

178 

Job. 

iii.  7, 

129 

i.  21,  . 

154 

1  Corinthians. 

xxiv.  7, 

156 

NEW  TESTAI 

VIENT. 

i.  18,  . 

126 

IMatthev 

-, 

v.  5,  .        . 

142 

TSALMS. 

iii.  11, 

124 

xi.  10, 

1.5S 

xviii.  1, 

132 

iii.  12, 

124 

XV.  49, 

124 

xviii.  26,     . 

129 

V.  6,  . 

121 

xviii.  27,     . 

174 

V.  42, 

156 

Ephesians. 

xviii.  43,     . 

UO 

vi.  9.  . 

142 

vi.  15, 

173 

xviii.  50, 

130 

vi.  27, 

120 

1    m 

xix.  1, 
xix.  2,  3,    . 
xix.  8, 
xix.  12. 
xxxii.  1,      . 

131 
132 
134 
135 
171 

vi.  33,  32,  . 
xi.  28, 
xii.  44, 
xii.  46, 
xii.  50, 

120 
171,  173 
120 
157 
123 

1  Timothy. 
ii.  6,  . 
iii.  16, 
V.  8,   .         . 
V.  10, 
V.  21, 
vi.  13, 

160 
160 
160 
161 
161 
161 

xliv.  5, 
Ixiv.  4, 

170 
171 

xiii.  31,  32, 
xiii.  43, 

156 
133 

cxxv.  4, 

157 

xxii.  12, 

169 

2  Timothy. 

cxxv.  5, 

174 

xxiii.  9, 

123 

ii  2            .        . 

161 

xxvi.  17,     . 

167 

11.  — ,  . 

Proverbs. 

Hebrews. 

xiii.  24, 

118 

Luke. 
i.  43,  . 

131 

i.  1,    .        .         14S 

1,179 

Isaiah. 

iii.  22, 

157,  174 

1  Peter. 

ii.  3,  . 

134 

ix.  55, 

120 

i.  3,    .        .        . 

1.39 

xbc.  20, 

121 

xii.  25, 

120 

L  10,  . 

140 

1.3 


184 


INDEX  OF  PRINCIPAL  SUBJECTS. 


12,  . 

1. 

19,  . 

i. 

20,  . 

i. 

2:5,  . 

1, 

25,  . 

ii. 

5,  . 

ii. 

9,  . 

ii. 

23, 

ii 

.  10, 

ii 

.  12, 

ii 

.  15, 

ii 

.  18, 

ii 

.20, 

ii] 

.21, 

PACK 

rAGE 

PAGB 

140 

iii.  22, 

142 

iii.  1,  2,   . 

151 

141 

iv.  5,  . 

142 

ill.  8-10,  15,  10,  20, 

141 

iv.  13, 

143 

21,24,  . 

152 

141 

iv.  17, 

143 

iv.  18, 

152 

141 

V.  10, 

143 

iv.  24, 

176 

140,  176 

V.  14, 

143 

V.  G,  7,  14,  19,  20, 

153 

141 

141 

1  John. 

2  John. 

141 

i.  1,  .    . 

147 

Ver.  10,   . 

153 

142 

i.  2,  5,  7,  10, 

148 

142 

ii.  1-3, 

149 

JUDE. 

142 

ii.  5,  7-14, . 

150 

Ver.  1,  4,  5,  6,  7,  8, 

144 

142 

ii.  16,  17,  19, 

Of) 

23, 

Ver.  9,  10,  11,  12, 

142 

29,. 

151 

13,  14,  19,   . 

146 

II.— INDEX  OF  PRINCIPAL  SUBJECTS. 


Abortions,  committed  to  guardian 
angels,  130. 

Above  ail  rule  and  authority,  134. 

Abysses,  the,  117. 

Achilles,  99. 

Adseus,  St.,  and  St.  Maris,  Liturgy 
composed  by,  77,  etc. 

Advocate  with  the  Father,  the,  149. 

Afflictions  of  the  righteous,  the  object 
of,  119. 

Agamemnon,  98. 

Alms,   156. 

Ambrose,  the  conversion  of,  97. 

AngeLs,  guardian,  of  exposed  infants, 
129;  guardians  of  abortives,  130; 
■who  preside  over  generation,  131  ; 
first  created,  131  ;  set  over  the 
stars,  132;  men  changed  into,  134; 
those  called  spirits  of  Christ,  140  ; 
desire  to  look  into  divine  things, 
140;  subject  to  Christ,  142;  that 
kept  not  their  pre-etuinencc,  144  ; 
effect  divine  operations,  and  in- 
fluenced the  prophets,  149  ;  veiled 
on  account  of,  158;  saw  Christ,  160. 

Apostles,  the  baptism  of,  159. 

Apostles,  the  Liturgy  of,  73,  etc. ; 
another,  77,  etc. 

Athlete,  the,  126. 

Baptj.sm,  118,  119;  with  fire,  124; 
of  the  apostles,  159;  the  "best 
robe"  put  on  in,  173;  repentance 
of  sin  after,  173. 

Beginning,  118,  147. 

Being,  162. 


CiESAR,  rendering  to,  what  is  his,  123. 

Calmness,  156. 

Care,  worldly,  to  be  avoided,  120. 

"Chains  of  darktiesp,"  144. 

Cherubic  hymn,  the,  19. 

Christ,  knowing  Him  after  the  flesh, 
178,  179. 

Contentment  inculcated,  109,  110. 

Crabs,  what  they  represent,  164,  165. 

Cross,  signing  with  the  sign  of,  in 
prayer,  instances  of,  23,  28,  38,  56, 
57,  63,  76,  78,  85,  86,  87,  88,  90. 

Crueiti.xion  of  the  flesh,  the,  158. 

Dead,  the  gospel  preached  to  the,  142. 

Delusion,  the,  which  has  its  abode  in 
the  world,  108,  109. 

Devil,  the,  his  knowledge  and  ignor- 
ance in  relation  to  our  Lord,  132. 

Dove,  the  descent  of  a,  on  Jesus,  157, 
173. 

Dreamers,  144. 

Elect,  the,  and  the  lost,  151. 

Elfcta,  153. 

"Eli,  Eli,"  134,  andwo^e. 


men,    and  cluldreu. 


Fasting,  121. 
Fathers,    young 

150. 
Fatted  calf,  the,  169,  170. 
Faults,  secret,  135. 
Fear  and  love,  122,  123. 
Fear  of  God,  177. 
Festivals,  heathen,  103,  104. 
Fire,  baptism  with,  124 ;  God  a  con- 


INDEX  OF  PRINCIPAL  SUBJECTS. 


185 


Burning,   124,   125;   Christ  came  to 

send,  on  earth,  125. 
Firmament,  the,  131,  132. 
Flattery,  155,  15G. 
Flesh,  iTucifyingthe,  158;  living  after 

the,  17«,  171). 

God,  the  soul  to  be  filled  with,  120  ; 
employs  the  agency  of  men  for 
etteotint;  good,  121  ;  the  power  of, 
121,  122;  the  woithiness  of,  in- 
coiiiprehensihlc,  123;  a  consuming 
fire,  124,  125  ;  is  light  and  love, 
148;  no  darkness  in,  ibid.  ;  a  spirit, 
17G. 

Gospels,  the  order  of  the  composi- 
tion of,  1G2. 

Hearts,  enlarged,  179. 

Heavens,  the,  131. 

Hebrews,  the  Epistle  to  the,  trans- 
lated by  Luke  out  of  Hebrew,  100; 
■why  Paul  did  not  affix  his  name 
to,  100,  102. 

Hector,  <)8. 

Helen,  98. 

Hepha'stus  and  Venus,  101. 

Homer,  his  gods  and  heroes,  98,  99. 

Hor;"'.'',  their  emblematic  import,  170. 

House,  the,  swept  and  empty,  120. 

House,  a  Sijiritual,  140. 

Im.\ge  of  God,  man  made  in  the,  174. 

Incarnation,  the,  123. 

Incense,  prayers  at  the  offering  of, 
12,  1.3,  19,  "50,  53,  i;G,  61,  80,  85. 

Infant,  the  complaint  of  a,  on  enter- 
ing the  world,  154,  155. 

Infants',  exposed  and  abortive,  cared 
for  by  angels,  129,  130. 

Iota  and  tittle,  157,  174. 

James  the  Just,   159 ;   anecdote   of, 

IGl. 
James,  the  Liturgy  of,  11,  etc. 
Jehovah,  177. 
Jesus,  the  baptism  of,   119;   descent 

c^f  a  dove  on,  157,  173. 
John,  comments  on  the  first  Epistle 

of,    147,    etc.  ;    second   E[)istle   of, 

153  ;    character   of   the  Gosjjel  of, 

102. 
Jude,  author  of  the  Catholic  Epistle 

so   called,    143 ;   comments   on  the 

Epistle  of,  144. 
Jupiter,  his  character  and  deeds,  144. 

Kissing  the  altar,  84  ;  the  host,  86. 
Knowledge,  120,  126,  128. 
Kora,  100,  101. 


Kronos  devours  his  children,  102. 

Law  of  the  Lord,  the,  1.34. 
Learning   to   be  preferred   to  riches, 

109. 
Liberty,  122,  12.3. 

Life,  the  sadness  and  misery  of,  155. 
Life  and  good  days,  141. 
Light,  God  is,  148. 
Light  and  darkm  ss,  150, 
Liturgies,  primitive,   an   account   of, 

3,  etc. 
Lopgsutfering,  130. 
Love,  179. 
Love,  God  is,  148. 
Love  and  fear,  122. 
Luke  and  his  writings,  143. 

Mara,  a  letter  of,  to  Serapion,  105, 

etc.  ;  the  laughter  of,  114. 
Mark,  how  and   when  he  composed 

his  Gospel,  143,  159,  162. 
Mark,  the  Liturgy  of,  47. 
Medea,  103. 

Men,  some,  changed  into  angels,  134. 
Milk  of    women,   curious    statements 

respecting,  130,  131. 
Moses  slajiug  the  Egyptian,  178. 
Mustard -see^i,    the    jjarable    of    the 

grain  of,  156. 

Naked  from  the  earth,  and  naked  re- 
turiiing  to  the  earth,  154. 

Nakedness  of  man  by  nature,  the  ad- 
vantages arising  from,  155. 

Nature,  162. 

Odysseus,  98,  99. 
(Edipus,  103. 

Passions  of  the  soul,  130. 

Passover,  the,  167. 

Paul,  why  he  did  not  afTix  his  name 
to  the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews,  160, 
102,  17ti,  ISO. 

Pearl  of  great  price,  the,  157. 

Penelope,  101. 

Peter,  the  relation  of,  to  the  Gospel  of 
Mark  ;  disc  rejiant  statements  re- 
s[)ecting,  159,  100. 

Pluto  carries  olf  K<>ra,  100,  101. 

Power  of  God,  the,  121,  122. 

Prayer,  the  power  of,  121. 

Pre-existence,  the,  of  man  denied, 
122. 

Priesthood,  a  royal,  141. 

Procne,  and  her  sister,  103,  note. 

Prodigal  son,  the  paral)le  of,  168-173. 

Property,  ^ve  are  not  bidden  to  re- 
nounce, 130. 


186 


INDEX  OF  PRINCIPAL  SUBJECTS. 


Prophecy,  Pantienus'  remarks  on  the 

use  of  the  tenses  in,  13!^. 
Propitiation,  the  prayer  of,  45. 

Eeason',  man  naturally  endowed  with, 
and  may  abuse,  172. 

Regeneration,  118,  139. 

Kepentance,  164 ;  of  sin  after  bap- 
tism, 173. 

Kesurrection,  the,  139. 

Kiches,  learning  to  be  preferred  to, 
109  ;  the  love  of,  disturbs  life,  110  ; 
men  intent  on  possessing,  112. 

Plight  hand  of  God,  the,  146. 

Piobe,  the  best,  and  the  ring,  168,  172. 

Scriptures,  the  use  of,  126  ;  to  be 
searched  diligently,  127. 

Sedrach,  Misak,  and  Abednago,  the 
song  of,  117. 

Shoes,  the,  given  to  the  returned 
prodigal,  168,  169. 

Sin  after  baptism  may  be  repented  of, 
173. 

Slander,  164. 

Sodom  and  Gomorrah,  144. 

Sons  of  God,  151. 

Soul,  the,  to  be  tilled  with  God,  120  ; 
not  naturally  immortal,  140 ;  cor- 
ruptible, 141 ;  all  souls  immortal, 
163. 

Speaking  and  writing  compared,  125. 

Spirit,  175,  176. 

Stars,  the,  132. 

Stars,  wandering,  145. 

Substance,  177. 


Sufferings,  feeling  among  the  ancients 

in   respect   to  personal,    119,   120; 

of  Christ,  partakers  of  the,  143. 
Sun,  how  God  sets  His  tabernacle  in 

the,   132,   133,    134;   an   angel  in, 

rules  the  day,  133. 

Temple,  the,  of  Solomon  a  type,  175, 

176. 
Tenses,  the  use  of  the,  in  prophecy, 

133. 
Tetragrammaton,  the,  177. 
Three,  the,  which  bear  witness,  153. 
Thrones,  principalities,  etc.,  134. 
Thyestes,  103. 
"  Trees,    autumnal,    without  fruit," 

145. 
Trisagion  hymn,  15  ;  prayer,  52. 
Trojan  war,  the,  98. 

Unclean  spirit's  return,  the,  120. 
Ungodly  men,  the,  described  and  de- 
nounced by  Jude,  145. 

Veil,  jjrayer  of  the,  26. 

Venus,  Hephcestus,  and  Ares,  101. 

Water,  the,  above  the  firmament, 
119. 

' '  Waves  of  a  ragi.ng  sea, "  145. 

Willing,  163. 

Wise,  the  persecutors  of  the,  pun- 
ished, 110. 

Witnesses,  two  or  three,  121. 

Writing  and  speaking  compared,  125. 

Word,  the,  147  ;  handling  of,  ibid. 


THE  END. 


MURHAY  AND  GIBE,  EDrSBURGII, 
PRINTEIIS  TO  IIEE  >L\JESTy's  STATIONERY  OFFICE. 


T.  and  T.  Claris s  Publications. 


In  Four  Ilandsome  Volumes,  8vo,  price  328., 

The  Comparative  Geography  of  Palestine  and  the  Sinaitic 

JViiiiisula.     IJy  I'rofcs.sor  Caul  liHTi.i;  of  JJciliu.     Tiuuslatcd  and  adapted 
for  the  use  of  Biblical  Students  by  AVillum  L.  Gagk. 

'  To  clergymen  tliese  volumes  will  prove  not  less  interesting  than  instructive  and 
useful.  Theological  students  will  find  in  tlicm  the  most  exbausiive  storehouse  of  facts 
on  the  suhjects  existing  in  the  language,  while  upon  all  the  moot  points  of  Palestinian 
and  Sinaitic  geography  they  will  meet  with  a  condensed  summary  of  all  the  arguments 
of  every  writer  of  note,  from  the  curliest  ages  down  to  the  period  of  the  author's  death. 
In  a  word,  these  four  volumes  give  the  essence  of  the  entire  literature  of  the  subject  of 

every  age  and  language The  readers  of  these  volumes  have  every  reason  to  be 

satisfied  with  the  result But  it  would  be  impossible  to  mention  all  the  good  things 

in  these  volumes.  Wo  must,  however,  say  a  few  words  upon  Hitter's  magniticent  mono- 
graph on  the  situation  of  Ophir,  which  we  regard  as  one  of  the  gems  of  the  work 

Bitter's  treatment  of  this  apparently  hopeless  question  is  a  masterpiece  of  mature  scholar- 
ship and  sound  judgment.     The  whole  monograph  is  a  model  of  its  kind What 

we  are  now  saying  of  the  monograph  on  the  situation  of  Ophir  is,  however,  applicable  to 
everything  our  author  wrote.' — Spectator. 

'  It  is  superfluous  to  commend  such  a  peerless  work  as  this.' — British  Quarterly  Review. 

In  8vo,  price  10s.  6d., 

Commentary  on  the  Greek  Text  of  the  Epistle  of  Paul  to  the 

Galatiaus.      liy  liev.    John    Eaoie,    D.D.,   LL.U.,   I'lofLiour   of   Uiblical 
Literature  and  Exegesis  to  the  United  Presbyterian  Church. 
'A  full  and  elaborate  commentary  on  the  Epistle  to  the  Galatians.     Dr.  Eadie  has  had 
no  common  task  before  him,  but  ho  has  done  the  work  remarkably  well.' — Contemporai-y 
Review. 

'  The  volume  as  a  whole  is  a  most  valuable  addition  to  the  theological  literature  of 
Scotl.and,  in  that  department  in  which  it  is  of  much  consequence  that  it  should  receive 
additions.  It  has  confirmed  Dr.  Eadie's  claim  to  a  high  place  among  British  expositors.' 
—  United  Presbyterian  Magazine. 

In  One  Volume,  demy  8vo,  price  10s.  Gd., 

Analytical  Commentary  on  the  Epistle  to  the  Romans,  tracing- 

the  Train  of  Thou^lit  by  the  aid  of  raralleli:<ni ;  with  Notes  and  Disserta- 
tions on  the  Princiiial  Diiriculties  in  the  Epistle.     By  John  Fokbks,  LL.D., 
Professor  of  Oriental  Languages,  Aberdeen  University. 
'  Dr.  Forbes'  Commentary  takes  a  far  wider  and  deeper  range  than  any  merely  external 
rule  of  interpretation,  and  it  is  marked  by  good  sense  and  able  reasoning.' — Guardian. 

'  In  every  point  of  view  it  is  a  valuable  addition  to  critical  biblical  literature,  and 
possesses  many  attractions  even  for  the  unlearned  reader.  For  full  satisfaction  on  every 
difKculty  we  have  referred  with  complete  satisfaction  to  this  modest  yet  learned  and 
exhaustive  work.' — Contemporary  Review. 

In  crown  8vo,  price  3s.  Cd., 

Evangelical  Meditations.    By  Professor  Vinet. 

'  The  work  before  us  is  one  which  will  be  most  highly  prized  by  the  spiritually-minded 
and  single-hearted  Christian.' — J^atriot. 

In  post  Svo,  price  3s.  6d.,  Second  Edition, 

Pastoral  Theology :  The  Theory  of  a  Gospel  Ministry.     By 

Professor  ViNtr. 
'  One  or  two  rapid  readings  will  not  suflSce  to  exhaust  the  treasures  of  Christian  and 
pastoral  experience,  of  enlightenment,  of  tenderness,  of  practical  directions,  of  elevation, 
and  of  edification,  which  fill  tliese  pages.  We  will  find  it  to  our  profit  to  read  at  least 
once  a  year  this  precious  volume,  if  it  were  onl\-  as  the  means  of  serving  as  pastors  for 
the  examination  of  our  conscience.' — Archives  du  Christ ianisme. 

In  demy  8vo,  price  Ds.,  Second  Edition, 

Homiletics  ;  or,  The  Theory  of  Preaching.    By  Professor  Vinet. 

'Vinet,  fr»im  his  previous  studies,  was  especially  at  home  on  such  a  subject,  in  which 
he  finds  scope,  not  only  for  his  powers  of  exposition,  but  also  for  his  rich  faculty  of 
criticism,  some  exquisite  gems  of  which  are  scattered  up  and  down  its  pages.' — Aorth 
British  Revieic. 


T.  and  T.  ClarJcs  Ptiblications. 


In  post  8vo,  price  2?:., 

Vital  Christianity :  Essays  and  Discourses  on  the  Religions  of 

Man  and  the  lijligiou  of  God.     By  Professor  Yinet. 
In  crown  8vo,  price  4s.  6d.,  Sixth  Edition, 

The  Suffering  Saviour;  or,  Meditations  on  the  Last  Days  of 

the  Sufferings  of  Christ.     By  Dr.  F.  W.  Kuummaciiei:. 

'We  give  it  preference  to  everytliing  Litlierto  prodncL'fl  by  tlie  gifted  and  devoted 
author.  Il  is  divinity  of  the  most  tlioroiiii;lily  evangelical  description.  Tnitli  and  tender- 
ness have  seldom  been  so  succt^ssfull}-  combined.  A  book  of  the  lien.rt.  to  Ihnl  it  appeals 
in  every  page,  with  a  force  which  it  will  be  difBcult  to  resist.' — Christian  Witness. 

One  Volume,  crown  8vo,  price  5.5.,  Cheap  Edition, 

Gotthold's  Emblems ;  or,  Invisible  Things  understood  by 

Things  tliat  are  Made.  By  Ciiiiistian  Sciuveu,  Minister  of  Magdeburg  in 
1G71.     Translated  from  tlie  Twenty-eighth  German  Edition. 

'  A  pecnliarly  fascinating  volume.  It  is  rich  in  happy  and  beautiful  tlioughts, -which 
grow  on  the  root  of  genuine  piety.' — Witness. 

In  crown  8vo,  price  5s.,  Third  Edition, 

Light  from  the  Cross :  Sermons  on  the  Passion  of  our  Lord. 

Translated  from  the  German  of  A.  Thohxk,  D.U.,  Professor  of  Theology 
in  the  University  of  Halle,  by  the  Rev.  R.  C.  Lundin  Brown,  M.A. 

'With  no  ordinary  confidence  and  pleasure  we  commend  these  most  noble,  solemnizing, 
and  touching  discourses.' — British  and  Foreign  Evangelical  Review. 

In  One  Thick  Volume,  8vo,  price  9s., 

Greek  and   English  Lexicon  of  the    New  Testament.     By 

Ed\vai:d  Robinson,  D.U.,  late  Professor  Extraordinary  of  Sacred  Litera- 
ture in  the  Theological  Seminary,  Andover.  A  New  and  Improved 
Edition,  revised  by  Alexander  NeCxRIS,  Professor  of  Greek  Literature, 
and  by  the  Rev.  John  Duncan,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Oriental  Languages  in 
the  New  College,  Edinburgh. 

In  Two  Volumes,  crown  8vo,  price  10s.  Gd., 

Modern    Pantheism:    Essay   on   Religious   Philosophy.     By 

M.  Ejiile  Saisset,  Professor  of  the  History  of  PliiIosoi>liy  in  the  Faculty 

of  Letters  in  Paris.    Translated  from  the  French.    With  Marginal  Analysis, 

Notes,  Critical  Essay,  and  Philosophical  Appendix.     The  original  draft  of 

this  -work  obtained  the  prize  offered  by  the  Academy  of  Moral  and  Political 

Sciences  on  the  following  subject :  Exnmen  Critique  dex  Principanx  Sg.^temes 

Moilernes  de  Thcodicec.     The  second  edition  carried  off  the  first  of  the 

great  Monthyon  Prizes  of  the  French  Academy. 

'As  a  handbook  to  the  theological  side  of  modern  speculation,  it  is  a  mast  valuable 

addition  to  philosophical  literature.     The  translation  is  clear  and  idiomatic ;  it  is  Euglish 

in  its  language,  French  in  the  transparency  of  its  expression.' — Saturday  Review. 

Just  jHiblished,  in  crown  8vo,  price  Gs.,  Third  Edition, 

The  Tripartite  Nature  of  Man,  Spirit,  Soul,  and  Body,  applied 

to  illustrate  and  E.xphun  tlie  Doctrines  of  Original  Sin.  the  New  Birth, 
the  Disembodied  State,  and  the  Spiritual  Body.    By  Rev.  G.  B.  Heard,  M.A. 
AVith  an  Appendix  on  the  Fatherhood  of  God. 
'  The  author  has  got  a  striking  and  consistent  theory.     Whether  agreeing  or  disagree- 
ing with  that  theory,  it  is  a  book  which  any  student  of  the  Ihblo  may  read  with  pleasure.' 
—  Guardian. 

This  day  is  published,  in  demy  8vo,  price  Os., 

Sermons.   From  1828  to  1860.   By  the  late  William  Cunningham, 

D.D.,  Principal  and  Professor  of  Church  History,  New  College,  Edinburgh. 
A\'ith  Photograph.     Edited,  with  a  Preface,  by  licv.  J.  J.  Bonau,  Greenock. 


T.  and  T.  Clar/cs  P  lib  lie  alio  Jis. 


Just  published,  in  cloiiiy  8vo,  Second  Edition,  prico  lO.s.  (Jd , 

The  Dactrine  of  the  Atonement,  as  Taught  by  Christ  Himself; 

or,  'riiL'  Sayings  of  Ji-sus  on  tlie  Atini'iiii'iit  l']xi'getic;illy  ExpoumL.-il  aii<i 
Classifie  I.  By  Gicouge  Smeaton,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Exegetical  Theology, 
New  College,  Edinburgh. 

'  Wi!  nttach  vi-ry  prcat  v.nluo  to  lliis  seasonable  and  scholarly  production.  The  idea  of 
(lie  Work  is  ni(i.-.t  hapiiy,  and  th«  execution  of  it  worthy  of  the  idea.  On  a  scheme  of  truly 
li.icduiau  C'xegi-tic.il  indiicliiin,  lie  presents  us  with  .a  complete  view  of  the  various  posi- 
tii<r  s  or  propositions  which  a  full  and  sound  doctrine  of  the  atonement  embraces.' — British 
cmd  Fur<  ii/ti  Jiranfji'/ical  Revivw. 

'The  plan  of  the  book  i-i  admirable.  A  monograph  and  exegesis  of  our  Lord's  own 
sayin^rs  on  this  frreatest  of  siilpjfots  conceriiin;;  Himself  must  needs  be  valuable  to  all 
tlieolofjians.  Anil  thi?  execution  is  thorough  ami  painstaking— exhaustive,  as  far  as  tho 
completeness  of  range  over  these  sayings  is  concerned.' — Contemporary  Review. 

Just  published,  in  demy  8vo,  price  10s.  6'1., 

The  Doctrine  of  the  Atonement,  as  Taught  by  the  Apostles ; 

or,  'i'iie  k5ayiiigs  of  the  Apostles  Exegctically  Expounded.  JJy  (Jicokge 
Smeaton,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Exegetical  Theology,  New  College,  Edinburgh. 

'We  cannot  too  highly  commend  the  conception  and  general  execution  of  this  really 
great  theological  woik.  Professor  Smeat on  may  claim  the  lionourof  having  inaugurated, 
at  any  rate  in  Scotland,  a  novum  orf/anum  of  theology.  .  .  .  Uis  book  is  a  great  and  noble 
work—a  cicdit  to  British  biblical  scholarship,  and  a  great  service  to  doctrinal  theology.' 
— British  Qiiarterli/  Review. 

Lately  published,  in  One  Volume,  crown  8vo,  price  5s., 

Rome  and  the  Council  in  the  Nineteenth  Century.    Translated 

from  the  Frciicli  oi  I'l.iJ.N.  lk;.Nca:.Ni;i;,  with  adJiiious  by  the  Autlior. 

•  The  present  volume  is  admirable  for  its  brief,  compact,  trenchant  logic;  for  its  com- 
prelienLiveness  of  range;  for  its  profound  and  si-archiiig  criticism  of  the  principles  and 
developments  of  Popery.  .  .  .  it  is  a  searching,  eloquent,  and  iu  every  way  remarkable 
voainie.' — London  Quarterly  Review. 

In  demy  8vo,  price  9s., 

The  Old  Catholic  Church  ;  or,  The  History,  Doctrine,  Worship, 

aiul  Polity  of  the  Christians,  traced  from  the  Apostolic  Age  to  the  Estab- 
lishment of  the  Pope  as  a  Temporal  Sovereign,  a.d.  755.  By  W.  D. 
Kii.LiCN,  D.D.,  Belfast. 

'  This  valuable  Work  embiaces  about  one  half  of  the  interval  between  the  birth  of  Christ 
and  the  lit- fi>rniati"U.  The  author  has  bestowed  much  pains  in  consulting  authi)riiie>-,  has 
coU(lens'-il  the  history  very  carefully,  and  has  writti-n  with  much  clearness  and  vivacity. 
....  We  recommend  Dr.  Killen's  work  as  a  very  ailmiralije  and  useful  compendium  of 
tho  ecclesiasiical  period  of  which  lie  treats.' — Evangelical  Magazine. 

In  Three  Volumes,  royal  8vo,  price  3G>., 

History  of  the  Christian  Church.    By  Philip  Schaff,  D.D.,  Author 

of  "The  History  of  tlie  Apostolic  Church.'  Prom  the  Birth  of  Christ  to 
Gregory  the  Great,  A.D.  1-GOO. 

'Dr.  Schaff 's  book  is  perhaps,  taken  all  in  all,  the  most  convenient,  serviceable,  and 
satisfactory  of  all  our  general  Church  historii;s,  especially  for  students.' — Presbyttrian. 

'Dr.  Schaff's  "Church  History,"  for  working  purpos^-s,  is  by  far  the  best  wo  possess. 
....  Wii  would  gladly  have  devoted  to  a  woi  k  so  thorough,  scholarly,  catholic,  and 
able,  a  leugtliCUed  review.' — British  Quarterly  Review. 

In  Two  Volumes,  8vo,  price  21s., 

The  Church  of  Christ :   A  Treatise  on  the  Nature,  Powers, 

Ordmaiiees,  Disc  pline,  and  Government  of  tiie  Christian  Ciiurch.  By  the 
latj  jA.Mt;s  li.vNNEiiMAN,  U.D.,  Professor  of  Apologetics  and  Pastoral  'Iheo- 
logy.  New  College,  Edinburgh.     Edited  by  his  Son. 

'  The  general  tone  of  the  work  is  diguifu-d,  earnest,  temperate,  and  devout.  We  heartily 
recomiiiejid  it  to  the  shelves  of  our  universities  and  students  of  theology.' — London 
Quarterly  Recittc. 


T.  a7id  T.  Claris s  Publicatio7is. 


In  One  Volume,  demy  8vo,  price  9s., 

Discourses  on  Redemption ;  as  Revealed  at  '  Sundry  Times  and 

in  Divers  ^[annors.'  through  Patriarchs,  Prophets,  Jesus,  and  His  Apostles. 
By  S.  Robinson,  D.D. 
'One  of  those  works  a  clergyman  will  most  highly  prize,  inasmuch  as  there  is  a  mine 
of  suggestive  writing  to  be  found  in  it  which  may  be  worked  with  profit  for  many  a  day.' 
— Ecclesiastical  Gazette. 

In  One  Volume,  crown  8vo,  price  6s., 

Friedrich  Wilhelm  Krummacher :  an  Autobiography.     Edited 

by  his  Dauulitor,  and  Translated  by  Kev.  M.  G.  Easton,  M.A.  Second 
Edition,  revised,  with  a  new  Biographical  Supplement  by  the  Editor. 
'  Dr.  Krummacher  of  Potsdam,  so  well  known  by  his  "Elisha"  and  "Elijah"  and 
"  David,"  died  on  the  10th  of  December  last.  Among  his  papers  was  found  an  autobio- 
graphy extending  down  to  the  year  1848.  This  autobiop;raphy,  with  a  portrait  and 
various  additions  bringing  it  down  to  the  day  of  his  death,  has  now  been  published,  and 
we  are  sure  that  all  who  know  anything  of  its  subject — and  who  does  not  ? — will  eagerly 
secure  the  book,  and  not  lay  it  down  till  they  have  finished  it.' — Bibliotheca  Sacra. 

Just  published,  in  One  Handsome  Volume,  demy  8vo,  price  10s.  6d., 

The  Training  of  the  Twelve ;  or,  An  Exposition  of  Passages 

in  the  Gospels  exhibiting  the  Twelve  Disciples  of  Jesus  under  Discipline 
for  the  AposUeship.     By  the  Rev.  Alexander  Balmain  Bruce. 

'  Here  we  have  a  really  great  book  on  an  important,  large,  and  attractive  subject ;  and 
it  must  be  a  matter  of  congratulation  among  all  theological  rerders,  that  a  subject  so  im- 
portant has  fallen  into  the  hands  of  one  thoroughly  qualified  to  do  it  justice.  Certainly 
we  can  name  no  work,  either  in  our  own  or  any  other  language,  in  which  we  find  a 
clearer  conception  of  the  principles  of  the  Christian  religion,  and  of  the  adaptationof 
these  to  all  that  is  deepest  in  human  nature.  ...  It  is  one  of  those  rare  books  which 
ring  in  our  ears  as  the  utterance  of  a  true  man,  who  speaks  because  his  heart  and  mind 
are  free.' — British  and  Foreign  Evangelical  Review. 

Just  published,  in  One  Volume,  handsomely  bound,  crown  8vo,  price  7s.  Gd., 

The  Footsteps  of  Christ.    Translated  from  the  German  of  A. 

CA.SPER.S  by  A.  E.  Rodham.  1.  Christ  for  us  ;  2.  Christ  in  us  ;  3.  Christ 
before  us ;  4.  Christ  through  us. 

'  It  is  a  work  of  solid  thought  and  solid  learning,  and  should  find  a  considerable  public 
in  its  English  dress.' — Nonconformist. 

'  The  sentences  are  short  and  antithetical,  and  the  translation  is  so  idiomatic  and  good, 
that  you  never  have  occasion  in  reading  to  notice  that  it  is  a  translation  at  all.  The 
papers  are  sliort,  but  not  too  short  for  a  profitable  devout  meditation  in  the  closet.  They 
are  admirably  fitted  for  that  purpose;  indeed,  that  is  their  sole  aim  and  end.  We  close 
by  simply  recommending  any  and  every  reader,  who  may  be  in  search  of  a  really  fresh 
devotional  volume,  to  stop  here  at  this  one.' — Weelcbj  Eeview. 

'  The  volume  is  entirely  devotional,  and  contains  much  that  will  have  interest  for  de- 
vout and  iutolligent  English  readers.     ...     It  ought  to  find  a  welcome.' — Freeman. 

Just  published,  in  Two  Volumes,  demy  8vo.  price  21s., 

Commentary,    Exegetical   and  Critical,  on  the  Acts  of  the 

Apostles.     By  the  Rev.  Paton  Gloag,  D.D.,  J^Iinister  of  Blantyre. 

'  Dr.  Gloag's  work  is  very  acceptable The  volumes  are  scholarly,  earnest, 

trustworthy,  and  supply  materials  for  the  refutation  of  the  speculations  of  tho  critical 
school.' — British  Quarterly  Review. 

In  crown  8vo,  Fifth  Edition,  price  7s.  6d.. 

Christ's    Second  Coming:   Will   it   be    Pre-Millennial  ?     By 

David  Bi:o\vn,  D.D. 
'  This  is,  in  our  judgment,  one  of  the  most  able,  comprehensive,  and  conclusive  of  the 
numerous  works  which  the  millenarian  controversy  has  called  forth.' — Watchman. 

In  foolscap  8vo,  price  r>':.. 

The  Parables  of  Christ  Illustrated  and  Expounded.    By  Dr. 

F.  G.  Llsco. 


T.  and  T.  Claries  Piiblications. 


Just  published,  in  Two  Handsome  Volumes,  8vo,  price  21s., 

History  of  Protestant    Theology,    particularly  in    Germany, 

vii-wcd  accin-diii;,'   to  its   Fuiirl;uiioiit;il  Muveiiit.-nt,  ami  in  coiiiiertinii  with 
the  Religious,  Moral,  and  Intellectual  Life.     Translated  from  the  German 
of  Dr.  J.  A.  DonxKi!,  Professor  of  Theology  at  Berlin.     With  a  Preface  to 
the  Translation  by  the  Author. 
'  This  work,  which  may  be  called  a  Tfistory  of  Modern  Theology,  is  one  of  the  most 
important,  iuterestinp,  and  useful  that  Messrs.  Clark  have  ever  issued.     A  careful  study 
of  it  would  systematiso  on  the  reader's  mind  the  whole  round  of  evangelical  truth.     In 
fact  it  is,  in  a  certain  sense,  a  comprehensive  view  of  Historical  Theology  written  on  a 
new  plan ;  not  in  the  form  of  the  tabulated  summary,  but  as  traced  in  the  living  history 
of  those  whoso  struprffles  won  for  us  the  truth,  and  whoso  science  formulated  it  for  pos- 
terity.'— London  Quarterbj  Review. 

Just  published,  in  crown  8vo,  Second  Edition,  price  63., 

Apologetic  Lectures  on  the  Fundamental  Truths  of  Chris- 
tianity. Second  Edition.  15y  1'rofe.ssor  Iatiiai;ut.  The  Antagonistic 
Views  of  the  TVorld  in  their  Historical  Development;  The  Anomalies  of 
Existence ;  The  Personal  God ;  The  Creation  of  the  World :  Man  ;  Re- 
ligion:  Revelation;  History  of  Revelation — Heatheni-sm  and  Judaism; 
Christianity  in  History  ;  The  Person  of  Jesus  Christ. 

'  We  have  never  met  with  a  volume  better  adapted  to  set  forth  the  evidences  of  Chris- 
tianity in  a  form  suited  to  the  wants  of  our  day.  There  is  no  obscurity  in  the  thoughts 
or  in  the  style;  the  language  is  simple,  the  ideas  clear,  and  the   argument  logical,  and 

generally,  to  our    mind,    conclusive The  whole  of  this  vast  argument   is 

illustrated  by  various  and  profound  learning  in  ancient  and  modern  writers,  and  the 
notes  themselves  arc  an  interesting  study.  Wo  confidently  recommend  these  valuable 
lectures  both  to  the  student  and  the  general  reader,  as  containing  an  unusual  amount  of 
thought  and  information,  conveyed  in  elegant  and  forcible  Ismgaase.'— Guardian. 

In  crown  Svo,  price  6s., 

Apologetic  Lectures  on  the  Saving  Truths  of  Christianity. 

Second  Edition  in  the  Press.  By  Professor  Lutiiakdt.  The  Nature  of 
Christianity;  Sin;  Grace;  The  God-Man;  The  Work  of  Jesus  Christ; 
The  Trinity  ;  The  Church  ;  Holy  Scripture ;  The  Means  of  Grace ;  The 
Last  Things. 

'  These  lectures  contain  a  resume  of  the  doctrines  of  the  Christian  faith.  The  author 
is  a  profound  thinker,  a  skilled  theologian,  a  man  of  wide  and  varied  culture,  who  knows 
how  to  express  clearly  and  sharply  what  he  believes.  The  principles  of  the  gospel  are 
expounded  with  singular  force,  truth,  and  gracefulness  of  diction.' — Evangelical  Magazine. 

Just  published,  in  crown  8vo,  price  4s.  6d., 

The  Problem  of  Evil.     By  Ernest  Naville,  late  Professor  of 

Philosophy,  University  of  Geneva.     Translated  from  the  Eronch  I'V  E.  W. 
SiiALDERS,   B.A.      1.    Good;    2.   Evil;    3.  The  Problem;    4.    The  Solu- 
tion; 5.  The  Proof ;  6.  The  Battle  of  Life;  7.  Succour. 
'  This  most  difficult  subject  is  handled  with  a  power  and  mastery  as  rare  as  delight- 
ful, and  with  a  substantial  orthodoxy  not  always  to  bo  looked  for  under  philosophical 

forms  and  methods.     The  book  is  of  remarkable  weight  and  power We  give 

it  our  warmest  recommendation.' — Literary  CkiircJiman. 

'  The  book  is  a  pood  philosophical  defence  of  what  theologically  is  the  doctrine  of 
original  sin,  and  it  defends  its  thesis  throughout  with  a  studied  absence  of  all  theological 
language  or  argument  by  purely  philosophical  reasoning.' — Guardian. 

In  deniy  8vo,  price  7s.  •h1., 

The  Religions  before  Christ :   Being  an  Introduction  to  the 

History  of  the  Eirst  Three  Centuries  of  the  Church.  By  E.  de 
Pressense,  D.D. 

'  Stamped  with  the  true  genius  of  a  historian,  and  imbued  with  the  devoutness  of  a 
Christian.' — Patriot. 


In  crown  8vo,  price  6s., 

The  Redeemer.     Discourses  by  E.  de  Pressense,  D.D.     With 

Intioductioii  by  W.  Linusav  Alexander,  D.D. 

'Tlie  wlicile  volume  is  marked  by  a  rare  ricliuess  of  tliougbt  and  illustration,  and  by  a 
high  and  fervid  eloquence.' — Eoamjelical  Magazine. 

In  Two  Volumes,  demy  8vo,  price  21s., 

Mediatorial    Sovereignty :    The   Mystery  of  Christ  and  the 

lievelation  of  the  Old  ami  New  Testameuts.     By  George  Steward. 

'A  large  and  exhaustive  work,  with  great  fulness  of  argument.' — Christian  Remsm- 
hrancn; 

'  Ceiiainly  one  of  the  books  of  the  ago, — we  might  say  of  the  century.  Anything  more 
massive,  compiehensive,  and  ihoroiiglily  theological,  we  cannot  name.  The  author  has 
achieved  a  noL^le  triumph  on  behalf  of  the  cause  he  loves.' — Christian  Witness. 

In  demy  8vo,  price  9s., 

The    Scripture    Testimony  to   the    Holy  Spirit.     By  James 

Morgan,  D.D..  Belfast. 

'  Coiitroversj'  and  criiicism  are  avoided.  Scripture  ideas  are  unfolded  in  a  clear  and 
popular  way.  so  as  uut  only  to  inform  the  judgment,  but  also  to  purify  the  heart.' — Evan- 
(jelical  Magazine. 

In  demy  8vo,  price  9s., 

An  Exposition  of  the  First  Epistle  of  St.  John.     By  James 

Morgan,  D.D.,  Belfast. 

In  Two  Viilumes,  crown  8vo,  price  123., 

Biblical  Studies  on  St.  John's  Gospel.    By  Dr.  Besser. 

'We  now  call  attention  fo  the  great  ni'-rits  of  this  volume.  The  character  of  this 
coramentarj' is  practical  and  devotional.  Thei'e  are  often  veiy  exquisite  devotional  pas- 
sage-, and  a  v<-in  of  o.irnost  p  ety  runs  through  the  whole  work.  We  recommend  the 
book  most  Warmly  to  all.' — Literary  Churchman. 

'  Tlu're  is  a  quiet,  siiniiln,  penetrating  good  sense  in  what  Dr.  Cesser  says,  and  withal  a 
spirit  of  trnlj'  Cliri.-tian  devuutness,  which  ttie  reader  m:ist  feel  to  be  in  beautiful  accord- 
a.uce  with  the  inspired  teachings  which  awaken  it.' — British  Quarterly  Review. 

In  Two  Volumes,  8vo,  price  21s., 

A  History  of  Christian  Doctrine.    By  W.  G.  Shedd,  Professor 

of  Tlieology,  Union  College,  New  York. 
'We  do  nut  lie-itite  to  pronounce   the  work  a  great  improvement  on  anything  wo 
have  had  before.     To  tljc  young  student  it  will   be  valuable  as  a  guide  to  his  critical 
reading,   and   to  the  literary  man  it  will  be  indispensable   as   a  book  of   reference.' — 
iSibi  otheca  >Sacra. 

In  demj'  8vo,  jirice  10s.  Cd  , 

A  Critical  and  Exegetical  Commentary  on  the  Book  of  Genesis. 

With  a  new  Traiislation.     By  Jami  s  G.  Murphy,  LL.D.,  T.C.D. 

'Dr.  ^lurphy  has  conferred  a  great  service  on  a  difficult  department  of  scriptural 
learning.' —  Clerical  Journal. 

In  demy  8vo,  price  9s., 

A  Critical  and  Exegetical  Commentary  on  the  Book  of  Exodus. 

By  James  G.  MuitRav,  LL.D.,  T.C.D. 

In  d^nj'  8vo,  price  10s.  6d., 

The  Early  Scottish  Church.     The  Ecclesiastical  History  of 

Sc.jthiiid,    from   the   Fii.st   to   the  Miihlle  of  the  Twelfth  Century.      By 
T.  M'Lauculan,  D.D.,  LL.D.,  Edinburgh. 

In  crown  8vo,  price  5s., 

The  Sinlessness  of  Jesus :   An  Evidence  for  Christianity.    By 

Dr.  C.  b'l.L.M.ANX. 
'We   warn.ly   recommend  this  beautiful  work   as  eminently  fitted  to  diffuse  among 
those  who  peruse  it  a  iiiglier  appieciaiion  of  the  siulcasness  and    moral  eminence  of 
Christ.' — British  and  Foreign  Evanyd  cal  Rev  ew. 


C  LA  R  K'S 

FOREIGN    THEOLOGICAL    LIBRARY, 

ANNUAL    SUBSCRIPTION: 

One  Guinea  (payable  in  advance)  for  Four  Volumes,  Demy  8vo. 

When  not  paid  in  advance,  the  Betail  Bookseller  is  entitled  to  charge  248. 


^.B. — Any  two  Years  in  this  Series  can  Ic  liad  at  Subscription  Price.  A  single  Year's 
Books  (except  in  the  case  of  the  current  Year)  cannot  be  supplied  separately.  Non- 
subscribers,  price  10s.  6d.  each  volume,  with  exceptions  marked. 

18  6  4- 

Lange   on   the   Acta  of  the  Apostles.     Two  Volumes. 
KeU  and  Delitzsch  on  the  Pentateuch,     Vols.   I.  and  II. 

18  6  5- 

Keil  and  Telitzsch  on  the  Pentateuch.     Volume  III. 

Hengstenberg  on  the  Gospel  of  John.     Two  Volumes. 

Keil  and  Delitzsch  on  Joshua,  Judges,  and  Huth.     One  Volume. 

18  6  6- 

Keil  and  DeUtzsch  on  Samuel.     One  Volume. 

Keil  and  Delitzsch  on  Job.     Two  Volumes. 

Martensen's  System  of  Chiistian  Doctiine.     One  Volume. 

18  6  7- 

Delitzsch  on  Isaiah.     Vol.   1. 
Delitzsch  on  Biblical  Psychology.     12s. 
Delitzsch  on  Isaiah.     Vol.    II. 
Auberlen  on  Di\'ine  Revelation. 

1  8  C  8- 

Kail's  Commentary  on  the  Minor  Prophets.     Two  Volumes. 
Delitzsch's  Commentary  on  Ejjistle  to  the  Hebrews.     Vol.   I. 
Earless'   System  of  Christian  Ethics.     Cue  Volume. 

18  6  9- 

Hengstenberg  on  Ezekiel.     One  Volume. 
Stier  on  the  Words  of  the  Apostles.     One  Volume. 
Keil's  Introduction  to  the  Old  Testament.     Vol.    I. 
Bleek's  Introduction  to  the  New  Testament.     Vol.  I. 

18  7  0- 

Keil's  Introduction  to  the  Old  Testament.     Vol.   IT. 
Bleek's  Introduction  to  the  New  Testament.     A'ul.   II. 
Schmid's  New  Testament  Theology.     One   Volume. 
Delitzsch's  Commentary  on  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews.     Vol.  II. 

18  7  1- 

Delitzsch's  Commentary  on  the  Psalms.     Vols.  1.   aiil  II. 
Hengstenberg' 8   History  of   the  Kingdom   of   God  under  the  Old 

Testament.     Vol.  1. 
Delitzsch's  Commentary  on  the  Psalms.     Vol.  HI. 

1  8  7  2-  . 

Keil's  Commentary  on  the  Books  of  Kings.     One  Volume.  )    First 
Keil's  Commentary  on  the  Book  of  Daniel.     One  Volume.  )    Issue. 

:MESSES.  CLAEK  Imve  resolved  to  allow  a  SELECTION  of  Twknty  Voi.rMES  (or 
more  at  the  same  ratio)  from  the  various  Series  previcms  to  the  Volumes  issued  in  IbGtJ 
(see  next  page), 

At  the  Subscription  Price  of  Five  Guineas. 

They  trust  tliat  this  will  still  more  larLrely  extend  the  usefulness  of  the  Forkign 
TiiKoi.oGiCAL  Library,  which  has  so  long  been  recognised  as  holding  an  important 
place  in  modern  Theological  literature. 


T.  and  T.  Cla^'k's  Publications. 


CLARK'S   FOREIGN  THEOLOGICAL  LIBRARY— Con^/rtwed 


Tlie  followine:  are  the  works  from  which  a  Selection  may  be  made  (non-subscription 
prices  within  brackets) : — 

Dr.  E.  W.  Hengstenberg, — Coramentary  ou  the  Psalms.  By  E.  W.  Hengsten- 
BEUG,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Theology  in  Berlin.     In  Three  Volumes  8vo.     (33s.) 

Dr.  J.  C.  L.   Gieseler. — Compendium  of  Ecclesiastical  History.       By  J.   C.   L. 

GiESELER,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Theology  in  Gottingen.  Five  Volumes  8vo. 
(£•->,  12s.  6d.) 

Dr.  Hennann  Olshaiisen. — Biblical  Commentary  on  the  Gospels  and  Acts,  adapted 
especially  for  Preachers  and  Students.  By  Hermanx  Olsiiausen,  D.D.,  Professor 
of  Theology  in  the  University  of  Erlangen.     In  Four  Volumes  demy  8vo.     (£2,  2s.) 

Biblical  Commentary  on  the  Romans,  adapted  especially  for  Preachers  and  Stu- 
dents. By  Hermann  Olshausen,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Theology  in  the  University  of 
Erlangen.     In  One  Volume  8vo.     (10s.  6d.) 

Biblical  Commentary  on  St.  Paul's  First  and  Second  Epistles  to  the  Corinthians. 

By  Hermann  Olshausen,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Theology  in  the  University  of  Erlangen. 
In  One  Volume  8vo.     (9s.) 

Biblical  Commentary  on  St.  Paul's  Epistles  to  the  Galatians,  Ephesians,  Colos- 
sians,  and  Thessalonians.  By  Hermann  Olshausen,  D.D.,  Professor  of 
Theology  in  the  University  of  Erlangen.     In  One  Volume  8vo.     (10s.  6d.) 

Biblical  Commentary  on  St.  Paul's  Epistle  to  the  Philippians,  to  Titus,  and  the 
First  to  Timothy;  in  continuation  of  the  Work  of  Olshausen.  By  Lie. 
August  Wiesinger.     In  One  Volume  8vo.     (10s.  6d.) 

Biblical  Commentary  on  the  Hebrews.  By  Dr.  Ebuard.  In  continuation  of  the 
Work  of  Olshausen.     In  One  Volume  8vo.     (10s.  6d.) 

Dr.  Augustus  Neander. — General  History  of  the  Christian  Eeligion  and  Church. 

By  AUGU.STU.S  Neander,  D.D.  Translated  from  the  Second  and  Improved  Edition. 
In  Nine  Volumes  8vo.     (=£2,  lis.  6d.) 

This  is  the  only  Edition  in  a  Lihrary  size. 

Prof.  H.  A.  Ch.  Havemick. — General  Introduction  to  the  Old  Testament.      By 

Professor  IIavernick.     One  Volume  8vo.     (10s.  6d.) 

Dr.  Ju  ios  Miiller. — The  Christian  Doctrine  of  Sin.  B  Dr.  Julius  Mijller. 
Two  Volumes  8vo.     (21s.)    New  Edition. 

Dr.  E.  W.  Hengstenberg. — Clu-istology  of  the  Old  Testament,  and  a  Commentaiy 
on  the  Messianic  Predictions.  By  E.  W.  Hengstenberg,  D.D.,  Professor 
of  Theology,  Berlin.     Four  Volumes.     (£2,  2s.) 

Dr.  M.  Baumgarten. — The  Acts  of  the  Apostles ;  or  the  History  of  the  Church 
in  the  Apostolic  Age.  By  M.  Baumgarten,  Ph.D.,  and  Professor  in  the 
University  of  Rostock.     Three  Volumes.     (£1,  7s.) 

Dr.  Eudolph  Stier. — The  Words  of  the  Lord  Jesus.  By  Rudolph  Stier,  D.D., 
Chief  Pastor  and  Superintendent  of  Schkeuditz.     In  Eight  Volumes  8vo.     (£4,  4s.) 

Dr.  Carl  Ullmann. — Reformers  before  the  Reformation,  principally  in  Germany 

and  the  Netherlands.  Translated  by  the  Eev.  R.  Menzies.  Two  Volumes 
8vo.    (£1,  Is.) 

Professor  Kurtz.— History  of  the  Old  Covenant ;  or.  Old  Testament  Dispensation. 

By  Professor  Kurtz  of  Dorpat.     In  Three  Volumes.     (£1,  lis.  (id.) 

Dr.  Rudolph  Stier. — The  Words  of  the  Risen  Saviour,  and  Commentary  on  the 
Epistle  of  St.  James.  By  Rudolph  Htiek,  D.D.,  Chief  Pastor  and  Super- 
intendent of  Schkeuditz.     One  Volume.     (lOs.  6d.) 

Professor    Tholuck. — Commentary   on   the   Gospel   of  St.    John.       By   Professor 

Tholuck  of  Halle,    in  One  Volume.    (9s.) 
Professor  Tholuck. — Commentary  on  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount.       By  Professor 

Tj  oluc;c  of  Halle.     In  One  Volume.     (10s.  6d.) 

Dr.  E.  W.  Hengstenberg Commentary  on  the  Book  of  Ecclesiastes.     To  which 

are  appended:  Treatises  on  the  Song  of  Solomon;  on  the  Book  of  Job;  on  the 
Profihet  Isaiah ;  on  the  Sacrifices  of  Holy  Scripture ;  and  on  the  Jews  and  the 
Christian  Church.     By  E.  W.  Hkng-stenberg,  D.D.     In  One  Volume  8vo.     (9s.) 


T.  ajid  T.  Claris s  Publications. 


CLARK'S   FOREIGN  THEOLOGICAL  LIBRARY— Con//nMet/. 


Dr.   John  H.  A.   Ebrard. — Commentary  on  the  Epistles  of  St.  John.       By  Dr. 

John  II.  A.  Ki;i:.\iu>,  I'rofi'tibor  nf  Tlituhjg-y  in  tliu  Uuiveraity  of  Ivi-hiiigeu.     In  One 
Volumo.     (lUs.  Cd.) 

Dr.  J.  P.  Lange.— Theological  and  Homiletical  Commentary  on  the  Gospel  of 
St.  Matthew  and  Mark.  Sjictiully  Dcsij^ued  and  Adapted  I'ur  the  Use  of 
Jlinisters  and  Students.  By  J.  P.  Lanoic,  D.D.,  Professor  of  L)ivinity  in  the  Univer- 
bity  of  Bonn.     Three  V'ohinies.     (10s.  6d.  each.) 

Dr.  J.  A.  Dorner. — History  of  the  Development  of  the  Doctrine  of  the  Persoa 
of  Christ,  liv  Ih'.  J.  A.  J)(jkni:i;,  Prolessor  oi"  Theology  in  the  University  of 
Berlin.     Five  Volumes.     (£2,  I'is.  6d.) 

Lange  and  Dr.  J.  J.  Van  Oosterzee. — Theological  and  Homiletical  Commentary  on 
the  Gospel  of  St.  Luke.  Siioiially  Dtsigmd  and  Ada]>tid  for  tin-  Use  of 
Ministers  and  Students.     Edited  by  J.  P.  Langj^  D.D.     Two  Volumes.    (18s.) 

Professor  Kurtz.— The  Sacrificial  Worship  of  the  Old  Testament.     One  Volume. 

(lOs.  6d.) 

Professor  Ebrard. — The  Gospel  History:  A  Compendium  of  Critical  Investigations 
in  support  of  the  Historical  Character  of  the  Four  Gospels.  One  ^'olume. 
(10s.  6d.) 

Lange,  Lechler,   and  Gerok. — Theological  and  Homiletical  Commentary  on  the 

Acts  of  the  Apostles.     Kdited  by  Dr.  Lancji:.     Two  Volumes.     (21s.) 
Dr.  Hengstenberg. — Commentary  on  the  Gospel  of  St.  John.    Two  Volumes.    (21s.) 

Professor  Keil. — Biblical  Commentary  on  the  Pentateuch.  Three  Volumes. 
(31s.  6d.) 

Professor  Keil. — Commentary  on  Joshua,  Judges,  and  Ruth.  One  Volume. 
(10s.  Cd.) 

Professor  Delitzsch. — A  System  of  Biblical  Psychology.     One  Volume,     (12s.) 

Professor  Delitzsch. — Commentary  on  the  Prophecies  of  Isaiah.  Two  Volumes.  (21s.) 

Professor  Auberlen. — The  Divine  Revelation  :  An  Essay  in  Defence  of  the  Faith. 

One  Volume.     (lOs.  (id.) 

Professor  Keil. — Commentary  on  the  Books  of  Samuel.     One  Volume.     (10s.  6d.) 
Professor  Delitzsch.  —Commentary  on  the  Book  of  Job,      Two  Vohuiies.      ('21s.) 
Bishop  Martensen. — Christian  Dogmatics.      A  Compendium  of  the  Doctrines  of 

Christianity.     One  Volume.     (10s.  6d.) 
Dr.  J.  P.  Lange. — Ciitical,  Doctrinal,  and  Homiletical  Commentary  on  the  Gospel 
of  St.  John,     Two  Vohunes.     (21s.) 

And,  in  connection  with  the  Series, — 
Ritter's  (Carl)  Comparative  Geography  of  Palestine.     Four  Volumes.     (32s.) 
Shedd's  History  of  Christian  Doctrine.     Two  Volumes.     (21s.) 
Macdonald's  Introduction  to  the  Pentateuch.     Two  Volumes.     (21s.) 
Hengstenberg's  Egypt  and  the  Books  of  Moses,     (7s.  6d.) 
Ackerman  on  the  Christian  Element  in  Plato.     (7s.  6d.) 
Robinson's  Greek  Lexicon  of  the  New  Testament,     8vo.     (9s.) 
Gerlach's  Commentaiy  on  the  Pentateuch.     Demy  8vo.     (10s.  6d.) 

The  above,  in  lli!  Volumes  (including  1872),  price  £30,  9s.,  form  an  Apparatus, 
without  which  it  may  be  truly  said  no  Thvologiciil  Library  can  be  complete ;  and  the  Pub- 
lisliers  take  the  liberty  of  suggesting  that  no  more  appropriate  gift  could  be  presented  to 
a  Clergyman  than  the  Series,  in  whole  or  in  part. 

*,*  In  reference  to  the  abore,  it  must  be  noted  that  NO  DUPLICATES  can  be  included  in  the 
Selection  of  Twenty  Volumes  ;  and  it  will  sare  trouble  and  correspondtiice  if  it  be 
distinctly  understood  that  NO  LESS  number  than  Twenty  can  be  supplied,  unless  at 
non-subscription  jfrice. 


Subscribers'  Names  received  by  all  Retail  Booksellers. 

CiiEQi'KS  on  CofXTitY  Banks  under  £2,  2s.  must  have  6d.  added  for  Bank  charge. 
London  :   (For  Works  at  Non-subscription  price  only)  Hamilton,  Adams,  &  Co. 


T.  and  T.  Clark's  Publications. 


CHEAP    BE-ISSUE 


OF  THE  WHOLE 


WORKS  OF  DR.  JOHN  OWEN. 

Edited  by  Eev.  W.  H.  GOOLD,  D.D.,  EdinlDui'gli. 
WITH  LIFE  BY  REV.  ANDREW  THOMSON,  D.D. 

In  2i  Volumes,  demy  8vo,  handsomely  bound  in  cloth,  lettered. 

With  Two  Portraits  of  Dr.  Owen. 

Several  years  have  now  elapsed  since  the  first  publication  of  this  edition  of 
the  Works  of  the  greatest  of  Puritan  Divines.  Time  has  tested  its  merits ;  and 
it  is  now  admitted  on  all  hands  to  be  the  only  correct  and  complete  edition. 

At  the  time  of  publication  it  Avas  considered — as  it  really  was — a  miracle  of 
cheapness,  having  been  issued,  by  Subscription,  for  Five  Guineas. 

In  consequence  of  the  abolition  of  the  Paper  Duty,  the  Publishers  now  re- 
issue the  Twenty-four  Volumes  for 

FOUR     GUINEAS. 

As  there  are  above  Fourteen  Thousand  Pages  in  all,  each  Volume  therefore 
averages  Five  Hundred  and  Ninetij  Purjes. 

'Tou  will  find  that  in  John  Owen  the  learning  of  Lightfoot,  the  strength  of  Charnock, 
the  analysis  of  Howe,  the  savour  of  Leighton,  the  raciness  of  Heywood,  the  glow  of 
Baxter,  the  copiousness  of  Barrow,  the  splendour  of  Bates,  are  all  combined.  We  should 
quickly  restore  the  race  of  great  divines  if  our  candidates  were  disciplined  in  such  lore.' 
— TheLate  Dr.  Hajiiltox  of  Leeds. 


Vols. 


Contents. 


I.  Life,  by  Eev.  Dr.   Thomson ;    Christologia,  or  a  Declaration  of  the 
glorious  Mystery  of  the   Person  of   Christ ;    Meditations   on   the 
Glory  of  Christ;  Two  Sliort  Catechisms. 
II.  Of  Communion  with  God  the  Father,  Son,  and  Holy  Ghost, 
ill.  and  IV.  On  the  Holy  Spirit. 

V.  On  the  Doctrine  of  Justification  by  Faith. 

VI.  Of  tlie  Mortiticatiou  of  Sin  in  Believers ;  the  Nature,  Power,  etc.,  of 
the  Remainders  of  Sin  in  Believers ;    Practical  Exposition  of  the 
cxxx.  P.-ialm. 
VII.  Kature  and  Causes  of  Apostasy  from  the  Gospel ;  the  Grace  and  Duty 
of  being  Spiritually  Minded;  of  the  Dominion  of  Sin  and  Grace. 
VIII.  and  IX.  Sermons. 

X.  A  Display  of  Arminianism ;    the  Death  of  Death  in  the  Death  of 
Christ ;  of  the  Death  of  ("hrist ;  Dissertation  on  Divine  Justice. 
XI.  Doctrine  of  the  Saints'  I'erseverance  explained. 
XII.  Mystery  of  the  Gospel  vindicated  and  Socinianism  examined. 

XIII.  Dutj'  of  Pastors  and  People  distinguished  ;  Eshcol ;  of  Schism,  etc. 

XIV.  On  a  Treatise,  'Fiat  Lux;'  the  Church  of  liome  no  Safe  Guide,  etc. 
XV.  Discourse  concerning  I/iturgies   and   their   Imposition ;    concerning 

Evangelical   Love,  Church  Peace  and  Unity;    Inquiry  into   the 
Original,  Nature,  Institution,  Power,   Order,  and  Communion  of 
Evangelical  Churches,  etc. 
XVI.  The  True  Nature  of  a  Gospel  Church,  etc. ;  Three  Treatises  concern- 
ing the  Scriptures. 
XVII.  Theologumena,    sivo    de    natura,    ortu,    progressu,   et    studio    veraj 
Theologia;. 
XVIII.  to  XXIV.  Exposition  of  the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews. 

*»*  'Separate  Volumes  may  he  had,  price  8s.  Gd.  each. 


T.  and  T.  Cla7'ISs  PiLblications. 


(TEMPORARY)     CHEAP    RE-ISSUE 

OF 

STIER'S     WORDS    OF    THE 
LORD    JESUS. 


To  meet  a  very  general  desire  that  the  now  well-known  Work 
of  Dr.  Stiee, 

IHE  WORDS  OF  THE  LORD  JESUS, 

should  be  brought  more  within  the  reach  of  all  classes,  both 
Clergy  and  Laity,  ^lessrs.  Clakk  have  resolved  to  issue  the  Eirjlit 
Volumes,  handsomely  bound  in  Four,  for 

TV/0      GUINEAS. 

This  can  be  only  offered  for  a  limited  period ;  and  as  the  al- 
lowance to  the  trade  must  necessarily  be  small,  orders  sent  either 
direct,  or  through  booksellers,  must  in  every  case  be  accompanied 
with  a  Post  Office  Order  for  the  above  amount. 


'  We  know  no  work  that  contains,  ■uitbin  anything  like  the  same  compass, 
so  many  pregnant  instances  of  Avhat  true  genius  under  chastened  submission  to 
the  control  of  a  sound  philology,  and  gratefully  accepting  the  seasonable  and 
suitable  helps  of  a  wholesome  erudition,  is  capable  of  doing  in  the  spiritual 
exegesis  of  the  sacred  volume.  Every  page  is  fretted  and  studded  with  lines 
and  forms  of  the  most  alluring  beauty.  At  every  step  the  reader  is  constrained 
to  pause  and  ponder,  lest  he  should  overlook  one  or  other  of  the  many  precious 
blossoms  that,  in  the  most  dazzling  profusion,  are  scattered  around  his  path. 
We  venture  to  predict  that  his  Wards  of  Jesus  are  destined  to  produce  a 
great  and  happy  revolution  in  the  interpretation  of  the  New  Testament  in  this 
country.' — British  and  Foreign  Evangelical  JRevitic. 


T.  and  T.  Clark's  Publications. 


^\)t  Winx^s  0f  St  glugustmc. 


EDITED    BY    THE    REV.    MAECUS    DODS,    M.A. 


M 


ESSRS.  CLARK  have  much  pleasure  in  pubhshing  the  second  issue 
of  Translations  of  the  Writings  of  St,  Augustine— yiz. : 


Writings  in  connection  -with  the  donatist 
Controversy.     One  Volume. 

The  anti-Pelagian  works  of  St.  Augustine. 

Vol.  I. 


The  first  issue  comprised 

THE    ^CITY    OF    GOD/ 

In  Two  Volumes. 
Translated    by    the    Rev.    Marcus    Dods,    M.A. 

They  believe  this  will  prove  not  the  least  valuable  of  their  various 
Series,  and  no  pains  will  be  spared  to  make  it  so.  The  Editor  has  secured 
a  most  competent  staff  of  Translators,  and  every  care  is  being  taken  to 
secure  not  only  accuracy,  but  elegance. 

The  Works  of  St.  Augustine  to  be  included  in  the  Series  are  (in  addi- 
tion to  the  '  City  of  God') — 

All  the  Treatises  in  the  Pelagian,  and  the  foiu-  leading  Treatises 

in  the  Donatist  Controversy. 
The  Treatises    against   Faustus  the  Manichsean  ;    on   Christian 

Doctrine  ;  the  Trinity  ;  tlie  Harm.ony  of  the  Evangelists  ;  the 

Sermon  on  the  Mount. 
Also,  the  Lectures  on  the  Gospel  of  St.  John,  the  Confessions,  a 

Selection  from  the  Letters,  the  Retractations,  the  Soliloquies, 

and  Selections  from  the  Practical  Treatises. 

All  these  works  are  of  first-rate  importance,  and  only  a  small  proportion 
of  them  have  yet  appeared  in  an  English  dress.  The  Sermons  and  the 
Commentaries  on  the  Psalms  having  been  already  given  by  the  Oxford 
Translators,  it  is  not  intended,  at  least  in  the  first  instance,  to  pubMsh 
them. 

The  Series  will  include  a  Life  of  St.  Augustine,  by  Robert  Rainy, 
D.D.,  Professor  of  Church  History,  New  College,  Edinburgh. 

The  Series  Avill  probably  extend  to  Sixteen  or  Eighteen  Volumes.  The 
Publishers  wiU  be  glad  to  receive  the  Names  of  Subscribers  as  early  as 
possible. 

Subscription  :  Four  Volumes  for  a  Guinea,  payable  in  advance,  as  in  the 
case  of  the  Ante-Nicene  Series  (21s.  when  not  paid  in  advance). 

It  is  understood  that  Subscribers  are  bound  to  take  at  least  the  books  of 
the  first  two  years.  Each  Volume  will  be  sold  separately  at  (on  an 
average)  lOs.  6d.  each  Volume. 

They  trust  the  Subscribers  to  the  Ante-Nicene  Library  will  continue 
their  Subscription  to  this  Scries,  and  they  hope  to  be  favoured  with  an 
early  remittance  of  the  Subscription. 


T.  and  T.  Clar/Ss  Ptiblications. 


THE    CUNNINGHAM   LECTURES. 


SECOND     SERIES. 
In  demy  8vo,  price  JOs.  Cd., 

THE    DOCTRINE    OF   JUSTIFICATION: 

Ax  Outline  of  its  Histojiy  in  toe  Churcu,  and  of  its  Exposition  from 
ScRiPTriiE,  WITH  Special  Reference  to  Recent  Attacks  on  the  Theology 
of  the  Reformation. 

BY   JAMES    BUCHANAN,   D.D., 
professor  of  divinity,  new  college,  edindurgh. 

'  Our  readers  will  find  in  them  an  able,  clear,  and  comprebensivo  statement  of  the 
truth  which  forms  the  subject,  clothed  in  language  "suitable  alike  to  an  academic  and 
to  a  popular  audience."  We  only  add,  that  the  copious  notes  and  references,  after  the 
manner  of  the  Bampton  and  Hulsean  Lectures,  beside  whioh  it  is  worthy  to  stand,  greatly 
enhance  the  value  of  the  volume,  and  constitute,  it  a  capital  handbook  of  the  doctrine  of 
justificatiou.' —  WecUy  Jivvitw. 


THIRD      SERIES. 

In  demy  8vo,  price  10s.  fid., 

THE    REVELATION    OF    LAW    IN 

SCRIPTURE: 

Considered  with  respect  both  to  its  own  Natdtie,  and  to  its  relative 
Place  in  successive  "Dispensations. 

BY     PATRICK     FAIRBAIRN,     D.D.^ 

autuoi:  of  'typology  of  scripture,'  etc. 

'A  volume  which,  independently  of  his  other  works,  would,  in  our  judgment,  suffice 
to  secure  for  Dr.  Fairbairn  a  place  amongst  the  ablest  and  soundest  of  the  theologians  of 
the  present  century.  And  we  have  no  hesitation  in  expressing  our  conviction  that  the 
Third  Series  of  the  "Cunningham  Lectures"  has  not  detracted  from  the  reputation  of  a 
community  which  can  exhibit  names  so  illustrious  as  those  which  adorn  the  annals  of 
the  Free  Church  of  Scotland.' — Christian  Observer. 


FOURTH    SERIES. 

This  dav,  in  One  Vol.  demv  <^vo,  prici>  fis., 

THEOLOGY    AND    THEOLOGIANS    OF 

SCOTLAND: 

Principally  of  the  I7i h  and  18th  Centuriks. 
BY     J.    WALKER,     D.D.,     CARNWATH. 


T.  and  T.  Clark's  Publications. 


New  and   Cheaper   Edition   of  Lange's 

Life   of  Christ. 


Now  complete,  in  Four  Volumes,  demy  8vo,  price  28s.  (Subscription  price 

THE   LIFE    OF   THE   LORD 
JESUS   CHRIST: 

A  COMPLETE  CRITICAL  EXAMINATION  OF  THE  ORIGIN, 
CONTENTS,  AND  CONNECTION  OF  THE  GOSPELS. 

^ran^tatcK  from  tlje  German  of 
J.      P.     L  A  N  G  E,     D.  D., 

PROFESSOR    OF    DIVINITY    IN    THE    UNIVERSITY    OF    BONN. 

EDITED,   WITH  ADDITIONAL  NOTES, 
BY    THE     REV.    MARCUS    DODS,    M.A. 


***  This  valuable  Work  has  heen  out  of  print  for  some  time,  hut  has  been  m: 
in  demand.  The  Six  Volumes  now  occupy  Four ;  and  whilst  the  whole  matte; 
retained,  it  is  published  at  a  little  cheaper  price. 


Extract  from  Editor's  Preface. 

'  The  ■work  of  Dr.  Lange,  translated  in  the  accompanying  volumes,  holds  among  bo 
the  honourable  position  of  being  the  most  complete  Life  of  our  Lord.  There  are  ot 
works  which  more  thoroughly  investigate  the  authenticity  of  the  Gospel  records,  so 
which  more  satisfactorily  discuss  the  chronological  diiBculties  involved  in  this  most  i 
portant  of  histories,  and  some  which  present  a  more  formal  and  elaborate  exegeti 
treatment  of  the  sources ;  but  there  is  no  single  work  in  which  all  these  branches  are 
fully  attended  to,  or  in  which  so  much  matter  bearing  on  the  main  subject  is  brouj 
together,  or  in  which  so  many  points  are  elucidated.  The  immediate  object  of  this  cc 
prehensive  and  masterly  work  was  to  refute  those  views  of  the  life  of  our  Lord  wh 
had  been  propagated  by  Negative  Criticism,  and  to  substitute  that  authentic  and  ci 
sistent  history  which  a  tmly  scientific  and  enlightened  criticism  educes  from  the  Gospc 


^fyy-.